(Cambridge Studies in Early Modern British History) L. J. Reeve - Charles I and The Road To Personal Rule-Cambridge University Press (1989)
(Cambridge Studies in Early Modern British History) L. J. Reeve - Charles I and The Road To Personal Rule-Cambridge University Press (1989)
(Cambridge Studies in Early Modern British History) L. J. Reeve - Charles I and The Road To Personal Rule-Cambridge University Press (1989)
This is a series of monographs and studies covering many aspects of the history of the
British Isles between the late fifteenth century and the early eighteenth century. It
includes the work of established scholars and pioneering work by a new generation of
scholars. It includes both reviews and revisions of major topics and books which open
up new historical terrain or which reveal startling new perspectives on familiar
subjects. All the volumes set detailed research into broader perspectives and the books
are intended for the use of students as well as of their teachers.
L. J. REEVE
Lecturer in History,
University of Hong Kong
http://www.cambridge.org
1 Introduction 1
2 Buckingham's England in crisis 9
3 The death of a Parliament 58
4 The aftermath 99
5 Government and justice 118
6 The king, his court and its enemies 172
7 Foreign policy 226
8 Decision 275
9 The anatomy of a political transition 292
Bibliography 297
Index 309
vn
ACKNOWLEDGEMENTS
During the writing of this book, and of the doctoral dissertation from which
it is largely derived, I have greatly appreciated the assistance, and the kind-
ness, of many people and of a number of institutions. This list must of
necessity be selective but certain names should be recorded. Professor Sir
Geoffrey Elton supervised my doctoral work at Cambridge and has remained
my principal academic mentor. Over the years his wise advice and friendship
have been unfailing and I will always be deeply grateful to him. My
examiners, Dr John Morrill and Professor Austin Woolrych, have been
unstinting in their assistance, encouragement and support. John Morrill's
help in his capacity as an editor of this series has been invaluable, as has that
of die other editors, Professor Anthony Fletcher and Dr John Guy. Professor
the Earl Russell read my dissertation, produced a most helpful commentary,
and has always been very gracious in the provision of relevant information. I
have enjoyed and learnt much from our discussions. Professor John Elliott
kindly provided transcripts and details of documents in the Infantado and
Medinaceli archives, took the time to read the typescript of this book, making
a number of helpful observations, and (not least) provided the inspiration for
the title. Professor John Salmon also read the typescript, giving constructive
and very judicious criticism. Dr Simon Adams has always generously shared
his knowledge of the English foreign policy and the European history of the
period. Dr Kevin Sharpe has been a source of much useful information and
good cheer. Professor George Yule has always taken a kind and supportive
interest in my work. Dr Michael Bennett has been an excellent colleague.
Monique Bois, Albert Llorrens and Luigi di Stadio were fine companions and
helpful fellow-searchers at Simancas. Tony Camps has been a faithful friend
at difficult times. His Excellency The Reverend Dr Davis McCaughey has
always given me his confidence and trust. Professor John Poynter has
provided important advice and support. Among the other friends and
colleagues who have assisted in various ways are Gerald Aylmer, Brendan
Bradshaw, Ian Breward, Mat Burrows, Tom Cogswell, Richard Cust, Colin
Davis, David Dean, Damaso de Lario, Greg Dening, Richard Drayton,
Vlll
Acknowledgements ix
Lawrie Gardiner, John Gooch, Jamie Hart, Jonathan Israel, Don Kennedy,
Paul Kennedy, Karen Kupperman, Albert Loomie, Richard McCabe, Hew
McLeod, Wilfred Prest, Ron Ridley, Ian Robertson, Duncan Robinson,
Michael Roe, Peter Salt, Fred Shriver, Geoff Smith, Johann Sommerville,
Christopher Thompson, Nicholas Tyacke, David Underdown and Stuart
Woolf. Of the many librarians and archivists who have facilitated my
research in a number of countries it would be remiss of me not to mention in
particular Dr John Post of the Public Record Office, London, who spent
much time discussing near-insoluble linguistic and palaeographical prob-
lems. William Davies and Mrs Maureen Street of Cambridge University Press
have also given expert assistance. Despite the help I have received, I am solely
responsible for the book and any errors it contains. The Marquis of Lothian
allowed me to consult the Coke manuscripts at Melbourne Hall, and I am
grateful to the Bodleian Library; the British Library; the Syndics of the
Cambridge University Library; Nottingham University Library; the Keeper
of the Records of Scotland; and the Controller of H.M. Stationery Office for
permission to use manuscript material. Financial support for this work has
been provided by Pembroke College, Cambridge; the Universities of
Melbourne, Otago, and Tasmania; Yale University; Rothmans University
Endowment Fund (Australia); and the Australian-American Educational
Foundation in the form of a Fulbright Postdoctoral Fellowship. My typist,
Ingrid Barker, has shown great skill and patience in the face of my unreason-
able demands. Without the support and encouragement of my parents, Roma
and the Reverend Lawrence Reeve, I would not have been able to begin an
academic career. I am grateful to my parents-in-law, Dr Barbara Christen and
the late Dr Robert Christen, for their friendship and good counsel. My wife
Barbara has lived with this subject since before the time of our marriage and
has, in innumerable ways, made possible the completion of this book. For
that, and more, I cannot thank her enough.
ABBREVIATIONS
NOTE O N SOURCES,
QUOTATIONS A N D DATES
In citing documents in the state papers, domestic series, in the Public Record
Office, the article number of the document is given, being clearer, and the
folio number where more precision is required. In quotations, spelling and
punctuation have been modernized and abbreviations extended. All dates are
given in the old style of the Julian calendar, unless otherwise indicated, with
the year beginning on 1 January.
—««* I *»J—
Introduction
abroad, and the progressive ending of a commitment to the war allowed the
rejection of parliamentary means and the continuation of religious change at
home.
Conrad Russell's detailed study of the parliaments of the 1620s, published
in 1979, drew a sharp contrast between the political atmosphere of the
Jacobean era and that which prevailed during the early years of Charles's
reign. According to Russell the Caroline period was a new age, intensely
ideological and politically 'a much less safe world'. 1 While recent work has
pointed to the way in which overt religious consensus was being eroded in
England during the last years of James's life,2 there can be no doubt that this
conclusion of Russell's is essentially true.3 As religious and political divisions
appeared in English politics during the late 1620s they came to affect signifi-
cantly the framework in which those politics were pursued. This study, as
part of its account of the emergence of Charles's regime, traces the develop-
ment of certain changes evident at the end of the 1620s as the king came
progressively to reject parliamentary ways. I have interpreted these changes
as the advent of (for want of a better term) a 'new polities'. These new politics
were an uncharacteristic and in many ways an unwanted (even an uncon-
scious) development. They were the politics of a non-parliamentary England,
politics which came about with the breakdown of the traditional political and
constitutional process.
Such a notion immediately begs the obvious question of what, in fact, the
old politics were. It is not my purpose to paint a full-length portrait of pre-
Caroline, let alone early Stuart, political society. There exists a number of
very illuminating studies which already serve this need. 4 It is possible, how-
ever, to point to certain features which made English political society work-
able under James I, notably confidence in the monarch as the head of the
social and religious order, a degree of understanding between the ruling
elements within the court and the wider political leadership of the nation, a
broad ideological context for constitutional and religious life which, if some-
times unstable, was not undermined by government and often allowed
official agreement rather than conflict, and the innate capacity for the con-
1
C. Russell, Parliaments and English politics 1621-1629 (Oxford, 1979), pp. 366,420.
2
K. Fincham and P. lake, 'The ecclesiastical policy of King James I', JBS, xxiv, 2 (1985). See
also P. G. Lake, 'Calvinism and the English Church, 1570-1635', P&P, cxiv (1987); H. R.
Trevor-Roper, Catholics, Anglicans and puritans (London, 1987), p. 62.
3
R. P. Cust, The forced loan and English politics 1626-1628 (Oxford, 1987). Despite the
importance of Dr Cust's study of this period, I am unable to agree with his view that the
pattern of English politics under Charles was fully established between 1626 and 1628 (ibid.,
pp. 332-3), given the period of transition charted in the present book. See also R. P. Cust,
'News and politics in early seventeenth century England', P&P, cxii (1986).
4
See Russell, Parliaments, ch. 1; R. Ashton, The English civil war (London, 1978), pt 1; J. S.
Morrill, The revolt of the provinces, 2nd edn (London, 1980), introduction, pt 1; D. Hirst,
'Court, country, and politics before 1629', in K. M. Sharpe (ed.), Faction and Parliament,
essays on early Stuart history (Oxford, 1978).
Introduction 3
5
On the question of war finance see chapter 7, below.
6
Elizabeth and her children were excluded from the immediate succession by the birth of the
prince of Wales in 1630.
7
Edward Hyde, earl of Clarendon, History of the rebellion and civil wars in England, ed.
W. D. Macray (6 vols., Oxford, 1888), vol. i, p. 3; S. R. Gardiner (ed.), The constitutional
documents of the puritan revolution 1625-1660 (3rd edn, revised, Oxford, 1906, repr.
1979), pp. 208ff.
4 Charles I and the road to personal rule
8
J. I. Israel, The Dutch republic and the Hispanic world 1606-1661 (Oxford, 1982), ch. 4
(sections iv and v).
9
L. B. Namier, 'Human nature in polities', in F. Stern (ed.), The varieties of history (London,
1970), pp. 385-6.
10
B. Worden, rev. art., London Review of Books, 19 Apr.-2 May 1984, p. 15.
11
J. H. Elliott, Richelieu and Olivares (Cambridge, 1984), p. 128; see also R. J. W. Evans, rev.
art. JEH, xxxiv, 1 (1983), pp. 140-1.
Introduction 5
12
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 123.
13
S. R. Gardiner, History of England from the accession ofJames I to the outbreak of the civil
war, 1603-1642 (10 vols., London, 1883-4), vii, p. 220.
14
DNB (1901—11), s.v. Gardiner, Samuel Rawson; J. P. Kenyon, The history men (London,
1983), p. 118.
6 Charles I and the road to personal rule
17
C. Russell, 'The British problem and the English civil war', History, lxxii (1987).
18
C. Russell, The crisis of Parliaments, English history 1509-1660 (Oxford, 1971), p. 323; see
also M. Lee, The road to revolution: Scotland under Charles 1,1625-37 (Urbana, 1985).
19
R. Mitchison, Lordship to patronage, Scotland 1603-1745 (London, 1983), p. 29.
20
Ibid., pp. 3 2 - 4 ; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 2 7 6 - 8 1 .
8 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Caroline court, when Viscount Dorchester allied himself with the earl of
Cork in a vigorous anti-Catholic crusade.
The loss of potential manuscript sources for the study of the early Caroline
period has been extensive. Perhaps the greatest disappointment is the failure
of any substantial collection of Lord Treasurer Weston's papers to survive. It
is likely that his financial dealings (including those with Spain) and his
Catholic leanings were considered sufficiently sensitive to warrant the
premature demise of any such archive. The papers of the third earl of
Pembroke were lost in a fire at Wilton in 1647. And it is possible that
Providence Island Company documents were lost in government raids in
1639 and 1640. 21 This study is based on manuscript material in British and
continental archives, particularly the Public Record Office in London and
the Archivo General at Simancas, and on a variety of printed sources. What-
ever the deficiencies of surviving evidence, this study is intended to shed fresh
light on a fascinating era in British and European history.
21
C. M. Hibbard, Charles I and the popish plot (Chapel Hill, 1983), p. 89.
«** 2 •**
Buckingham's England in crisis
The onset of the Thirty Years War after 1618 destroyed the foreign policy of
James I. That policy was very much a product of the king's personality. James
was a pacifist who had reacted against the violence of his Scottish back-
ground. He was also a lazy man who resented the difficulties posed by conflict
and war. In addition he was ambitious. He wished to link his family to the
royal line of the Spanish Habsburgs, still the virtual rulers of the world, and he
sought to achieve the role of peacemaker in the Europe of his day. On
becoming king of England he agreed to end the long Elizabethan war with
Spain, and later played an important role in bringing about the twelve years'
Truce of 1609 between Spain and the Dutch. In 1613 the marriage of his
daughter Elizabeth to Frederick V, elector Palatine and the leading Calvinist
prince of Germany, symbolized his commitment to the Protestant world. His
aim was to combine this initiative with the marriage of his son and heir to a
Spanish princess and so to fulfil both his diplomatic and dynastic ambitions.
When Henry, prince of Wales, died in 1612, negotiations with Spain had
come to nothing, and so from 1614 onwards James set about trying to achieve
a similar marriage for his younger son Charles. But the king's pan-European
diplomacy was dealt a devastating blow by the rash action of his German
son-in-law. Against all sound advice, including that of James, in 1619
Frederick accepted the crown of Bohemia in an election disputed by Emperor
Ferdinand II. In so doing he had issued a challenge to the whole house of
Habsburg, but he had also invited a religious war in Germany. For while
Frederick led the Protestant Union, Ferdinand was a zealous Catholic, deter-
mined to reverse the tide of the Protestant Reformation. James did not wish
to see his family and his principal kingdom of England involved in such a con-
flict and he resisted English and Bohemian pressure upon him for war.1
In November of 1620 the Habsburgs decisively defeated Frederick's con-
1
R. Lockyer, Buckingham, the life and political career of George Villiers, first duke of
Buckingham 1592-1628 (London, 1981), pp. 80-2; G. Parker, Europe in crisis 1598-1648
(London, 1981), pp. 160-4.
10 Charles I and the road to personal rule
federate forces in the battle of the White Mountain outside Prague. He fled
with Elizabeth and their children to the Hague and his lands were overrun by
the Spanish and imperial forces. The invasion of the Palatinate in 1620
created enormous difficulties for James. With a state of war in Germany, his
Protestant duties and the fortunes of his family came into conflict with his
desire for friendship with Spain. And with the Dutch truce about to expire,
Spain's victory in the Palatinate had provided her with control of the Rhine
valley, a coveted connection between Italy and the Netherlands and a
strategic prize with which she would not readily part. 2 Faced with this situ-
ation, James decided to pursue the Spanish match as the basis for a settlement
in Germany. But this policy finally collapsed when in 1622 Spain
extinguished the last resistance in the Lower Palatinate, and when in 1623 it
declared that an English marriage should be conditional upon terms to which
James would not agree, namely the conversion of Charles and Frederick's
heir, Frederick Henry, to membership of the Roman Church.3 The break-
down in Anglo-Spanish relations was also generated by a personality clash
between the royal favourite George, duke of Buckingham, and the count-
duke of Olivares:4 a situation compounded by Buckingham's new influence
with Charles. Having rashly travelled to Spain with Buckingham, Charles
took offence at the uncompromising treatment he received there, and before
leaving wrote to his sister Elizabeth of his desire for revenge.5
The war against Spain which ensued was, for the two young men, essen-
tially an emotional reaction to the failure of the marriage treaty. Yet English
public opinion saw the conflict in more ideological terms. The Jacobean
peace with Spain had brought prosperity to England, but it had also sacrificed
an important source of national political unity. Elizabethan propaganda had
instilled anti-Hispanic and anti-Catholic attitudes very deeply in the English
mind. The idea of a Spanish marriage was unpopular, and it had led to rioting
in London against Spanish diplomats and James's policy.6 Charles and
Buckingham were not opposed to Spain for religious reasons; but in Parlia-
ment in 1624 they enlisted the forces of English Protestantism, achieving
considerable popularity and a grant for war of £300,000. Effectively this
2
G. Parker, The army of Flanders and the Spanish road 1567-1659 (Cambridge, 1972),
p. 253.
3
S. L. Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands? The dilemmas of early Stuart foreign policy', in
Tomlinson (ed.), Before the English civil war, pp. 89,95—7; Parker, Europe in crisis, p. 169.
4
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 44; H. G. R. Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War
(3 vols., London, 1924), iii, p. 260.
5
G. Huxley, Endymion Porter: the life of a courtier, 1587-1649 (London, 1959), p. 118.
6
K. J. Lindley, 'Riot prevention and control in early Stuart London', TRHS, 5th ser., xxxiii
(1983), pp. 111-12; W. S. Maltby, The black legend: the development of anti-Spanish senti-
ment, 1558-1660 (Durham, N.C., 1971), pp. lOOff., 114-15,138; Clarendon, Rebellion,
vol. i, pp. 24, 94.
Buckingham's England in crisis 11
7
S. L. Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624', in Sharpe (ed.),
Faction and Parliament, pp. 165,168-9; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 83; Maltby,
Black legend, p. 109; Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 6-7.
8
Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 279; see also Historical collections, ed. J. Rushworth (8 vols., n.p.,
1659-1701), i, p. 474; J. Beatty, Warwick and Holland (Denver, 1965), p. 43; Gardiner,
History, v, pp. 198-9; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', pp. 98-9.
9
Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 98.
10
Russell, Parliaments, p. 263.
1
* Ibid., pp. 227—9. Tonnage and poundage constituted the major part of the customs revenues.
The desire for reform was inspired, at least partly, by fear of justifying the new Jacobean
impositions during Charles's lifetime; D. Hirst, Authority and conflict, England 1603—1658
12 Charles I and the road to personal rule
continued to collect the duties. When Parliament met again in 1626 a power-
ful attack was made on Buckingham's conduct of affairs: an offensive led by
Sir Dudley Digges and Sir John Eliot in the Commons, abetted by the French
and sanctioned by the influence of William Herbert, third earl of Pembroke,
in the Lords.12 Buckingham was widely disliked for his rash and disdainful
bearing, his pretensions to regality, his venality and accumulation of patron-
age, as well as for his incompetence. The accelerating crisis in foreign policy
gave the parliamentary proceedings an atmosphere of emergency. Charles did
not share the public suspicion of the duke, and did not accept that financial
supply should be dependent upon his impeachment. As Charles saw it, Parli-
ament had not only attacked his favourite, but was also refusing to fund a war
it had advocated.13 He chose to defend Buckingham. As he said at the time,
'gold may be bought too dear'.14 He dissolved the Parliament in June 1626,
thus saving the duke and losing four subsidies.
The king's dealings with Parliament caused him to adopt a different
attitude to the institution from that of his father. James had a clear under-
standing of the political art of the possible, and despite his rhetoric about the
exalted nature of kingship he had never abandoned the search for parliamen-
tary co-operation. In 1610 he said there were many things he could do with-
out Parliament, which he would do in Parliament. 15Charles, however, was
inclined to eliminate Parliament as a popular threat to monarchy.16 He
considered the initiation of proceedings against Buckingham an invasion of
his prerogative and a reflection upon his honour. In May 1626 he had
threatened both houses: 'Remember that Parliaments are altogether in my
power for their calling, sitting and dissolution; therefore, as I find the fruits
of them good or evil, they are to continue or not to be.' 17 After the Parliament
he spoke to the bishop of Mende 'of the means used by the kings of France to
rid themselves of parliament', commenting that this had been done at an
opportune moment when there was no financial need.18 While Charles's
eventual resolve to govern without Parliament was a cumulative develop-
ment, his antipathy to the institution grew up early in his reign. He was
encouraged in this by those about him, particularly Buckingham and Bishop
(London, 1986), p. 140. The lords refused to pass a bill granting tonnage and poundage for
one year only; J. P. Sommerville, Politics and ideology in England 1603—1640 (London,
1986), p. 156.
12
Russell, Parliaments, pp. 264-7.
13
R. P. Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan', JBS, xxiv, 2 (1985), p. 233.
14
Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 311.
15
S. Lambert, 'Procedure in the House of Commons in the early Stuart period', EHR, xcv
(1980), p. 769.
16
Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan', pp. 211-13, 233.
17
Gardiner, History, vi, p. 83; Cust, The forced loan, pp. 17-18.
18
CSPV1626-8, p. 508; Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan', p. 212.
Buckingham's England in crisis 13
William Laud. While the duke was not an ideologue, he had modernist (as
well as secular) instincts and was attuned to a milieu of high monarchy.19 He
was said to favour the government of England along French constitutional
lines, and he neither understood nor wished to be troubled with popular
councils.20 Laud's hard-line attitude towards Parliament and the influence he
achieved in favour of the English Arminian party indicate how Charles's
resort to arbitrary measures in government was indeed the counterpart of the
rise of Arminianism under his rule.21
In 1626 Sir Dudley Carleton warned the House of Commons of a likely
change in royal policy, 'new counsels', unless Parliament ceased to encroach
upon the royal prerogative. Carleton contrasted the continuing demise of rep-
resentative institutions in Christian countries with the privileges of the
English Parliament, still at liberty to offer financial supply voluntarily to the
king. Carleton favoured concord and the sitting of Parliament and he had
sought to issue a personal warning. But as Vice-Chamberlain he was also a
royal spokesman, and clearly Charles wished to suggest the threat of
arbitrary measures.22 The threat had definitely not been an idle one.
Carleton's speech was indeed prophetic. Following the failure of the 1626
Parliament, alternative means of funding the war were considered and
pursued.
Of the financial options available to the crown at this point, a loan from the
City of London proved inadequate; the king and Council rejected the
traditional idea of debasing the coinage; and there was widespread refusal to
contribute to a public benevolence.23 The critical factor affecting the course
of policy, however, was Charles's outright refusal to resummon Parliament.
This was linked to his refusal to give up the duke. The king's attitude created
an impasse which made a resort to arbitrary taxation virtually inevitable,
Charles's opposition to another Parliament brought the moderates in Council
to agree to a forced loan, the solution which was adopted.24 The forced loan
was entitled the 'Loan of Five Subsidies' and was a blatant substitute for the
failure of parliamentary supply.25 Like the earlier benevolence, it was justified
19
On the duke's religious views see Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 4 4 9 , 4 7 4 ; on those of his family
see Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 3 4 - 6 .
20
PRO 31/3/66/fo. 123v; Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 7.
21
Cust, The forced loan, pp. 62ff., 7 8 - 8 0 ; Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced
loan', pp. 2 1 6 , 2 3 5 ; W. Hutton, William Laud (1896), p. 26.
22
L. J. Reeve, 'The secretaryship of state of Viscount Dorchester 1 6 2 8 - 1 6 3 2 ' (Cambridge
University PhD thesis, 1984), pp. 1 6 - 1 8 .
23
Gardiner, History, vi, p. 138; Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan',
p. 210.
24
Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan', p. 233.
25
R. Ashton, The City and the court 1603-1643 (Cambridge, 1979), p. 183; Russell,
Parliaments, p. 58.
14 Charles I and the road to personal rule
26
Cust, The forced loan, p. 3 4 ; Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan',
pp. 217-20.
27
G. R. Elton (ed.), The Tudor constitution (2nd edn, Cambridge, 1982), p. 4 4 ; Russell,
Parliaments, p. 5 1 ; C. Russell, 'Parliament and the king's finances', in C. Russell (ed.), The
origins of the English civil war (rev. edn, London, 1980), p. 9 4 .
28
Hutton, Laud, p. 3 2 ; Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan', p. 2 3 0 .
29
CD1628, iv, p. 3 1 4 ; Russell, Parliaments, p. 3 3 4 ; C. G. A. Clay, Economic expansion and
social change: England 1500-1700 (2 vols., Cambridge, 1984), ii, p. 2 5 9 .
30
Cust, The forced loan, pp. 3 6 , 3 9 , 1 5 8 f f .
31
Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 1 4 9 - 5 0 .
32
The earl of Lincoln was found to be agitating against the loan and was sent to the Tower.
Ibid., pp. 1 5 0 , 1 5 4 - 6 , 2 2 5 ; Cust, The forced loan, pp. 55-6,58-9; Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy
Council, and the forced loan', pp. 224ff.; Russell, Parliaments, p. 3 3 3 .
Buckingham's England in crisis 15
pervert the court record, led to the House of Commons' campaign for the
Petition of Right in 1628. 33
Unquestionably the most destructive aspect of the loan was public per-
ception of Charles's leading role. The king had overridden conciliar reser-
vations about the loan and had sanctioned proceedings against refusers. He
had also insisted on licensing sermons supporting the loan for publication (an
action which indicates the direction of his thinking and his pretensions,
encouraged by circumstances, to absolutism).34 These measures, and
Charles's widely publicized opposition to the summoning of another Parlia-
ment, were a crucial influence in the erosion of confidence in him among his
governing classes. The peers who resisted the loan included at least five men
whose social rank, when combined with their opposition to the nature of
Charles's regime, was to prove critical in the years ahead: Essex, Warwick,
Saye, Lincoln and Clare.35 With the earl of Bedford they played key roles in
the passing of the Petition of Right, in the political activities of the Providence
Island Company and the circles connected with it, and (some of them) in the
Long Parliament and during the civil war. Several possessed ancient titles and
seem to have resented the station which Buckingham had achieved on the
basis of such little merit.36 For all of them the episode of the loan was a
formative one in determining their attitudes towards the new king. In the
autumn of 1626 Clare wrote to Saye very explicitly of his belief in Charles's
design to do away with Parliament.37 No English monarch could afford to
alienate such men so seriously.
During 1627 and 1628 Charles preferred to support Buckingham's private
war with Richelieu, in which his own honour was engaged, rather than to
pursue the war against Spain to which Parliament had agreed. The duke
encouraged Charles against the French and sought to bring down the
cardinal, and even Louis XIII, by erecting a coalition comprised of French
dissidents (who included Louis's brother Gaston), the dukes of Lorraine and
Savoy and the Huguenots.38 Richelieu had essentially betrayed the idea of the
33
Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan', p. 2 3 1 ; J. A. Guy, 'The origins of
the Petition of Right reconsidered', HJ, xxv, 2 (1982).
34
There are definite parallels between the situation surrounding the forced loan and the
development of French absolutism during this period. There was no dramatic break with the
past; there was an appeal to reason of state and divine right together with an opposition to
the idea of taxation by consent; there was the link with war; and there was the same ideo-
logical rationalization of what was an ad hoc attempt to restore a royal authority
threatened by changing circumstances. See D. Parker, The making of French absolutism
(London, 1983), pp. 60ff., 90,146ff.
35
Saye in fact paid the loan by December 1626. Cust, The forced loan, p. 102n; Cust,
'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan', pp. 2 3 4 - 5 ; Gardiner, History, vi, p. 150.
36
On criticism of Buckingham's lineage see Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 3.
37
NUL, Ne.C, 15,405, pp. 170-1.
38
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 48; Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 336—7, 370; Adams, 'Spain
or the Netherlands?', p. 98.
16 Charles I and the road to personal rule
grand alliance against the Habsburgs by making peace with Spain in Italy in
1625. 39 He sought to manipulate England by engaging her in war against
Spain while France suppressed the Huguenots. Charles and Buckingham had
not obtained a firm French commitment before going to war against the
Habsburgs, and Richelieu's strategy was thus successful, despite the Anglo-
French conflict.40 Moreover, the illogical and dangerous nature of
Buckingham's war policy had exposed England to mortal threat. Simul-
taneous action against France and Spain created a situation in which the three
powers manoeuvred for advantage with the stakes raised by war. Each power
might join with another to the detriment of the third. This raised the spectre
of an alliance between the two great Catholic monarchies for joint action
against England. An agreement to this effect was actually concluded, at
Spanish instigation, in March 1627. Buckingham may have suspected the
existence of this agreement; he was aware of the possibility and of the danger
of invasion.41 That Spain was considering an agreement with the Dutch from
1627 onwards increased this threat.42 Matters were worsened for England
when Charles and Buckingham became obsessed with raising the siege of the
Huguenot stronghold of La Rochelle. Their attempt in 1627 to open the
sea route to the town was a disaster in which more than 3,000 Englishmen
died. Charles chose to blame himself rather than Buckingham.43 These events
had serious consequences for English domestic politics. The processes of
pressing and billeting and the pursuit of the French war were most unpopular.
The troops were kept under arms during the winter of 1627—8, and the sum
total was widespread fear and discontent in the country. It was as if new
counsels might truly be at hand.44 Added to this, the gross mismanagement of
the war had created an overwhelming need for the crown to find further
funds.
On 29 January 1628 the Privy Council resolved to recall Parliament.45 The
debate which led to this decision was a bitter one stretching over several
months. The critical factor was the financial one. One estimate of December
1627 indicated that a sum of over half a million pounds was urgently required
39
Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 2 9 4 - 3 0 0 , 3 4 9 , 3 6 1 - 2 .
40
T. Cogswell, 'Prelude to Re: the Anglo-French struggle over La Rochelle, 1624-1627',
History, lxxi, 231 (1986). I am grateful to Tom Cogswell for allowing me to read this article
before publication.
41
Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 1 6 3 - 4 ; Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 3 4 9 , 3 6 1 - 2 ; Elliott, Richelieu
and Olivares, pp. 8 7 - 8 , 9 6 .
42
J. Alcala-Zamora y Queipo de Llano, Espana, Flandes y el mar del norte (1618—1639)
Barcelona, 1975), p. 299.
43
Gardiner, History, vi, p. 198; Russell, Parliaments, p. 330; Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 4 0 2 .
44
Rushworth, Historical collections, i, pp. 4 7 3 , 4 7 5 ; SP16/95/8, SP16/95/9, SP16/95/41,
SP16/101/35, SP16/102/45, SP16/106/31, SP16/107/49; Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 50;
Russell, Parliaments, pp. 3 3 5 - 7 , 339n.
45
William Laud, Works, ed. W. Scott and J. Bliss (7 vols., Oxford, 1 8 4 7 - 6 0 ) , iii, p. 207.
Buckingham's England in crisis 17
for the war effort. Two basic policy avenues were available: the summoning
of Parliament or the imposition of further unparliamentary levies. There were
several other options. Of these last, the debasement of the coinage had
already been rejected, the Council decided against an excise, further loans
from the City required securities (preferably future parliamentary subsidies),
and the continued sale of crown lands would result in a lowering of the prices
received.46 The moderate Councillors enlisted the advice of Sir Robert
Cotton, the scholar-antiquary, in countering the arguments of the anti-
parliamentary hard-liners (led by the king, Laud and Buckingham). Cotton
tendered his advice to the Council in a tract, The danger wherein the kingdom
now standeth and the remedy. Cotton understood the situation in
Elizabethan terms of Habsburg aggression and of England's need for self-
defence. He considered that another forced loan would be refused and
advocated the calling of Parliament. In Cotton's view this would restore
confidence in the constitutional balance between king and subject and would
maintain the social order against popular power by removing discontent. A
Parliament could be used to pacify religious as well as constitutional fears and
to represent Buckingham's administration as an instrument of reform.
Cotton cited Burghley's supposed words to Queen Elizabeth I: 'Win hearts,
and you have their hands and purses' - a motto for government by consent.
Cotton predicted correctly that the next Parliament would be dominated by
concern for the liberties of the subject. Clearly he saw the danger facing the
nation as caused by a failure of counsel. His was the most articulate statement
of a movement for political reform which grew during 1628 as the crisis of the
Buckingham era reached its height.47 While it is difficult to measure the politi-
cal effect of Cotton's intervention, his arguments certainly strengthened
the hand of the moderate majority: men such as Pembroke, Coventry,
Manchester, Sir John Coke and Richard, Baron Weston. The decision to call
Parliament constituted a major victory for this group and came about when
Charles decided to forego more extreme measures.48
It is difficult to discern the king's thinking at this point. A proclamation he
issued in February 1628 concerning a proposed levy of Ship Money (eventu-
ally abandoned) echoed his stated policy at the time of the forced loan: that
the summoning of Parliament would be conditional upon his people's
46
R. P. Cust, 'The forced loan and English politics 1 6 2 6 - 1 6 2 8 ' (London University PhD
thesis, 1984), p. 100 (I am grateful to Dr Cust for allowing me to cite his thesis); Cust, The
forced loan, pp. 7 2 - 3 , 75-6; J. P. Cooper, 'The fall of the Stuart monarchy', in NCMH, iv,
p. 555.
47
Cust, The forced loan, pp. 80-2 and 'The forced loan', pp. 107-11; Rushworth, Historical
collections, i, pp. 471-6; K. M. Sharpe, 'The earl of Arundel, his circle and the opposition
to the duke of Buckingham, 1618—1628', in Sharpe (ed.), Faction and Parliament, p. 235 and
passim.
48
Cust, The forced loan, pp. 8 0 - 1 ; Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan',
pp. 231-3.
18 Charles I and the road to personal rule
49
Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan', pp. 2 1 9 - 2 0 .
50
Here I tend to differ with the interpretation offered by Dr Cust, w h o sees Charles at this point
and in general as a monarch w h o gave great weight t o Council advice. Charles could be
inflexible and overbearing in Council and unheeding of unwelcome opinion o n major issues
of domestic and foreign policy. See Cust, The forced loan, pp. 41—2 and n, 56, 8 2 - 5 , 8 7 - 8 ;
and below, chapters 3 , 6, 7, 8.
51
CD1628, ii, p. 3 ; Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 2 2 7 - 8 .
52
Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 2 2 5 - 6 , 2 2 9 ; CSPV1628-9, p. 2 1 ; N U L , N e . C , 1 5 , 4 0 4 , p. 2 1 0 .
53
Russell, Parliaments, p p . 3 2 6 - 7 , 3 4 2 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p . 1 8 9 ; Sharpe, 'The
earl of Arundel', p . 2 3 5 ; Gardiner, History, vi, p p . 2 3 1 - 2 ; S P 1 6 / 1 0 1 / 4 3 ; see also
SP16/105/55.
Buckingham's England in crisis 19
54
C. Carlton, Charles I, the personal monarch (London, 1983), p. 109.
55
CD1628, ii, p. 58. See also Russell, Parliaments, pp. 2 2 4 - 7 .
56
Russell, Parliaments, p. 3 4 3 ; Guy, 'Origins of the Petition of Right'; L. J. Reeve, T h e legal
status of the Petition of Right', HJ, xxix, 2 (1986).
20 Charles I and the road to personal rule
measure was intended to achieve the aims of the Commons by explaining the
law in a form traditionally used in appealing to existing rights but which was
also an ancient form of legislation.57 The Commons wished to secure their
confirmation of the liberties of the subject in return for supply. They therefore
voted the subsidies in principle but shelved the supply bill to await the con-
firmation. In effect they wished the two matters to proceed together.58 Clare
wrote to the earl of Oxford that he regretted this necessary purchasing of
native liberties; but he considered the Parliament to be crucial for the future
of the kingdom: an event which could save the king and his people from being
driven to extremes.59 In the circumstances, five subsidies (eventually
£275,000) was an inadequate sum, but it was unprecedentedly generous and,
as Clare remarked, 'a most bountiful retribution'. It was sufficient to extract
concessions from Charles and to sustain his interest in the Parliament. In
response to the initial vote of supply he told the Council and the lower house:
'At the first I liked Parliaments, but since [then] (I know not how) I was grown
to distaste of them. But I am now where I was. I love Parliaments. I shall
rejoice to meet with my people often.'60 It is unlikely, however, that Charles
had undergone such a fundamental change of heart. His earlier antipathy had
gone deep, and in 1628 he did not wish to jeopardize a grant as yet incon-
clusive. This Parliament came to cause him great trouble. The delay to supply
further undermined his war effort, and the nature of that delay, the debates
culminating in the Petition of Right, were a significant constitutional threat.
The parliamentary session was actually the scene of a conflict between
Charles's espousal of a kind of absolutism and those who sought to defend
the traditional rule of law. As Digges understood, 'We are now upon this
question whether the king may be above the law, or the law above the king.
It is our unhappiness but it is put upon us.'61 The Petition of Right was the
Parliament's attempt to resolve this question.
Finally, in June, Charles was faced with the need to agree to this legislation
against the use by the crown of arbitrary imprisonment, unparliamentary
taxation and martial law. 62 The House of Lords had rejected a proposal for
including a saving clause in the Petition which would have protected a
residual royal prerogative. Having already given one evasive answer to the
Petition and being forced to a better by his financial need, Charles gave his
definitive royal assent. When he agreed to the Petition's being enrolled as a
statute and printed, a procedure which would give it legislative force, the
57
Reeve, 'Petition of Right', pp. 2 6 6 - 7 .
58
Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 2 3 9 - 4 0 , 2 5 0 - 1 , 2 5 4 ; Russell, Parliaments, pp. 3 6 0 - 1 ; Birch, i,
p.341;SP16/98/52.
59 60 61
NUL,Ne.C, 15,405, p. 168. CD262S,ii,p. 325. Ibid., iii, p. 98.
62
The Petition would appear to have declared illegal the use of martial law save in armies in
time of war. Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 46n; Russell, Parliaments, p. 353.
Buckingham's England in crisis 21
Commons proceeded with the subsidy bill.63 They considered the printing of
the Petition to be politically as well as legally important, and the document
was circulated in the country by leading members of the gentry. Numerous
bonfires were lit to celebrate its receiving the royal assent, the number of fires
apparently increased by the rumour that Buckingham was to be sent to the
Tower.64 Undoubtedly the advocates of the Petition were delighted that they
had achieved the legal guarantee they sought. Charles, however, nursed a
sense of injury. He was reported to have discounted the five subsidies as
nothing in the light of the offence he had received. Having failed to avoid the
legal implications of the Petition with an evasive answer, he endeavoured to
subvert the parliamentary order for the unembroidered printing of the
measure, an action exposed in Parliament in 1629. 65 He seems to have been
fearful, and resentful, of what he had conceded. He would later seek strenu-
ously to resist some of the legal implications of the Petition of Right.
The Petition, of course, had a more general constitutional significance
greater than the sum of its parts. But it is the immediate legal and political
implications of the measure, together with the wider ideological context of
the parliamentary session, which are most important here. In legal terms,
statutory revision in important areas of the royal prerogative (together with
continuing royal resistance to such reform) suggested that under Charles the
role of the law might be changing, that in response to his rule it might become
less a vehicle of social cohesion and more an instrument of political dissent.
This was, in fact, to be a salient feature of political change in England as
Charles's personal rule emerged. It gives the report that Charles considered
attempting to ban lawyers from the 1628 session the ring of truth.66
Politically, the Petition of Right was the product of a national war crisis
which had led to fear over the meaning of Charles's policies. Those policies
suggested constitutional change and the threat of alien ways. In 1628 Parlia-
ment challenged him to govern in traditional fashion - under the law and in
co-operation with the assembled political nation. It expressed a widespread
desire for reform and employed and sought to satisfy public opinion. In the
Petition it also issued a warning to Charles of the lengths to which it would
go to achieve such reform: to withhold badly needed supply and to resort to
legislation. In the particular sense the Petition was a success. It encouraged
the king to desist from forced loans and (to a lesser extent, as will be seen)
63
CD1628, iv, pp. 2 2 0 - 1 , 2 8 0 - 1 , 3 3 1 ; Reeve, 'Petition of Right'.
64
Hirst, 'Court, country, and politics before 1629', p. 113; Russell, Parliaments, p. 3 8 9 ; Birch,
i, p. 3 6 2 ; Hill, 'Parliament and people', pp. 1 1 7 - 1 8 ; CD1628, iii, p. 102.
65
AGS, E2517, fo. 7 9 ; E. R. Foster, 'Printing the Petition of Right', HLQy xxxviii (1974-5).
See also NUL, N e . C , 15,405, p. 58.
66
P. Gregg, King Charles I (London, 1981), p. 170.
22 Charles I and the road to personal rule
arbitrary imprisonment. But it did not alter his instinct towards non-
parliamentary rule; neither could it prevent his later use of other excuses for
non-parliamentary fiscal aid - schemes such as knighthood fines and Ship
Money.67
The successful use of supply as a bargaining tool was a remarkable aspect
of the session of 1628 — the more remarkable given the moral pressure upon
the Parliament to pay for the war. Financial leverage was translated into
considerable political power, signifying that Parliament could influence the
king and, to an extent, shape the nature of his rule. Parliament had not
succeeded in this in 1624 because it was more difficult for it to influence
foreign policy, but also because the crown had not yet contracted war debts.
Parliamentary influence was premised upon the financial need of the king.
Once that need were removed, Parliament could be powerless and could even
cease to exist. Its survival depended upon a destination for its financial
appropriations as well as upon its ability to appropriate.
The debates which produced the Petition of Right saw one political
development with the most far-reaching implications. On 26 May Charles
lost the vote in the House of Lords on the proposed saving clause protecting
his prerogative. This critical vote constituted almost a test of loyalty to the
crown. Charles was defeated because he could not command the support of
an important group among his nobility, a group which swung the debate
against him. Essentially these were the same men who had opposed the loan:
Saye, Clare, Essex, Lincoln and Warwick. To these were added Bedford, who
by 1628 had become an opponent of arbitrary taxation; Archbishop Abbot,
whom Charles had humiliated for refusing to license the sermons justifying
the loan; and three men who had suffered political exclusion (and, in the case
of the last two, imprisonment) at Buckingham's hands: Bishop Williams and
the earls of Arundel and Bristol. In swaying the vote these men led an align-
ment of what were reported to be 'the more ancient nobility'. In an hierarchi-
cal society a monarch who could lose the support of the aristocracy on such
a scale was in deep trouble. Clearly those who turned the tide in the Lords had
an interest, in some cases very sincere, in maintaining the rights of the subject.
They were also men who in various ways had become personally alienated
from Charles and his regime. In destroying the saving clause they were insist-
ing upon legal guarantees and were showing what was, in effect, lack of trust
in the king. Experience of Charles had shaped their personal and political
attitudes together. The nobility were well placed to ascertain the thinking and
conduct of the king. Doubtless many of them had learnt of Charles's promi-
nent role in the proceedings concerning the forced loan. And it was in the
House of Lords in 1628 that Buckingham made the amazing revelation that
67
I am grateful to Christopher Thompson for this point.
Buckingham's England in crisis 23
the king had sanctioned the attempted perversion of the record in the Five
Knights' case.68 Several weeks later Clare felt able to write to his son in terms
which were remarkably unsympathetic towards Charles. He reported the
king's refusal to allow redefinition of the law of habeas corpus and how this
would, it was expected, break the Parliament. He made it clear that he
supported the efforts of the Commons to register their demands and to
proceed on a course which would (Clare believed) case the responsibility for
failure upon the king.69
All this is not to suggest that the disillusioned peers had abandoned any
attempt to work with Charles. Arundel continued to do so. It was understood
among the peerage that Charles was a young king, and the general resentment
of Buckingham accounted for much. After the upper house had agreed to the
Petition of Right without addition, one of their number, Weston, arranged
for an occasion of reconciliation between Charles and the dissident peers.
They were admitted to the king's presence and kissed his hand.70 That this
was seen to be necessary, however, underlines the distance which had
emerged between Charles and these men. Unquestionably, the session of
1628 left a legacy of ill will (particularly on Charles's part) and of suspicion.
The king rewarded Bishop Williams's advocacy of the Petition by depriving
him of what had become but the nominal title of Privy Councillor.71 By 1628,
among those leading subjects who had opposed Charles, the precious store of
trust was seriously diminished. This could only weaken the foundations of his
rule. An attitude of confidence in and respect towards the monarch was not
only the basis of the social order; it was the element which ultimately made
the English constitution workable.
Despite the constitutional conflict involved in the making of the Petition of
Right, such conflict was not the aim, at least not the conscious aim, of those
assembled in Parliament. Their concern was not to alter things but rather, as
they saw it, to solve the problem of a system which was failing to work when
(they thought) it should have done.72 The basic ideological context of early
Stuart political life — the ideal of cosmic (and constitutional) harmony and its
concomitant suspicion of novelty — was being forced to accommodate a
political reality of tension and conflict with Charles's attempt at new
counsels. In the same way that the loan had been rationalized by an appeal to
divine right, Charles told Parliament in 1628 that he possessed a royal
68
Guy, 'Origins of the Petition of Right', p. 300. See also Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council,
and the forced loan', p. 2 3 0 ; Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 276; Russell, Parliaments, p. 374;
Birch, i, pp. 3 4 6 - 7 , 358; G. R. Elton, rev. art., TLS, 16 Sept. 1983, p. 9 9 1 .
69
NUL, Ne.C, 15,404, pp. 213-14.
70
Birch, i, pp. 3 5 8 - 9 ; Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 4 4 0 ; see also SP16/529/19.
71
H. R. Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, 1573-1645 (2nd edn, London, 1962), pp. 8 6 - 7 .
72
Russell, Parliaments, pp. 5, 339.
24 Charles I and the road to personal rule
evil counsel. The leading members of the house were clearly seeking to believe
in the virtue of the king. Eliot was particularly insistent in his conviction that
Charles could not offend. Sir Edward Coke summed up the feeling of the
house: 'We must with all endeavour free the king, who hears and sees by other
men's ears and eyes.'76 Charles's response was to order that no reflection
should be made upon his ministers or his government. On 11 June the
Commons proceeded to disobey this order when, after four hours of debate,
they resolved to name Buckingham in the remonstrance as the cause of all
dangers to the king and kingdom.77 It is difficult to avoid the conclusion that
the accusations heaped upon the duke were born of the Commons' fear that
the king might be suspect.78 And, much as they sought to avoid it, the remon-
strance came to read as an indirect attack upon the king himself.
What were the specific threats identified by the Commons? Initially they
were listed as innovation in religion, innovation in government, and the
disasters and dangers abroad and at home. These themes were woven into
one indivisible pattern of fear. The forced loan was held to provide clear
evidence of new counsels; and Sir Nathaniel Rich attacked those who had
supposedly preached a doctrine of absolute sovereignty before the king. This
constitutional threat was linked to the fear of Arminians and Catholics and
to the apprehension of a general alteration in religion. The Commons held
that the execution of laws against recusants and Jesuits had been lax, that the
duchess of Buckingham was a great favourer of Catholics, and that open
masses were held at the court of the queen: contentions which were all
essentially true.
It was Christopher Sherland, on the first day of the debate, who broached
the subject and the logic of a popish fifth column: 'Are not many trusted in
services and employments that are known papists? What success can we
expect?'80 This idea met with immediate recognition in the Commons and it
is the key to their thinking, as fully developed, in 1628. The threats to the
godly commonwealth at home were one and the same with those to Prot-
estantism abroad - and just as powerful. In this context those who allowed
their religion to become corrupt would be abandoned by God. In Sir Edward
Coke's words: 'God has punished us because we have not spoken plainly
[against religious innovation]... and until we do so God will not bless us, nor
go out with our armies.'81 Phelips concluded: 'These things have made God a
76
CD1628, iv, p. 260; and see ibid., pp. 1 2 8 - 9 , 1 3 2 , 1 4 0 , 1 5 0 , 1 6 0 .
77
Ibid., pp. 1 1 3 , 1 3 8 , 2 5 1 ; Birch, i, p. 237.
78
Russell, Parliaments, p. 3 7 8 ; Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 4 6 9 .
79
CD1628, iv, pp. 1 4 3 , 1 4 6 , 1 5 8 - 9 , 1 6 9 - 7 0 ; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 3 4 - 6 .
80
CD1628, iv, p. 116. See also the substance of Jeremiah Dyke's fast sermon of 5 April. J. F.
Maclear, 'The influence of the puritan clergy on the House of Commons, 1625-29', Church
History, xiv (1945), pp. 276ff.
81
CD1628,iv,p. 119.
26 Charles I and the road to personal rule
counsellor to our enemies and a general to their forces. Now fall these things
at a time when our religion is almost extirpate in Christendom.'82 God's
judgement was swift and simple: in time of war corruption gave the enemy
victory within and without. Sherland believed that the north of England was
almost half composed of papists: 'so far as they go the king of Spain conquers
already . . . ' 83 Sir Edward Coke cited Homer on the fall of Troy to show that
fifty men in the heart of a city could do more damage than a thousand outside:
'I fear no invasion if there be not a party within.'84 The enemy, Coke made
clear, was Spain: the same enemy who had sent the Armada, had sought to
poison Queen Elizabeth, had engineered the Gunpowder Plot, and was still
seeking to extend its monarchy over England.85 For men believed that Roman
religion and Spanish monarchy were allied forces. Strode pointed out that the
invasion had begun when a Petition of Right was required: 'The liberties have
been so invaded that we are exposed to a foreign destruction.' The remon-
strance was now more important than the Petition: 'A man mending his
chamber and [who] sees his house falling will not mend that but the whole.' 86
At the intersection of these religious and political threats stood Buckingham,
the chief agent of destruction. Kirton voiced the fears of many in saying that
the duke endeavoured to make them slaves, conspired with their enemies, and
had some dangerous plot upon them.87
Yet Buckingham, Richard Knightley emphasized, was not only an enemy to
England but to Christendom.88 The conviction that the dangers to England
were part of a wider European drama was the dominant and unifying theme
of the remonstrance debate. It was the international context which appeared
to prove so graphically that Arminianism was the forerunner of popery. By
1626 the king and Buckingham had committed themselves to the Arminian
party in the English Church - the king more deeply out of religious sympathy
and the duke somewhat cynically out of political calculation. Calvinist pre-
destinarian doctrine was outlawed, Laud was promised the see of Canterbury
(and in 1627 with Bishop Neile was admitted to Council), and ecclesiastical
preferment, it seemed, was now open only to those of their persuasion.89 The
82 83 84 85
Ibid., p. 169. Ibid., p. 120. Ibid., p. 1 6 3 . Ibid., pp. 1 4 3 ^ , 2 4 8 .
86
Ibid., p. 154. It was also Pym's belief that the rule of law existed to protect true religion; see
C. Russell, 'The parliamentary career of John Pym, 1 6 2 1 - 9 ' , in P. Clark, A. G. R. Smith and
N . Tyacke (eds.), The English commonwealth 1547-1640 (Leicester, 1979), p . 1 6 4 and
passim.
87
CD262S,iv,p. 130.
88
Ibid., p. 1 2 0 .
89
Trevor-Roper, Catholics, Anglicans and puritans, p. 66; Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 307,
449; CSPD 1627—8, p. 400; N. Tyacke, 'Puritanism, Arminianism and counter-revolution',
in Russell (ed.), Origins of the English civil war,pp. 132—3. The Tyacke thesis concerning the
rise of English Arminianism has recently been questioned; see P. White, 'The rise of
Arminianism reconsidered', P&P, ci (1983). This article is unconvincing in two significant
respects: the failure of the anti-Arminians to register their case in Parliament is no argument
Buckingham's England in crisis 27
for the emerging character of the Caroline episcopate; and White does not appreciate the link
between Roman Catholicism and Arminianism in the English Calvinist mind. Yet White has
usefully suggested the need not to accept Tyacke's argument uncritically and has stimulated
debate. See N . Tyacke and P. White, 'Debate. The rise of Arminianism reconsidered', P&P,
cxv (1987). See also Lake, 'Calvinism and the English Church*.
90
CD1628, iv, p. 120; Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 6 0 - 3 , 7 6 , 1 7 5 , 1 9 0 , 2 3 1 - 3 , 2 3 5 , 300.
91
CD162S,.iv,pp.252,269.
92
Tyacke, 'Puritanism, Arminianism', p. 134; Russell, Parliaments, pp. 2 9 7 - 9 .
93
CD1628, iv, pp. 1 4 2 , 1 5 5 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 2 2 8 - 3 0 .
94
CD1628, iv, pp. 1 4 5 , 1 4 7 , 1 5 1 , 1 5 7 . The Commons were also alarmed to discover that the
crown had sought to raise cavalry in Germany.
28 Charles I and the road to personal rule
scare, bears out that the towering structure of fear in the remonstrance debate
was erected upon factual foundations. Yet fear of the Irish was another
manifestation of the belief in a Catholic fifth column: a force which appeared
to be making great strides towards the extinction of Protestantism in
England.
Government speakers could not allay the fears triggered by the remon-
strance debate. On 14 June the House voted to present the document to the
king (along with a list of the extensive English losses at sea during the
previous three years).95 In effect the remonstrance was a statement of the
English Calvinist view of the world in 1628. 96 It began by denying that the
Commons wished to cast any aspersion on Charles or his government.
According to the document most or all of the things in it were either unknown
or had been misrepresented to Charles. The Church and commonwealth were
in danger of ruin and destruction. The failures at Cadiz, Rhe and La Rochelle
were the measure of England's decline from power to contempt. The royal
assent to the Petition of Right had, stated the remonstrance, much allayed the
fear of an alteration in government. But these gains were in danger of being
eclipsed by a wholesale international conspiracy against free government and
true religion. Observation of the European scene, where the Protestant
countries and reformed Churches were under threat and in decline, provided
the evidence that developments in Britain were part of the same greater
design, 'some secret and strange co-operating here with the enemies of our
religion abroad for the utter extirpation thereof. This was a judgement of
God, 'always bent against the neglect of his holy religion, the strokes of whose
divine justice we have already f e l t . . . in great measure'.97
The remonstrance condemned Arminianism as crypto-popery which undid
states and churches from within; hence James I had striven to suppress it, in
neighbouring countries as well as in England. This was essentially a reference
to James's intervention against Dutch Arminianism at the Synod of Dort
(1619). Such an appeal to Jacobean policy was very significant in 1628. In
England James had presided over a Church of moderation and breadth. But
this later invocation of his policy demonstrates clearly the political import-
ance of the late king's official commitment to orthodox Calvinism - an
importance revealed in the fear produced when men believed that commit-
ment had ended. The sense of a religious decline or a palace revolution since
James's death could only encourage suspicion of Charles's rule.98 As well as
95
Ibid., pp. 1 2 0 - 1 , 1 4 5 - 6 , 170, 3 1 1 . The Commons showed a degree of tact in sending the
subsidy bill up t o the Lords before seeking an arrangement for the presentation of the
remonstrance to the king; ibid., pp. 3 3 1 , 334—5.
96 97
CD162S,iv, pp. 311-18. Ibid., p. 314.
98
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 15; P. Collinson, The religion of Protestants (Oxford,
1982), pp. 79ff., 282, and passim; Russell, 'Career of John Pym', pp. 159ff.
Buckingham's England in crisis 29
99
CD1628,iv, pp. 312-14.
100
Ibid., pp. 148-9,155,161,165,170-2,200ff., 314-16.
101
Ibid., pp. 316-17.
102
Ibid., pp. 352 and n, 3 5 4 , 4 8 0 ; Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 3 1 6 - 1 7 , 3 2 0 .
103
CD1628, iv, p. 352n, vi, pp. 52-6 and n. See also Laud, Works, vi, pp. 636-7; Cust, The
forced loan, pp. 78—80. The remonstrance had accused Laud himself of unsound opinions;
CD162S,iv,p.313.
30 Charles I and the road to personal rule
it does our person; for it makes not only ourself weak and apt to be led, but all our
Council ciphers... it has cast scandal upon us and our government through the whole
body of it; for it makes both Church and state appear so disjointed that our loyal and
dutiful subjects must needs be perplexed in their thoughts while they live in a govern-
ment that neither stands right with God nor itself, if all were true that is
remonstrated.104
The traditional notion of evil counsel had never been further than the
shortest of steps from a reflection upon the monarch. In a situation such as
that prevailing in 1628 this distinction could not be sustained. The basis for
alarm was that, as events had shown, Charles was susceptible to such counsel.
This was the basis for Pym's fast-growing distrust, inspired by the rise of
Arminianism.105 Belief in evil counsel and suspicion of the king were not
mutually exclusive ideas, and in this case concern with one involved a necess-
ary concern with the other. Laud had identified this link and the dangerous
accusation to which the Commons were being forced. Charles chose to leave
Laud's answer unpublished. He probably did not wish to advertise the threat
to which it drew attention. But he failed to understand the nature of that
threat, for he proceeded not to remove but to strengthen it. There is a tragic
irony in his eventual speech to both houses proroguing the Parliament, which
referred to the remonstrance as a document which no wise man could
justify.106 As with new counsels and the new official commitment to
Arminianism, so with the doctrine of evil counsel, Charles was placing
enormous pressure upon the traditional English view of monarchy. The
Commons' appeal to his father's religious policy had been a significant (and
perhaps an intentional) warning. After Charles rejected the remonstrance the
house was reported to be discontented, and some men, despite the Petition of
Right, to have regretted granting Charles the subsidies. The earl of Carlisle
considered that Charles had fallen in the estimation of his subjects because of
his tolerance of Buckingham.107 The general confidence in Charles inspired
by the launching of a war against Spain on his accession was, by 1628, gravely
impaired. The majority of the Commons had no great experience of court
politics and they harboured more illusions than the Lords about the nature of
104
Ibid., CD1628, vi, pp. 5 5 - 6 ; see also Sir William Beecher's comment in the Commons, that
the remonstrance could be a threat to the allegiance of the king's subjects if it fell into the
hands of England's enemies; ibid., iv, p. 3 3 4 .
105
Russell, 'Career of John Pym', pp. 1 5 9 - 6 5 .
106
CD1628, iv, pp. 352n, 480.
107
The exact nature of Carlisle's observation remains unclear as the evidence has been filtered.
The earl made a statement to the duke of Savoy which was reported by Gerbier. The Spanish
summary of his report states that Charles was disliked ('era mal quisto') by all his kingdom
on account of Buckingham; AGS, E2042, unfol. relation of Gerbier's report, c. autumn
1628. On regret at having granted the subsidies see Birch, i, p. 366; see also P. Clark,
'Thomas Scott and the growth of urban opposition to the early Stuart regime', HJ, xxi, 1
(1978), pp. 18-19.
Buckingham's England in crisis 31
royal power. It was axiomatic, even more for the Commons than for the
nobility, that the monarch should be above suspicion. What was the linchpin
of Englishmen's conception of political society could not easily be dis-
turbed.108 But a painful and enduring tension was created when Charles
encouraged men to think the almost unthinkable - a tension which could only
damage the workings of national politics.
In addition to the remonstrance, the final weeks of the session created what
would be a dangerous political legacy when Parliament resumed. No agree-
ment was reached about the legality of the customs duties, duties which
Charles was continuing to collect. The Commons wished to demonstrate that
these revenues were enjoyed by parliamentary authority. Partly to underline
this point, they intended to reform the system of rates. This complicated the
bill for tonnage and poundage, which was inadvertently shelved in favour of
other business, particularly the Petition of Right, until mid-June. The further
technical difficulty emerged that over the years it had become difficult to
distinguish between customs and impositions. On 20 June the Commons
discovered that Charles and Buckingham were also investigating the rates.
Since the Jacobean period, the Commons had seen royal exploitation of the
customs as a threat to Parliament's control over taxation. On 21 June the king
told the Commons specifically that it was he who had called upon Sir
Edmund Sawyer, an auditor of the Exchequer, and Abraham Dawes, one of
the customs farmers, for information. It emerged that the new book of rates
was Sawyer's project; but Charles's message remained both constitutionally
and financially alarming. The Commons sent to the king to ascertain how
much longer he would allow them to sit. They indicated that the matter of
tonnage and poundage had become difficult and intimated that a temporary
act for the duties might be passed. Charles apparently rejected the suggestion
on the basis that his predecessors had been granted tonnage and poundage for
life. The Commons then requested that the session be not prorogued but
rather adjourned. The envisaged legislation would then authorize all duties
collected since the beginning of the session. An adjournment would also
allow the house to work on the matter in committee during the recess. Charles
refused an adjournment, announcing on 23 June that in three days he would
prorogue the Parliament until 20 October. The Commons then set to work on
a further remonstrance to declare the collection of tonnage and poundage
without an act of Parliament illegal and against the Petition of Right. The
document requested that Charles collect no duties until the next session,
when the legislation would be passed, and that he take no action against those
refusing to pay.
On 26 June Charles prorogued the Parliament several hours earlier than
108
Russell, 'Career of John Pym', p. 159; Ashton, The English civil war, ch. 1.
32 Charles I and the road to personal rule
109
CD1628, iii, pp. 447, 454-6; iv, pp. 392-3, 405-6, 407 and n, 408-10, 427, 447, 449n-
50n, 468, 470-1, 480n, 481-3; vi, pp. 119,198; Birch, i, pp. 433-4,437; Russell, Parlia-
ments, pp. 78, 386-7; Russell, Crisis of Parliaments, p. 322; M. C. Alexander, Charles I's
Lord Treasurer (Chapel Hill, 1975), pp. 134-6; D. Thomas, 'Financial and administrative
developments', in Tomlinson (ed.), Before the English civil war, p. 103; Gardiner, History,
vi, pp. 323-4,326-8; vii, pp. 3-6; Hirst, Authority and conflict, pp. 102-3,110,112,116.
Buckingham's England in crisis 33
110 m
Russell, Parliaments, pp. 335-7, 343. CD1628, ii, p. 3.
112 113
Huxley, Endymion Porter, p. 156. Ashton, City and the court, pp. 180-1.
114
Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 318-20; Birch, i, pp. 364-5,367; Barrington family letters 1628-
1632, ed. A. Searle (Camden Society, London, 1983), p. 245.
115
Russell, 'Career of John Pym', p. 162; NUL, N e . C , 15,405, p. 58.
116
Birch, i, p. 369; CSPD 1628-9, p. 198; CD1628, iv, pp. 424 and n, 428 and n, 433,435-7,
440.
117
Birch, i, pp. 373-4; CSPD 1628-9, p. 179; CD1628, iv, p. 404n.
118
Manwaring had been sentenced to imprisonment at the pleasure of the House of Lords and
to pay £1,000; Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 3 1 2 - 1 3 , 3 3 0 - 1 ; CSPD 1628-9, p. 198.
119
Birch, i, pp. 372,374-5.
34 Charles I and the road to personal rule
125
There may also have been reason to suspect Eliot's financial affairs. Alexander, Charles I's
Lord Treasurer, pp. 1 3 6 - 7 ; Knowler, Strafford letters, i, p. 47; John Hacket, Scrinia reserata
(2 pts, 1693), pt 2 , pp. 82—3; P. Zagorin, 'Sir Edward Stanhope's advice to Thomas
Wentworth . . . ', HJ, vii, 2 (1964), pp. 3 0 1 , 305, 314; Russell, Parliaments, p. 79; C. V.
Wedgwood, Thomas Wentworth, first earl of Strafford 1593-1641: a revaluation (London,
1961), p. 68.
126
Gardiner, History, vi, p. 3 7 1 ; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 3 4 - 5 ; SP16/529/15. After
Buckingham's death Weston made overtures of political alliance to Carlisle, abroad on a
diplomatic mission. Carlisle was a 'trimmer' and despite his anti-Habsburg leanings recog-
nized Weston's influence and decided to favour peace with Spain. R. E. Schreiber, The first
Carlisle {TrAPS, lxxiv, pt 7; Philadelphia, 1984), pp. 1 - 2 , 1 1 4 , 1 8 8 ; SP16/123/3.
127
SP16/529/15; Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 3 7 1 - 2 ; Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer
p. 138; Archivo del Duque del Infantado, Madrid, Palafox Mss, leg. 94, fo. 136v, Coloma's
instructions for Necolalde, 2 6 May 1631 (n.s.), where Cottington's attitude t o Spain is
described as 'bonisamente'. I am grateful to John Elliott for this reference. See also chapter
6, below.
36 Charles I and the road to personal rule
guard upon Buckingham. There were threats against the duke and prophecies
of his death, one of which indeed predicted that he would die in August.128
Felton came to repent of his act, but his initial belief that he had done a pub-
lic service was entirely correct insofar as Buckingham was now removed from
the political scene. The duke's death was the cause of celebration and relief
amongst all classes. For it was believed that better days and better counsel
were to come. Beyond the duke's immediate family, the one individual we
know to have grieved was Charles.129 Buckingham was the only friend he had
ever had, and since James's death Charles had been emotionally dependent
upon him. The public rejoicing at the assassination seems to have offended
Charles very deeply and to have played a part in distancing him from his
people. Charles also acquired the idea that Parliament, or at least Eliot, had
murdered his friend by means of the remonstrance.130 The king's later refusal
to release Eliot's body from the Tower was for Charles almost certainly the
execution of a vendetta. It is entirely reasonable to think that Charles's
attitude towards Parliament was never fully dissociated from Buckingham's
death.131
Despite the public expectation that the duke's demise would usher in a new
era, what followed appeared to many a continuation of the old. Sir David
Murray wrote in December to James, earl of Carlisle: 'there is no great change
for the ghost doth yet walk'.132 Charles's immediate reaction to Bucking-
ham's death was to attempt to continue the duke's policies, particularly the
war with France and the cause of the relief of La Rochelle. The king sought to
demonstrate that he had not been simply the instrument of the duke. 133 He
also wished to remain loyal to Buckingham's memory. His commitment was
further evident in his burial of Buckingham in the Henry VII Chapel at
Westminster (until then reserved for anointed kings and princes of the blood
royal), in his payment of the duke's debts, and in his favour to the Villiers
family which included the raising of Buckingham's sons with the royal
children.134 According to Clarendon, from 1628 almost to the time of his own
death, Charles admitted few persons into any degree of trust who had been
enemies of the duke or objects of his dislike.135 Arundel is an obvious excep-
128
Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 4 5 3 , 4 5 8 , 4 6 3 ; SP16/107/78, SP16/114/21; Birch, i, pp. 3 6 8 ,
4 0 1 ; Lindley, 'Riot prevention', pp. 1 1 3 - 1 4 .
129
Laud and Dorchester also felt deeply the loss of a patron and ally. See Lockyer, Buckingham,
p. 4 5 4 ; SP16/114/7, SP16/114/17, SP16/116/4; Laud, Works, vii, pp. 1 6 , 1 7 n - 1 8 n .
130
Russell, Crisis of Parliaments, p. 308; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 227—8.
131
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 38.
132
SP16/123/7.
133
AGS, E2517, fo. 74; NUL, N e . C , 15,404, p. 2 1 5 ; Birch, i, pp. 3 9 6 - 7 ; SP16/529/15.
134
Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 4 5 8 , 4 6 0 - 1 ; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 2 5 6 n. 55; Birch, i, p. 390;
Laud, Works, vii, pp. 1 8 - 1 9 .
135
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 38.
Buckingham's England in crisis 37
tion to this rule. Yet it underlines the distance which existed during the 1630s
between the court and men such as Save, Clare, Essex and Warwick. It also
helps to explain Charles's continued objection to them, beyond the fact that
they were critics of the king himself.
The overriding consequence of Buckingham's death was the focusing of
public attention upon Charles. This occurred at the moment when he was
forced further into a political role to which he was ill-suited. The extent to
which Charles governed during the Buckingham era should not be underesti-
mated. His rare appearances in Council were highly influential in deciding in
favour of a forced loan. 136 Yet Buckingham had enjoyed virtual carte blanche
in the distribution of patronage and the direction of foreign policy; and he
had made a large share of the running in the government of Church and state.
Charles, by contrast, was left in 1628 with complete responsibility for the
conduct of national affairs. Buckingham's death brought a solution to the
political impasse which had been created by Charles's refusal to give up the
duke.137 Yet it exacerbated the problem of the extent to which men could
have confidence in Charles himself. The removal of Buckingham was to bring
those who doubted the king a step closer to recognizing him as the cause of
their grievances. The Commons' remonstrance of 1628 had carried danger-
ous implications about Charles's kingship; but Buckingham had been
eminently eligible for the role of evil counsellor. James I had looked upon
favourites as a screen which shielded the crown. 138 Buckingham's death
eliminated at a single stroke the personality who had served, in terms of
political logic, to explain entirely the unhappy state of the nation. To a degree
the rejoicing at Buckingham's death reflected the public desire to believe in
the king. The idea was also voiced that Buckingham had influenced Charles's
views in an abiding way and that the king needed the correction of good
counsel. This was a significant extension of the belief that Charles was
susceptible to bad advice.139
But it was also a statement of hope. There was a momentary release of
optimism after Buckingham's death which linked the desire for political
reform and constitutional harmony with the hope, and in some cases the
confidence, that Charles's virtues would now emerge. William, earl of
Pembroke, wrote to the earl of Carlisle in August that the duke's death 'grows
every day more favourable to me', adding: 'the king our master begins to
shine already and I hope this next session to see a happy agreement between
136
Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan', pp. 2 1 3 - 1 4 .
137
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 87.
138
Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 4 7 3 .
139
SP16/529/20, Sir Robert Aiton to James, earl of Carlisle, 2 9 Sept. 1628, and see above,
pp. 3 0 - 1 .
38 Charles I and the road to personal rule
him and his people . . . ' 140 Viscount Dorchester also wrote to Carlisle of the
king at this time that 'by his manner of proceeding I believe he will give his
subjects contentment in being the sole director of his affairs, leaving every
man to the compass of his charge.'141 Sir Francis Nethersole wrote: 'the stone
of offence being removed by the hand of God, it is to be hoped that the king
and his people will now come to a perfect unity . . . ' 142 The combination of
hopes of the king with hopes of political betterment was a powerful one
which implied more serious disappointment if such expectations were not
fulfilled. It also carried within it the power to widen political division: desire
for reform begged the question of the kind of reform required,143 and on this
question there was to be serious disagreement.
Thus in late 1628 a very substantial section of opinion became eligible for
deep disillusionment with the king. Ultimately it was that section which
espoused the sitting of Parliament, an end to Arminian appointments in the
Church, and war with Spain in the Protestant cause. The hopes of men such
as Pembroke, Dorchester, Nethersole and Sir Thomas Roe, who represented
these views at court, were in time disappointed. These men, however, seem to
have preserved their optimism about the king a little longer than their non-
court counterparts in the Providence Island Company and elsewhere. 144 It
was at the end of 1628, with the unobscured figure of the king being seen in
a fuller political role, and with renewed hopes being built upon the death of
the duke of Buckingham, that Charles decided to govern in kingly fashion, in
Dorchester's words as 'the sole director'. Having been cast in the role of a
cipher by the Commons' remonstrance Charles wanted to vindicate his inde-
pendence. Under the circumstances this made his views and responsibility
unmistakable. During the 1630s Charles was to look back on the Bucking-
ham era as a distinct period.145 The duke's death was a watershed which, by
changing Charles's position, changed the nature of his rule - as well as others'
perceptions of it - irrevocably.
No minister was ever to receive Charles's confidence as Buckingham had
done. As a result court politics came to reflect, to a limited extent, more of an
interaction of personalities and views than was possible during the Bucking-
ham era. The duke's death had created an immediate power vacuum. The
principal beneficiaries, besides Charles, were Weston and the queen.
Henrietta Maria had been in no position to influence Charles during her early
years in England. She was only fifteen at the time of her marriage in 1625. The
marriage was not initially a success, largely owing to the couple's difference
140 141
SP16/529/9; see also SP16/529/19. SP99/30/fo. 127r.
142
SP16/114/7; see also SP16/529/21, SP16/529/40.
143
Hill, 'Parliament and people', p. 2 6 5 .
144
Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 3 1 - 2 ; and see chapters 4, 5, 6, 7 and 8, below.
145
AGS, E 2 5 6 2 , unfol., consulta of 2 0 N o v . 1631 (n.s.).
Buckingham's England in crisis 39
in religion. Above all, Charles's life was dominated by the relationship with
Buckingham until 1628. With the duke's death, however, the queen came
into her own. She and Charles fell lastingly in love and her influence upon the
king was greatly increased. The queen's conception of monarchy was more
autocratic than constitutional; yet she was not a particularly political
creature. Richelieu sought in vain to have her take any significant part in
matters of government. But in questions of patronage and in deciding the
social membership of the court she acquired considerable influence. Around
the queen congregated a number of pro-French courtiers, notably the earl of
Holland, and puritan sympathizers whose anti-Spanish sentiments caused
them to hanker after a French alliance. Henrietta also became an active
Catholic proselytizer and protector of Catholics in Britain.146 Weston, as the
most powerful political figure about Charles after 1628, was a natural rival
to the queen. The rivalry was worsened since in seeking to control expendi-
ture he clashed with her over money. 147 These two competing groups, around
Weston and the queen, came to constitute opposing court interests during
these years. In terms of foreign policy they corresponded with French and
Spanish preferences, although English affairs were to be complicated by the
division in French politics, between Richelieu and his opponents, when it
was exported in 1631.
Another section of opinion survived the Buckingham era at court which is
best described as the independently Protestant. The leading exponents of this
view were Pembroke and Dorchester. Anti-Spanish and pro-Dutch, they were
also pro-French, but not as close to the queen as the earl of Holland. Charles's
affection for the Herbert family148 and the wealth and position of the earls of
Pembroke enabled the third earl to remain a strong advocate for the
Protestant-parliamentary interest virtually until his death in 1630. 149 As
Chancellor of Oxford he ensured the University's propagation of predesti-
narian Calvinism until Charles's declaration in 1628 silenced the theological
counter-attack against the Arminians.150 Viscount Dorchester, better known
as Sir Dudley Carleton, was a distinguished career diplomat who rose to high
office through Buckingham's favour in the 1620s. As English ambassador to
146
SP16/121/34, SP16/123/3; PRO 31/3/66/fos. 1 2 5 v , 2 1 3 v , 255r; AGS, E2517, fo. 76; Russell,
Crisis of Parliaments, p. 3 0 0 ; SRO, Hamilton Mss no. 11134; Adams, 'Spain or the Nether-
lands?', p. 9 1 ; DNB, s.v. Henrietta Maria; K. M. Sharpe, 'The personal rule of Charles F, in
Tomlinson (ed.), Before the English civil war, p. 5 8 ; Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 2 5 1 - 2 ,
2 9 3 - 4 ; R. M . Smuts, 'The puritan followers of Henrietta Maria in the 1630s', EHR, xciii
(1978); Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 41-2,47-8,51-8, 60,228-9.
147
CSPV1629-32, pp. 142, 527; SP16/121/34, SP16/529/17; Birch, i, p. 419.
148
I am grateful to Kevin Sharpe for this point.
149
William, earl of Pembroke, was Lord Steward. See Russell, Parliaments, pp. 1 2 - 1 4 ;
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 7 1 - 4 ; Birch, i, pp. 4 0 6 , 4 0 8 ; H M C , 11th report, Appx I,
p. 165; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 87.
150
Tyacke, 'Puritanism, Arminianism', p. 133.
40 Charles I and the road to personal rule
151
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', ch. 1; SP16/123/3.
152
On the Council's efforts to extract the maximum yield from the subsidies of 1628 see NUL,
Ne.C.,15,405,p.58.
Buckingham's England in crisis 41
guarding the mouth of the Elbe. That on the west side, Stade, was garrisoned
by English troops under Sir Charles Morgan. Stade was also important for
England as an entrepot for the cloth trade. Morgan's force, however, had
been neglected by the English government, while Charles and Buckingham
used every penny for the war with France. The English contingent with
Denmark, originally 5,000 strong, had dwindled through mutiny and
desertion to less than 4,000. In February Christian asked Morgan to hold out;
but the miseries of the English troops were daily increasing and it was made
clear to the government in England that unless it sent money immediately the
town would be lost. The burghers of Stade would advance little credit to the
English ambassador, Anstruther, and the agents of the international financier
Burlamachi would offer nothing without undertakings in England. Many of
the troops died of hunger. With the enemy advancing and with no help forth-
coming, Morgan surrendered with his remaining 2,000 men on 24 April,
writing to England that he had ever acquainted them there with the state of
affairs.153 While Christian's position east of the Elbe was deteriorating
rapidly, Charles's commitment to his uncle had died of neglect.
On the French front Charles and Buckingham fared no better. By 1628 the
disputed Mantuan succession was precipitating conflict between France and
Spain in Italy. Despite the desire of Louis XIII to lead an army over the Alps,
Richelieu concentrated French efforts on the siege of La Rochelle: Huguenot
resistance was to be extinguished before the escalation of the Italian war. 154
On 1 May the English fleet, under Denbigh, arrived off La Rochelle, finding
the town heavily besieged. With the town unapproachable, and with the wind
blowing from the landward, the English decided to await the spring tides
which would allow them to use fire ships. Denbigh weighed anchor and
returned to England in confused circumstances, having achieved nothing. 155
Charles had wanted to keep the fleet at La Rochelle and to send reinforce-
ments. He grew impatient with the Commons who had not yet passed the
subsidies. In the third week of May he was angered to learn that the fleet was
returning home. He and Buckingham resolved upon another expedition as
soon as possible.
Denbigh's force, however, was broken and scattered. Three vessels of corn
were taken by the Dunkirk privateers. The ships at Portsmouth were ill-
provisioned and in disrepair, the men sick or ready to desert. It was these cir-
cumstances which forced Charles to give his assent to the Petition of Right:
153
Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 1 8 7 - 9 ; Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 2 9 0 - 1 ; Clay, Economic
expansion, i, p. 119; SP75/9/fos. 40r, 62r, 121r-122r, 132r-v.
154
Parker, Europe in crisis, p. 2 0 2 ; Lettres, instructions diplomatiques et papiers d'etat du
Cardinal de Richelieu, ed. D . L. M. Avenel (8 vols., Paris, 1 8 5 3 - 7 7 ) , iii, pp. 1 1 8 , 1 2 1 .
155
Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 2 9 1 - 2 ; SP16/103/57, SP16/103/61, SP16/104/3, SP16/104/8,
SP16/104/17.
42 Charles I and the road to personal rule
156
SP16/103/80, SP16/104/8, SP16/104/60-1, SP16/105/28, SP16/105/73, SP16/108/18,
SP16/108/22, SP16/110/10, SP16/112/45, SP16/528/75; NUL, N e . C , 15,405, p. 5 8 ;
Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 437, 445; Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 2 9 2 - 3 ; Birch, i, p. 350;
Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. 114—15; R. Ashton, The crown and the
money market 1603-1640 (London, 1960), pp. 1 3 2 - 4 1 , 1 7 1 .
157
Birch, i, pp. 352, 3 6 9 - 7 0 , 376, 3 8 4 - 5 ; R. J. W. Swales, T h e Ship Money levy of 1628',
B/HR, 1 , 1 2 2 (1977), p. 167.
158
SP75/9/fos. 160r-163r; PRO, 47th Deputy Keeper's report, Appx, pp. 6 9 - 7 0 ; Gardiner,
History, vi, pp. 346-7.
159
SP75/9/fos. 72r, 82r, 84r-85r, 126r, 161v, 162v; SP16/108/10.
160
SP16/112/75; one official report indicated at this time that £ 1 , 3 0 0 , 0 0 0 would be needed for
impending war expenses and for debt repayment while the five subsidies could not be
expected to yield more than £ 3 0 0 , 0 0 0 ; Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer, pp. 1 2 7 - 8 ,
133-4.
Buckingham's England in crisis 43
161
Alexander, Charles Vs Lord Treasurer, pp. 1 2 9 - 3 0 .
162
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 8 6 - 7 .
163
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 4 2 ; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. 105;
AGS,E2517,fo.77.
164
Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 1 6 0 - 3 , 1 8 5 ; The letters of Sir Peter Paul Rubens, ed. R. S. Magurn
(Cambridge, Mass., 1955), p. 165. Buckingham broke off the talks in October 1627.
44 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Spain. By the early summer both men were speaking of the Habsburgs with
great respect. On 24 June the Spanish Council of State resolved to look into
the dealings with England and to receive an ambassador.165 At the Hague,
Elizabeth and Frederick suspected that there were negotiations with Spain,
but Charles sought to keep developments from them. Early in August the
English envoy, Endymion Porter, left London bound for Madrid. He sailed to
the Hague and saw the Palatines but did not discuss his mission. He arrived
in Madrid in the last week of September and was welcomed by Olivares.
Between Porter's departure from England and his arrival in Spain, Bucking-
ham was removed from the scene. Weston wrote to Porter within days of the
duke's death, stating that the instructions with which he had been furnished
still held good. Porter was to return to England, having launched the Anglo-
Spanish treaty, and Cottington would then leave for Spain to continue the
talks.166 Cottington also wrote to Porter giving him news of another develop-
ment: Venetian diplomats were working to bring about peace between
England and France.167 To the Spanish faction in England this was a poten-
tially sinister development which could undermine the progress made with
Spain. Charles, Cottington wrote, was resisting any dialogue with France.168
It was Buckingham, in the weeks before his death, who had sanctioned these
concurrent negotiations.
Buckingham's resort to diplomacy was essentially forced upon him by
England's failure in war against the two nations. Charles and Buckingham
hoped to obtain a German settlement from Spain by peaceful means. They
also wished to continue the French war until coming to satisfactory terms
with Louis and Richelieu. Buckingham was surely aware of the fact that
parallel dealings with France and Spain could well improve his leverage with
each nation.169 But his preference was clearly to end the Spanish war first. By
the summer of 1628 this was a key objective for Buckingham and for his
French ally Marie, the duchess of Chevreuse. Marie de Chevreuse, a woman
of great ability and ambition, was by marriage a member of the house of
Guise, a cadet branch of the ruling dynasty in independent Lorraine. In 1626
she had been involved in a conspiracy to assassinate Cardinal Richelieu. The
cardinal saw her as the prime mover of the international coalition against
him. Banished to Poitou, she escaped to Lorraine and continued to plot
165
Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes, pp. 262—3; Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer,
pp. 2 4 - 7 ; Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 4 2 1 - 2 , 4 4 9 - 5 0 ; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years
War, iii, pp. xxviii, 1 0 5 - 6 ; AGS, E2517, fos. 73, 83, 8 6 - 7 , 107; Magurn, Rubens letters,
pp. 246, 248—53, 2 8 1 - 9 0 ; A. J. Loomie, 'Canon Henry Taylor, Spanish Habsburg
diplomat', Recusant History, xvii, 3 (May 1985), pp. 2 2 5 - 6 .
166
SP16/111/44; AGS, E2517, fos. 72, 7 6 - 8 , 1 0 5 ; Huxley, Endymion Porter, pp. 1 5 8 - 6 2 .
167
AGS,E2517,fo. 105.
168 169
Ibid. Ibid., fo. 5 5 .
Buckingham's England in crisis 45
against Richelieu and his ministers. In August 1628 she was scheming with
Buckingham, and with pro-Habsburg elements in France, to achieve the goal
of peace between England and Spain. This rapprochement might be used to
bring down the cardinal by a combination of diplomatic and military
pressure. The scheme was encouraged by Mirabel, the Spanish ambassador in
Paris. In England, Charles and the earl of Holland were involved in the
Chevreuse-Buckingham alliance. The king had a particular affection for
Marie de Chevreuse, and Holland, besides being loyal to Buckingham, had
been her lover.170 Buckingham wanted the Anglo-Spanish treaty to be a
personal triumph and hoped to conclude it himself in a Spanish port (while
leading the fleet against La Rochelle).171
Peace with Spain would free England to concentrate against France, but
Buckingham had a more complicated aim than this. He sought to kindle war
between France and Spain over Mantua and by so doing gain further advan-
tages for England.172 This was an ambitious and dubious plan which
necessitated freeing Spain for an Italian war. Buckingham's illogical war
policy had led him to adopt a desperate diplomatic policy. For England to
benefit from an Italian war would require subtle and cohesive diplomacy and
the risks were considerable. The Palatines could be left with nothing and
England could lose her allies. The Dutch were suspicious from the outset and
considered dealings with both Spain and France duplicitous.173 Their judge-
ment was certainly correct if England were to remain at war. But Bucking-
ham's death at this critical juncture left an emerging division in the English
government, between those who favoured continuing the war with Spain and
those who favoured a general peace. This was a contest of which only time
would determine the outcome and which had implications for the wider situ-
ation from Scandinavia to Madrid. Thus, during the autumn and winter of
1628, the balance of Europe hung upon the negotiations of England with
France and with Spain, and Europe awaited the outcome. 174
England's friends and allies had long sought an end to the war between
170
It seems that Charles and Buckingham were seeking to link the French and Spanish treaties
by means of the duchess and her scheme, an arrangement rejected by Olivares; ibid., unfol.
letter of Mirabel from Paris, 10 Oct. 1628, and fo. 52. See also ibid., fos. 54, 111; V.-L.
Tapie, France in the age of Louis XIII and Richelieu (Cambridge, 1984), p. 157;
M. Prawdin, Marie de Rohan, duchesse de Chevreuse (London, 1971), pp. 32, 34, 45, 49,
50—1; Elliott, Richelieu and Olivares, pp. 107—8,115; B. Donagan, *A courtier's progress:
greed and consistency in the life of the earl of Holland', HJ, xix (1976), pp. 3 2 2 - 3 ; CSPV
1628-9, pp. 2 8 9 , 4 9 1 ; BL, Harl. Ms 6988, fo. 73r-v.
171
AGS,E2517,fo. 107.
172
Gardiner, History, vi, p. 3 3 3 ; Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 4 4 9 - 5 0 ; BL, Harl. M s 1584, fos.
173r-174v.
173
CSPV 1628-9, pp. 237-8.
174
SP92/14/fos. 103r-109v; CSPV 1628-9, p. 4 4 0 ; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War,
iii, p. 255.
46 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Buckingham and Richelieu. The conflict was a strategic disaster for the anti-
Habsburg and Protestant causes and a corresponding gift of good fortune to
Spain and Austria. The Palatines, the Dutch, the Danes and the Venetians
were appalled at the destructive struggle between these two western powers.
Venice, in her vulnerable geographical position and fearing Habsburg
encroachment, had a particular interest in ending the war of distraction. The
Venetians were also horrified at Buckingham's plan to enlist Spain in making
Italy a Franco-Spanish battlefield. At the beginning of 1628, Elizabeth of
Bohemia had written to Buckingham of the need to end the French war in the
interests of Germany and Denmark.175 Her request had gone unheeded, and
by the summer, largely as a result of the Anglo-French war, the imperial
victories over the Danes and the German Protestants were virtually complete.
In the councils of England, Dorchester had opposed the French war from its
inception as a ruinous policy. He advocated alliance with France, considering
the Anglo-French war akin to a civil war, and feared for England in a struggle
with both the great Catholic powers. During the summer of 1628 he worked
to influence Buckingham in favour of peace with France. Dorchester's
viscountcy and prominent role in the administration reflected the duke's
developing willingness to settle with Richelieu.176 It was Buckingham's
unpopularity in England and the increasing difficulties of waging the French
war which caused him to contemplate peace with France in mid-1628. But he
still wished to raise the siege of La Rochelle. Such a feat of arms would satisfy
his honour and might bring Richelieu to negotiate upon English terms.
According to Spanish sources, Buckingham disposed of his personal affairs in
August, as if he intended to embark perhaps never to return.177 He wanted to
do something heroic which would settle the conflict and combine the glory of
war with the need for peace. Henrietta Maria and Dorchester were respon-
sible on the English side for launching the negotiations with France. The
queen was greatly concerned to end a war between her husband and her
brother.178 This diplomacy was pursued in conjunction with the Venetian
representatives who acted as mediators between the two nations.
175
Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 1 8 8 - 9 , 2 0 1 ; SP99/33/fo. 92r; The letters of Elizabeth queen of
Bohemia, ed. L. M. Baker (London, 1953), p. 76.
176
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 2 0 - 2 ; SP78/78/fos. 167r-168r; SP84/138/fos. 2 0 8 r -
209v; SP92/13/fo. 228r; C], i, p. 845b; CSPV 1626-8, pp. 60, 128; CSPV 1628-9,
pp. 206-9, 222-5, 465-6; Gardiner, History, vi, p. 341.
177
The will proved after Buckingham's death was drawn up in 1627 (Lockyer, Buckingham,
p. 460) but there may well have been a finality about his preparations in 1628. See AGS,
E2517, fos. 4 7 , 70; AMRE, CPA, 4 2 , fo. 280r; J. H. Barcroft, Buckingham and the central
administration 1616—1628 (University of Minnesota PhD thesis, 1963; published Ann
Arbor, 1964), pp. 2 4 3 - 4 ; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. 106; CSPV
1628-9, p. 225.
178
CSPV 1628-9, p. 310.
Buckingham's England in crisis 47
The first overtures for peace in the Anglo-French conflict were made by
France. Richelieu's hatred for Buckingham was intense, and it was principally
the threat of peace between England and Spain which moved him to deal with
the duke and to attempt to foil an Anglo-Spanish agreement.179 In August a
proposal for peace between England and France was sent by Zorzi, the
Venetian ambassador in France, to Contarini, his colleague in England. The
desire of the Venetians for self-defence against the Habsburgs and their fear
of the outbreak of wholesale war in Italy gave them a common interest with
Richelieu in preventing peace between England and Spain. Contarini had
recently talked with Dorchester, who objected to treating with Spain and
shared the desire of the Venetians to end the war with France. Thus it was
Dorchester whom the Venetians approached in England with the French
overture. The negotiations were launched while Charles was absent at
Portsmouth. It was proposed that honour be satisfied by a meeting between
the duke and the cardinal at La Rochelle, in the presence of the besieging
forces and the English fleet. Yet Buckingham suspected Richelieu, who might
use the negotiation to delay the fleet, misrepresent the affair to the Rochellois
and even treat with Spain. The Huguenot envoys in England spoke strongly
against negotiations, and Buckingham's suspicions were deepened by a con-
sultation with Charles. But the duke, encouraged by Dorchester, hearkened
to the idea, and it was arranged that the matter would be agreed in Charles's
presence on 23 August.
The meeting never took place for on the way to it Buckingham was
assassinated. His death was in fact a temporary setback to peace. Charles did
not trust the French and was not inclined to negotiate. He decided that the
fleet should sail. He conceded that if, when it arrived off La Rochelle, Louis
had been induced by the Venetians to give peace to the Huguenots and raise
the siege of the town, he would be prepared to negotiate if the interests of the
Huguenots were included in the treaty. Charles considered himself bound to
interfere between Louis and his subjects as guarantor of the 1626 agreement
between Louis and the Rochellois. He also wished to redeem his honour, and
that of Buckingham, by victory, military or moral, over the French. With
Buckingham dead and Richelieu delighted, the Huguenots constituted the
principal obstacle to a settlement.180 After Lindsey's fleet had sailed, Charles
was won over to the idea of peace with France. This was achieved with great
difficulty, by the combined efforts of Dorchester, Contarini, Henrietta Maria
and probably Lord Treasurer Weston. The negotiations were revived when
179
SP92/14/fos. 168r-169v, SP92/15/fos. 81r-83v; CSPV1628-9, pp. 196-7,388.
180
AGS, E2517, fo. 105; SP16/118/66; SP99/30/fos. 126r-127r, 146r-149r (Birch, i, pp.
388-9, 391-4); CSPV 1628-9, pp. 206, 223, 230-2, 242-3, 260-1, 273-6, 305, 575-6;
Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 345-7, 361, 363; Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 296-7, 450-1.
48 Charles I and the road to personal rule
the queen obtained a promise from Charles that he would keep any under-
takings he made to her or to the Venetians. Contarini and Dorchester facili-
tated matters, encouraging a correspondence between the queen and her
mother, Marie de' Medici, in France. In England the treaty with France went
ahead.181
Buckingham's death had given Weston and Dorchester more influence over
foreign policy. In the immediate circumstances of the assassination both men
were in their element. The Treasurer, a conservative financial manager,
responded to the challenge of a fiscal crisis and Dorchester, the seasoned
ambassador, could operate amid the increasing diplomatic complexity.
Charles understood that he needed these men. He made them jointly respon-
sible for the peace negotiations with France: an affair in which their different
views of policy coincided.182 Weston basically approved of the treaty, being
an advocate of peace; he also wished to avoid the disfavour of the queen. 183
But he did not pursue the dealings with France with any degree of vigour, not
wishing to jeopardize the concurrent negotiations with Spain. Dorchester,
anti-Spanish in the Elizabethan tradition, was unable to halt the Anglo-
Spanish dialogue kept alive by Weston and Charles. Buckingham's death,
however, changed the direction of that dialogue. The murder of the duke
dealt a fatal blow to the strategy he had pursued with Marie de Chevreuse: a
strategy involving the use of an Anglo-Spanish axis against Richelieu and the
possible continuation of the French war. After Buckingham's death Charles
and Holland wrote to Marie, stating that they wished to continue the policy
and to make no peace with France before doing so with Spain.184 However
much Dorchester and Weston were aware of these communications, this was
not a plan to appeal to either man. Neither wanted to pursue the French war,
and Weston did not wish to complicate the treaty with Spain. There was no
advantage for Holland in opposing the intentions of Dorchester and Weston,
not to mention the wishes of the queen. Charles allowed the French nego-
tiations to run a natural bilateral course. During Carlisle's mission on the
continent, which included dealings in Lorraine, the earl became the mobile
agent of Marie de Chevreuse's scheme, favouring a policy of peace with Spain
and war with France. Had he been in England his views might have influenced
181
PRO 31/3/66/fo. 114r; SP16/529/17; SP78/83/fo. 159r; Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 366-7;
Letters of Henrietta Maria, 1628-1666, ed. H. Ferrero (Turin, 1881), p. 35; CSPV1628-9,
pp. 183,308-13,339-40,362-3.
182
Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer pp. 128, 130; SP84/137/fo. 65r; CSPV 1628-9,
p. 286.
183
Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. 4 3 1 .
184
Charles made the same undertaking to the abbe Scaglia (in the service of Spain) at about this
time; ibid., pp. 2 5 6 - 7 . See also Prawdin, Marie de Rohan, p. 5 1 ; AGS, E2517, fos. 5 4 - 5 , 9 7 ,
111.
Buckingham's England in crisis 49
Charles. By the time of his return home in early 1629 the strategy was
effectively defunct.185
While affairs had thus altered in England during September, the English
fleet, under Lindsey, had arrived at La Rochelle. Zorzi proposed mediation
but Louis was wary. The French did not know what effect Buckingham's
death had had in England, and with the arrival of hostile forces the nego-
tiations appeared to be broken off. The English attacked unsuccessfully. On
30 September Richelieu wrote from his camp before the town to Mirabel in
Paris, professing his friendship for Spain. On 5 October Wat Montagu, the
son of the earl of Manchester, went ashore from the fleet and had lengthy
discussions with the cardinal. Two days later, he received Richelieu's
proposals which he took back to England. The French desired that La
Rochelle surrender to Louis and that Charles withdraw his support for the
Huguenots who would be allowed freedom of worship. If Charles ended his
Spanish negotiations, France would declare war against Spain for the com-
mon cause. Charles rejected these terms. He would support a grand alliance,
but unless the siege were ended and the Huguenots assured of their liberties
he would continue the war with France. Charles considered the French terms
a scandal, and Montagu was in disgrace. Although Lindsey was ordered to
persevere at La Rochelle, the town surrendered to the French in mid-October.
While Charles had failed in his military endeavour, an impasse had been
resolved for the peacemakers.186
There remained the general question of the Huguenots. For Charles this
was a question of honour and he wanted their interests to be guaranteed in
any Anglo-French agreement. Yet with the desire of his ministers to end a
disastrous war, which was not in the interests of a logical peace or war policy
for England, and with the resolve of the French that Charles should not inter-
fere in their internal affairs, it became increasingly clear to him that he could
do nothing. The leading members of the Council, wrote Contarini, would be
happy with some general form of pardon granted to the Huguenots, and he
added with cosmopolitan condescension: There is nothing in this save a trifle
of honour and a little Calvinistic conscientiousness.'187 Dorchester was the
leading English advocate of a treaty with France, and his attitude towards the
185
AGS E2517, fos. 62,94; AMRE, CPA, 42, fo. 379r; CSPV1628-9, pp. 238-9,491,505-6,
537-8, 550, 562; Gardiner, History, vi, p. 371; Schreiber, The first Carlisle, pp. 108,
110-11, 114, 116, 125; see also Calendar of the Clarendon state papers, ed. O. Ogle,
W. H. Bliss and W. D. Macray (3 vols., Oxford, 1869-76), i, Appx I, p. 7; Reade, Sidelights
on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. xlvi.
186
AGS, E2517, fos. 8 4 , 9 6 , and unfol. letter of Mirabel from Paris, 10 Oct. 1628; AMRE, CPA,
4 2 , fos. 356r, 361r; Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 3 6 3 - 9 ; SP16/118/28, SP16/118/66,
SP16/118/68; SP78/83/fo. 187; SP103/10/41,57; SP92/14/fos. 64r, 158r-159v, 164r ; CSPV
1628-9, pp. 325-6,441.
187
CSPV 1628-9, p. 3 1 1 , 4 8 9 ; SP92/14/fo. 164r.
50 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Huguenots was clear. He did not consider that they should be allowed to
obstruct a peace which was in the wider interests of Protestantism and
European self-determination. He had been responsible, with Holland, for
having the Rochellois agree to the treaty with Louis in 1626, with the inten-
tion of engaging France in the German war. Three years later he believed simi-
larly that the common cause should not go to ruin on account of the
Huguenots, who should be given no alternative by England but to make
peace. Contarini, who was anxious to eliminate all flashpoints between
England and France, suggested that if peace were offered to the Huguenots
they might not accept it. Dorchester replied that there was no doubt they
would, provided the conditions were reasonable. When the Venetian went so
far as to defend Richelieu's campaign against French Calvinism as self-
defence against pro-Spanish subversion, Dorchester 'who is discreet and
knows all [wrote Contarini], showed by a smile that he understood me, but
came to the conclusion that without this peace [between Louis and the
Huguenots] all the rest was vanity, as I also believe . . . ' 188
Dorchester's attitude was a remarkable combination of religious ideology
and reason of state. He knew that to assist the Huguenots was to assist the
enemies of France and of Protestantism, Spain in particular, and that to
obstruct the treaty with France was to allow the Spanish negotiations, now
promoted by Weston, to prosper. In addition there was the fact that if the
Spanish negotiations failed without an agreement with France, as Dorchester
understood, England would be left without allies. To him the need to con-
clude the peace with France was imperative. The situation was compounded
by Charles's confusion: he had inherited from Buckingham both the idea of
the French alliance and the dispute with Louis over the Huguenots, and the
difficulties of mending the duke's quarrel with Richelieu encouraged Charles
to turn to the overtures of Spain. The king's antipathy to the French, and his
commitment to the Huguenots, made more difficult what to Dorchester was
a vital task.189
Dorchester had his own objections to the French. Not only had they failed
to join the alliance of the Hague, but he resented their attempt to compete
with English sea power, and what he fancied was their vain attempt to intro-
duce popery into England.190 Yet he continued to believe in the possibility of
the French alliance. Throughout the winter and spring Dorchester worked
with Contarini to turn Charles against Spain, to restore the treaties with
188 1629-32, p. 84 (Contarini to the Doge and Senate, 29 May 1629). See also CSPV
c s p v
1628-9, p. 340; SP78/77/fos. 187r-188v, 286r; Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 296-7.
189
SP92/15/fos. llr-13r; CSPV 1628-9, pp. 339^0, 457-8; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 81-2.
190
CSPV 1628-9, p. 3 4 0 ; S P 1 0 3 / 1 0 / 1 - 3 , reply t o France, c. January 1 6 2 9 , Dorchester's argu-
ment that the French war w a s caused by French neutrality towards Spain, as well as by the
commitment t o the Huguenots.
Buckingham's England in crisis 51
France and conclude the peace.191 The French negotiations were hampered by
mutual distrust - promoted by the Anglo-Spanish talks and by Richelieu's
continuation of the civil war in France - and by French delays. The fall of La
Rochelle and the prospect of peace with England had freed Richelieu to lead
an army into Italy, and it was in the interests of France to occupy England
with diplomacy while avoiding an explicit commitment to Germany.192 By
the spring Dorchester's belief in the French option had diminished:
In effect all proves fraud and dissimulation which comes from France, it appearing
plainly there is no other end the French king aims at but the ruin of those of our
religion in his kingdom ... 1 9 3
The hope of an alliance was, however, later to be revived.194 In January
Charles appointed six Councillors to finalize the treaty, and final articles were
signed at Susa on 24 April. Former treaties, including Charles's marriage
contract, were restored. Henrietta's household would be regulated by mutual
consent. War prizes were to be kept. Freedom of trade was restored between
the two nations and commercial disputes were to be settled by agreement.
One article stated that the two kings would aid their allies. No mention was
made of the Huguenots.195 Dorchester drafted the proclamation of peace,
published on 10 May. It styled the French war an interruption of amity and
referred to the general state of Christendom and of public affairs which made
necessary the peace between England and France.196 When Dorchester wrote
to the English ambassador in Paris that 'the articles could be wished more
favourable', he doubtless regretted that the treaty was not an active
alliance.197 But it ended what was essentially a pointless war which had
greatly damaged international Protestantism and been an immense boon to
the Habsburgs. The Peace of Susa must have given Dorchester considerable
satisfaction.
While Dorchester had not wished the Huguenots to obstruct the treaty, the
French had not wanted them to be included and Contarini had laboured to
keep them out.198 After the fall of La Rochelle, Charles assured the Huguenot
leader, the due de Rohan, of his support in securing Protestant liberties in
191
SP92/15/fos. llr-13r; SP78/83/fo. 229; SP103/10, passim; SP101/10, newsletter from Paris,
4 Nov. 1628; CSPV1628-9, pp. 313-15,464-6,487-91; CSPV1629-32, pp. 44-5,61-2;
Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 372-3.
192
SP81/139/fos. 60r—62r; CSPV 1628-9, pp. 192-5, 206-9, 465-6, 484-91, 530; Parker,
Europe in crisis, p. 2 0 2 .
193
SP75/10/fo. 121r; see also SP84/139/fo. 60v.
194
SP78/84/fos. 184-6, SP78/87/fo. 535r-v; SP92/18/fos. 286v-287r.
195
CSPV 1628-9, p. 488; SP84/139/fos. 96r-97v; SP103/10/117.
196
SP78/84/fos. 103r-104r; SP45/10/fo. 182r; CSPV 1629-32, p. 62.
197
SP78/84/fos. 212-13.
198
SP78/83/fos. 210-11; CSPV 1629-32, p. 84; AMRE, CPA, 42, fo. 388r.
52 Charles I and the road to personal rule
France; but he also explained the need to conclude the peace. 199 Charles
agreed to omit the Huguenots from the public articles of the treaty so that it
could proceed. This concession was communicated to Richelieu in January
1629, by the Catholic earl of Nithsdale, who acted as a go-between seeking
to build some little trust between Charles and the cardinal.200 The Huguenots
feared persecution and called on Charles for aid. When none was forth-
coming they held the English in contempt.201 When their fate became the sole
obstacle to peace between England and France, Charles urged them to submit
to their anointed king. England would intercede for them at the time of the
treaty if they had not then received peace from Louis. 202 Dorchester, who con-
sidered their plight 'more to be pitied than (as affairs stand) to be presently
helped', committed their preservation to God. 203 Richelieu continued his
campaign against them. In June the Edict of Grace confirmed religious toler-
ation for the Huguenots, but their rights under the Edict of Nantes to their
own political and military organization were abolished. This agreement, the
Peace of Alais, was perceived across the Channel as a calculated public
affront to English honour.204 The most important consequence of peace
between England and France was a new antagonism, and near break,
between France and Spain, and the development of covert French partici-
pation in the European war which led to French entry in 1635. 205
Charles's negotiations with Spain took longer to reach an agreement than
those with France, but they were dealings on which he staked far greater
hopes. Buckingham's death had removed much of the drive for war within the
English government. Weston and Cottington used this opportunity to raise
Charles's expectations of a settlement with Spain. In early September 1628,
soon after the death of the duke, Charles was seen holding long conversations
with Cottington.206 On 30 September the king announced his decision to
prorogue Parliament again until January. The following day, Charles penned
a letter which made clear his desire to end the war with Spain. The letter,
which survives in the state archive at Simancas, was written to the abbe
199
SP78/83/fo. 195r, SP78/84/fos. 3 ^ .
200
AMRE, CPA, 4 2 , fo. 375r-v, and 4 3 , fo. 15r; CSPV1629-32, p. 1 and n; Avenel, Lettres de
Richelieu, iii, p. 149 and n; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 277; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 4 3 ; PRO,
47th Deputy Keeper's report, Appx, pp. 4 9 , 5 7 ; see also AGS, E2517, fo. 55.
201
SP78/84/fos. 32r, 3 4 - 5 , 4 0 r , 56-7,58r.
202
SP92/16/fos. 7r-8r, 103r-v; SP78/84/fo. 59r-v.
203
SP92/16/fos. 127r-128r.
204
SP78/84/fos. 1 1 8 - 2 0 , 1 2 3 - 6 , 1 6 2 r - v ; Parker, Europe in crisis, p. 202; Elliott, Richelieu and
Olivares, p. 100; CSPV 1628-9, pp. 83, 96.
205
SP101/10, newsletter from Paris, 4 Nov. 1628; C. V. Wedgwood, The Thirty Years War
(London, 1981), p. 3 9 1 .
206
AGS, E2517, fo. 76; Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 83; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes,
p. 263.
Buckingham's England in crisis 53
Scaglia of Savoy, then in the service of Philip IV.207 Historians have always
found it difficult to discern the aims of English policy at this critical time. 208
Charles's letter is key evidence of his thinking at the commencement of the
post-Buckingham era and of his intentions in meeting Parliament in 1629.
Scaglia had discussions with Charles in England during the summer of 1628.
The abbe sought to promote peace between England and Spain so as to
prevent French aid to the duke of Nevers in Mantua. 209 In September,
Endymion Porter and Scaglia left England together. While Porter travelled to
Spain via Italy, Scaglia went to Brussels to make his report to the Infanta. The
overtures of peace he brought from England were communicated by Isabella
to Madrid.210 Charles's letter of 1 October is one of a series he wrote to
Scaglia after the abbe left England. The surviving letter states clearly that the
message contained in the others was the same: Charles wished to assure
Scaglia of the steadfastness of his intentions and thanked the abbe fulsomely
for his role in the negotiations.211 When Charles prorogued Parliament in
October he was reacting to domestic as well as to foreign events. Meeting in
the autumn, Parliament would have opposed his use of the profits of the
Admiralty to liquidate Buckingham's debts.212 It would also have met amid
the bitterness which had survived the last session and the active resistance to
the payment of tonnage and poundage. But Parliament would also call for the
prosecution of the war. In postponing its meeting until January, Charles was
seeking to see the result of his treaty with Spain. He was, moreover, hedging
his bets. Parliament could make a continuing grant of the customs duties, but
it might also provide further support for the Spanish war. As his pro-Spanish
and anti-parliamentary sentiments developed together, Charles nevertheless
waited to see what time would bring.213
Porter arrived in Madrid ahead of the news of Buckingham's death. He
207
AGS, E2042, unfol, Charles I to Scaglia (holograph), 1 Oct. 1628. (One presumes that
Charles used the old style here: internal evidence is not conclusive.)
208
Russell, Parliaments, p. 392.
209
Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. 2 5 6 - 7 , 2 5 9 - 6 0 ; AGS, E2517, fo. 70.
210
H. Lonchay and J. Cuvelier (eds.), Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne sur les affaires des
Pays-Bas au XVIFsiecle (6 vols., Brussels, 1923-7), ii, p. 409; AGS, E2517, fos. 4 7 , 8 3 , and
unfol. letter of Mirabel from Paris, 14 Sept. 1628.
211
AGS, E2042, unfol., Charles to Scaglia, 1 Oct. 1628. See also ibid., Scaglia to Cardinal
Cueva, 21 Oct. 1628, which confirms the identity of Scaglia as the recipient of Charles's
letters and the substance of their message: * . . . de la voluntad de aquel rey, de estar en la
misma determinacion que quando yo p a r t i . . . ' .
212
AGS, E2517, fo. 76; Russell, Parliaments, p. 394; Stuart royal proclamations, ed. J. F.
Larkin, ii (Oxford, 1983), pp. 2 0 6 - 7 .
213
The Venetian ambassador was thus half correct in believing that the next parliamentary
session would decide the direction of foreign policy; CSPV1628-9, pp. 4 3 1 - 2 . It is possible
that lack of news from La Rochelle also influenced Charles's prorogation of Parliament; the
fleet had sailed on 7 September and word of another failure, arriving during the session,
could have wrecked the Parliament; Birch, i, p. 407.
54 Charles I and the road to personal rule
confirmed that Charles and the duke wished to negotiate. Olivares intended,
as he told the Council of State, to sustain the hopes which were held in
England for peace. He wrote to Charles of the good reception given to his
envoy.214 On 15 September a junta of the Council had resolved that the treaty
with England should proceed; three days later the Council heard the
spasmodic history of the opening of negotiations.215 Olivares seized upon
Charles's offer to have the treaty negotiated in Spain. Porter was instructed to
write to England that Charles's ambassador would be welcomed. The view of
Olivares, endorsed by the Council of State on 3 November, was that the
treaty should be bilateral: no mention should be made of Frederick or
Denmark until hostilities between England and Spain were ended. Clearly the
count-duke's intention was to break up the Protestant alliances in the
German war, but three key elements can be detected within this strategy for
negotiation. Peace with England was a vital goal which needed to be achieved
without delay. The English were to be allowed no leverage by war in the
Palatine question. Finally, the absence of any reference to the Dutch in the
Council proceedings of 3 November left room for Olivares to make a secret
alliance with Charles against the republic.216 To isolate the Dutch was always
a fundamental aim of the count-duke's international strategy. And he con-
sistently held to the notion that if he could achieve a military alliance with
England then all would be well. 217 Olivares set out to make the treaty of peace
the vehicle of such an alliance.
By mid-October word of Buckingham's murder had reached Madrid. The
Spaniards were anxious to know how this would affect the negotiations.
Porter had travelled to Spain as the personal envoy of Charles I, but he had
also come with letters of credence from the duke. Buckingham's influence
with his king was a fact well known in Spain, where the privado or favourite
had an established position in government.218 On 14 October Philip sent
instructions to the Infanta at Brussels: she was to learn the direction of
English policy and to sustain negotiations.219 The dialogue encouraged by
Scaglia and running through Flanders had been brought to an immediate halt
by the death of the duke. A correspondence was then established between
Weston and Cottington in London and Don Carlos Coloma at Brussels. As
well as being a key figure in the government of the Spanish Netherlands,
214 215
AGS, E2517, fos. 7 2 , 8 1 , 8 3 , 9 8 , 1 0 5 . Ibid., fos. 8 3 , 1 0 7 .
216
Ibid., fo. 9 1 ; see also ibid., fo. 7 2 , and Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii,
pp. 4 1 6 , 4 2 0 .
217
I am grateful to John Elliott for this point. See also Elliott, Richelieu and Olivares, p. 128.
218
AGS, E2517, fos. 7 2 , 1 0 7 ; J. H. Elliott, Imperial Spain 1496-1716 (Harmondsworth, 1970),
pp. 3 0 1 - 2 , 3 2 4 ; Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii, p. 4 1 0 n ; Reade,
Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. x x x .
219
Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii, p. 4 1 3 .
Buckingham's England in crisis 55
220
Cottington's and Weston's letters were sent in copy to Madrid; see AGS, E 2 5 1 7 , fos. 9 2 - 3 ,
9 9 - 1 0 2 , and E 2 0 4 2 , unfol., Weston to Coloma, 5 N o v . 1628 (old style?); Lonchay,
Correspondance de la com d'Espagne, ii, pp. 4 1 0 , 4 1 4 - 1 6 , 4 2 0 ; Alcala-Zamora, Espana,
Flandes, pp. 2 5 9 , 2 6 3 and n; Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer, pp. 1 0 , 4 9 , 1 5 4 ; Parker,
Army of Flanders, pp. 1 1 8 - 1 9 ; H. R. Trevor-Roper, 'Spain and Europe 1 5 9 8 - 1 6 2 1 ' , in
NCMH, iv, pp. 2 6 9 - 7 1 .
221
AGS, E 2 5 1 7 , fos. 9 2 - 3 , 9 9 - 1 0 2 , and E 2 0 4 2 , unfol., Coloma to Cottington, 2 6 Sept. and
n.d., unfol., Coloma to Weston, 2 6 N o v . , unfol., Coloma t o Weston and Cottington,
2 2 N o v . ; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes, p. 2 6 3 and n; Lonchay, Correspondance de la
cour d'Espagne, ii, pp. 4 1 6 , 4 2 0 .
222
AGS, E 2 5 1 7 , fo. 9 3 , Weston to Coloma, 2 8 Sept. 1 6 2 8 .
223
AGS, E 2 0 4 2 , unfol., copy of letter of Weston, signed by Cottington, to Coloma, 2 7 N o v .
1628. See also Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. x x v i - x x v i i , 2 5 9 .
224
Prince Frederick Henry, w h o died in 1 6 2 9 .
56 Charles I and the road to personal rule
225
Maria Anna. According to Venetian intelligence, Weston was supporting the idea of a
Spanish marriage; CSPV1629-32, p. 141.
226
Olivares insisted, however, that the Anglo-Spanish negotiations should not be linked to
those between England and France. AGS, E2517, fo. 52; see also AGS, E2042, unfol, Scaglia
to Cardinal Cueva, 19, 29 Oct. 1628, and E2517, fos. 9 1 , 108, 1 1 1 - 1 2 ; Lonchay, Corre-
spondance de la com d'Espagne, ii, pp. 4 0 0 - 1 , 4 1 7 , 4 2 2 ; CSPV 1628-9, p. 388; SP16/119/5.
227
AGS, E2517, fos. 58, 108; Birch, i, p. 453; letters of marque against Spain were being
restrained in England in November; Birch, i, p. 426. See also chapter 7, below.
228
SP84/138/fos. 172r-173r; Elliott, Richelieu and Olivares, p. 96; Israel, Dutch republic,
pp. 1 7 4 , 1 9 7 - 8 ; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes, pp. 2 6 2 , 5 2 6 ; G. Parker, The Thirty Years
War (London, 1984), p. 102; Parker, Army of Flanders, p. 295; Parker, Europe in crisis,
Buckinghatn's England in crisis 57
in the first week of 1629 and reported that Olivares and Philip wished to
negotiate. When Parliament reconvened, Charles would meet it in the knowl-
edge that he might now be able to choose between war and peace.229
pp. 190-2; Elliott, Imperial Spain, p. 335; J. H. Elliott, The count-duke of Olivares (New
Haven, 1986), p. 363.
229
Huxley, Endymion Porter, p. 162; AGS, E2519, exp. 2-3; Magurn, Rubens letters, p. 296.
1* 3 **
The death of a Parliament
The political events of 1628 had involved certain developments which had
come to disturb the customary workings of English political life. These
developments were even more visible during 1629 and particularly during the
new parliamentary session. There was a perceptible lack of trust in the king
which severely undermined the tradition of confidence in the monarch. This
was linked to the increasing alienation of Charles from his own people
(including his failure to attract essential aristocratic support). There was con-
tinuing debate over the character of his government, involving pressure on
the customary framework of constitutional practice and thought. There was
also the prospect of a breakdown in the provision of adequate war finance
and therefore in the conduct of an effective foreign policy. All these elements
were manifest in the session of 1629, and others would emerge in their turn
with the end of the Parliament. An examination of the events surrounding the
collapse of the parliamentary session suggests the elements of a new kind of
politics in England.
Reports of the political scene during the weeks before Parliament
reassembled confirm that Charles was leaving the principal question of policy
unresolved. A Spanish agent in London wrote in the middle of December that
the king seemed to favour the peace party. Another report to Spain written
only nine days later, probably by the same agent, stated that Charles was
thinking of continuing the war.1 He spent much time before the opening of
the session engaged in private consultation with Carlisle.2 The earl tended to
equivocate in matters of foreign policy and probably reinforced his king's
indecision. There was very strong pressure on Charles to hold a successful
session of Parliament. His desperate financial plight made a settlement of the
customs imperative.3 A demonstration of national unity would strengthen his
position abroad. There was also the perilous situation of his uncle, Christian
of Denmark, who was staking his hopes on the outcome of the English
1
AGS,E2519,exp.6,8.
2 3
Schreiber, The first Carlisle, p. 121. CSPV1628-9, pp. 503, 579.
58
The death of a Parliament 59
Parliament. By late 1628 Christian had suffered serious defeat at the hands of
Wallenstein and Tilly. More than half his forces had been lost and his lands
lay open to the imperial armies. His own people were divided against him and
opposed to the war. Spain, moreover, had ambitions for dominion in the
Baltic.4 Having made it clear to Charles that only powerful assistance could
prevent his capitulation to the emperor, Christian negotiated at Liibeck, seek-
ing to gain time. The Danish envoys in England urged the desperate position
of their king and enlisted Dorchester's support. Dorchester had a personal
commitment to the causes of German Protestantism and self-determination
and was predisposed to help the Danes. He wrote to the English ambassador
with Christian that he did not wish to see that king's affairs abjectly sub-
mitted 'to the law of a conqueror'.5 The official English response was that aid
would be sent in the spring and Dorchester reassured Christian of Charles's
commitment.6
Sir Thomas Roe was also a moving force for the northern war. At the begin-
ning of 1629 he returned from his diplomatic appointment in Constantinople
to England. In London and at the Hague he advocated a new strategic
alliance to sustain the Protestant powers of northern Europe and to fight for
German liberation. On arrival he conferred with Charles and, after Parlia-
ment had reconvened, gained the support of the Council for a proposal to
rearm Christian. Everything depended upon parliamentary finance. Weston
worked hard against these efforts to fuel the war.7 The simultaneous activities
of the war and peace lobbies during the winter of 1628-9 both reflected and
encouraged Charles's equivocal attitude to the new parliamentary session.
The king had a serious interest in the prosecution of the war and in the
prospects of parliamentary supply. He had made undertakings to his uncle
and his own treaty with Spain might yet fail. Charles believed it was the
insubordination of the previous session which had produced a poor yield
from the subsidies he had been granted.8 The careful preparations which he
made for the second session reflected his desire to give it a chance of success.9
Charles was fully aware, as he had told the Council in November, that
religious questions would preoccupy the Commons when Parliament
reassembled.10 His preparatory arrangements, begun during the previous
4
SP75/10/fos. 12r-15v; Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 187-9; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester',
p. 274.
5
SP75/10/fos. 19r-20r; see also CSPV1628-9, pp. 503-4, 529; PRO 47th Deputy Keeper's
report, Appx, p. 57; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 75—6, 273—4.
6
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 273—4.
7
Ibid., pp. 94-5; Gardiner, History, vi, p. 372; CSPV 1628-9, p. 537.
8
Russell, Parliaments, p. 398.
9
See also a memorandum which suggests that Charles may still have been considering non-
parliamentary means of funding the war; CSPD 1628—9, p. 482.
10
Birch, i, p. 439.
60 Charles I and the road to personal rule
summer, were informed by this awareness. In July it was announced that the
recusancy laws would be enforced and there was a subsequent rounding-up
of recusants in London. Charles declared to Council that he intended to put
all non-conformist Catholics out of office and commission. In December
Archbishop Abbot was allowed to appear at court and was readmitted to his
place in the Privy Council. Montagu was enjoined to renounce the Arminian
tenets on salvation and in January his book, Appello caesarem^ was sup-
pressed by proclamation.11 At the end of 1628 it was rumoured that Viscount
Saye and the earl of Bedford, those two pillars of aristocratic puritanism,
were to be made Privy Councillors.12 This may have been government dis-
information or simply popular rumour. It may have been a real possibility. In
any case it reflects the nature of Charles's political precautions. While
Buckingham lived, preparations for the next session were interwoven with his
securing of the domestic political front prior to leaving for La Rochelle. 13
Official suggestions of religious reform involved, necessarily, conciliation of
the parliamentary war lobby. Several weeks before Buckingham died, he con-
veyed expressions of respect and service to Horace, Lord Vere, the senior
English officer serving in the Low Countries and a key figure in the puritan
military connection.14 The appointment of Dorchester as Secretary of State in
December can also be seen as a significant concession to those who favoured
war. The Spaniards could only interpret his appointment as an act of
solidarity with the Dutch.15
At this time Dorchester himself was able to write: 'The Parliament is like to
hold at the appointed day, the twentieth of the next month; and all things by
his majesty's personal order in Council as well in church as commonwealth
are provisionally disposed that he may the better hope for a fair and loving
meeting with his people.'16 He also wrote to the English ambassador with
11
SP16/132/26; CSPD 1628-9, p. 451; Russell, Parliaments, p. 394; Birch, i, pp. 439, 449,
451; Larkin, Stuart royal proclamations, ii, pp. 199-201, 218-20. In June 1628,
Manwaring's two sermons, Religion and allegiance, were also suppressed; Larkin, Stuart
royal proclamations, ii, pp. 197-9; Welsby, George Abbot, p. 136.
12
Birch, i, pp. 440,447.
13
Russell, Parliaments, p. 391. Lockyer argues {Buckingham, p. 449) that in late 1628
Buckingham was preparing to renew his alliance with the anti-Arminians. It is likely that the
duke's pragmatism would have allowed him to contemplate some such reform of the
Church, but in practice it could not succeed. Charles was committed to the Arminians in
principle, and Buckingham's diplomatic strategy in late 1628 would have been upset by
concessions to the (anti-Spanish) Calvinist war lobby.
14
It seems that Buckingham also wished to conciliate Clare; NUL, N e . C , 15,405, p. 2.1 am
grateful to Simon Adams for information concerning Vere.
15
AGS, E2519, exp. 5; S. L. Adams, The Protestant cause: religious alliance with the West
European Calvinist communities as a political issue in England, 1585-1630' (unpublished
Oxford University D.Phil, thesis, 1973), pp. 419-20. I am grateful to Simon Adams for
allowing me to cite his thesis.
16
To James, earl of Carlisle, 19 Dec. 1628, SP92/14/fo. 225r-v.
The death of a Parliament 61
Denmark of the 'prudent and provident care his majesty hath taken . . . to
remove all such things . . . as may breed distraction betwixt him and his
people'. Dorchester offered this news as an encouragement to Christian 'in
holding him up from sinking under the burden of his losses, and the faint
resolutions of such he hath about him . . . ' 17 Such hopes that the Parliament
would make possible the revival of the war were expressed by other members
of the Privy Council: Pembroke, Conway and Viscount Falkland, Lord
Deputy of Ireland. Falkland wrote to Dorchester of the new life a successful
session would give to foreign policy, to diplomacy or to war. Falkland wanted
renewal of the alliance with the Dutch, 'and [when] peace be concluded with
France we shall do well enough, and best, with war with Spain . . . ' 18 For
Pembroke, as well as for others, the hopes held of the session were bound up
with the optimism about Charles triggered off by the death of the duke.19
These expectations of parliamentary success and of a king no longer mis-
guided by the favourite were tempered by a definite and contrasting sense of
foreboding. Just as the possibility of a fresh start existed so too did the risk of
deeper failure. It was imperative that Charles and his people demonstrate
their ability to work together. In September Dorchester had written to
Carlisle of the need for:
a settled and constant form of government bringing the king and state into reputation
. . . it imports more than anything else I know, as well in regard of home as abroad,
that the next meeting betwixt the king and [his] people should be without the late
disorder...
And hearing of the king's decision to prorogue parliament again until January
he had added: 'the aegritudo which was in men's minds requires time to take
it away'.20 Falkland, despite his hopes, was apprehensive, telling Dorchester:
'Your lordship's prognostication of a good conclusion of this parliament is a
sweet voice full of comfort and delight - without it we may bid farewell to the
felicity of England and the glory of our king . . . ' 21 Sir George Goring wrote
of the political scene in December that 'all the evil spirits are not yet laid... ' 22
There were indeed good reasons for such apprehension. Clearly Charles
was testing the Parliament by holding out the prospect of religious reform;
but he had no real intention of compromising on this issue, as subsequent
events were to show. The hard core of his critics who opposed his policies in
the Church were not men to be satisfied by tokenism or half measures. At the
end of November 1628 the bishops and judges were ordered to execute the
recusancy laws. The bishops were also charged to maintain true religion, as
17
SP75/10/fo. 19v, Dorchester to Anstruther, 26 Jan. 1629.
18
SP63/248/fos. 9 7 - 8 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 77n; see also SP75/9/fos. 330r-331r;
SP16/529/9; Russell, Parliaments, p. 82.
19
SP16/529/9,SP16/529/40.
20 21 22
SP16/117/83. SP63/248/fos. 9 7 - 8 ; CSPV1628-9, p. 503. SP16/123/8.
62 Charles I and the road to personal rule
laid down in the Prayer Book and Thirty-Nine Articles, without innovation.
Of these orders Sir Thomas Barrington wrote that they 'left us not satisfied in
any measure proportionable to that expectation which was among us con-
cerning these points'.23 Such enthusiasts for godly religion seem to have
believed that the onus was on Charles: it was the king who should make the
concessions which would bring about a successful parliamentary session. 24
Desire for reform of the Church was linked to desire for the unstinting
prosecution of the Spanish war. The spectacular success of the Dutch in cap-
turing the plate fleet had a powerful influence on discussions of foreign policy
in England. This and other Dutch victories contrasted sharply with Bucking-
ham's failures as Lord Admiral. The taking of the plate fleet strengthened the
hand of the war hawks in Parliament and aroused great popular feeling
against the idea of peace with Spain.25 Observers were well aware that when
the houses reconvened there would be strident claims for religious reform and
for war. A perceptive Spanish agent made the prediction in December that the
session would therefore be brief.26 In their different ways, both Charles and
an element in Parliament were interested in continuing the war. It was their
disagreement over the religious issue at home which ultimately stood in the
way of a militant foreign policy. In the end Charles preferred to abandon the
war rather than sacrifice religious principles at home. His personal involve-
ment in the European conflict was not ideological and he had no sympathy
with the aspirations of international Calvinism.
The token measures by which Charles was seeking to render the Commons
amenable were accompanied by actions which could only betoken the king's
uncompromising attitude to his national Church. Between the two sessions of
Charles's third Parliament, he made a series of appointments obviously
intended to ensure the dominance of Laudian Arminianism in English
religious life.27 These included the election of Richard Montagu to the see of
Chichester and Francis White (who had licensed his book) to Norwich, as
23
Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 3 9 .
24
Ibid., p. 4 9 , Thomas Bourchier to Lady Joan Barrington, 2 6 Jan. 1 6 2 9 .
25
The Dutch also took the Brazil sugar fleet at the same time as the plate fleet from N e w Spain;
Birch, i, p. 4 4 0 . See also AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 6, 8; CSPV 1628-9, p. 4 3 1 ; Clarendon,
Rebellion, vol. i, p. 2 4 ; Sharpe, 'The personal rule of Charles P, p. 56; Hibbard, Popish plot,
p. 32.
26
AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 8; see also exp. 6: 'es cierto que engendraran una rotura entre ellos y el
rey . . . '
27
O n the problem of invoking Laud's name as a descriptive term see P. Collinson, 'England and
international Calvinism, 1 5 5 8 - 1 6 4 0 ' , in M . Prestwich (ed.), International Calvinism 1541—
1715 (Oxford, 1985), pp. 2 2 0 - 1 . 1 have chosen to use the words 'Laudian' and 'Laudianism'
as a convenient shorthand for the characteristic features of the English religious movement
over which Laud undeniably presided.
The death of a Parliament 63
28
In addition, Manwaring, besides being pardoned and promoted, w a s made a royal
chaplain. Samuel Harsnet had been elected to York in November 1627 and Richard Neile to
Winchester in December the same year. See Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 9 1 ; Trevor-
Roper, Catholics, Anglicans and puritans, pp. 67, 90; Russell, Parliaments, p. 396; DNB,
s.v. Montagu, Harsnet and Neile.
29
Gardiner, History, vi, pp. 330—1.
30
Birch, i, pp. 4 3 1 - 2 .
31
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 9 0 , 1 1 1 - 1 2 ; Hutton, William Laud, pp. 5 9 - 6 0 ;
Cooper, Tall of the Stuart monarchy', p. 558. The declaration may have been a response to
the Commons' remonstrance of 1628 which called for the suppression of Arminian doctrine;
Welsby, George Abbot, pp. 1 3 5 - 6 . On previous Jacobean and Caroline attempts to keep
theological peace in England see J. T. Cliffe, The puritan gentry (London, 1984), pp. 148,
150.
32
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 85,112—13.
33
Laud, Works, vi (1), p. 292. See also W. Haller, The rise ofpuritanism (New York, 1957),
p. 2 3 4 ; Hutton, William Laud, p. 132.
64 Charles I and the road to personal rule
As far as Laud and Charles were concerned, popular and public controversy
over articles of faith was positively unseemly. They also considered it intellec-
tually fruitless. This attitude derived from the broader conception of God's
Church which united the two men. It is important to understand this wider
ecclesiastical view which was subject to intensive attack in 1629. Laudianism,
in more ways than one, was at the root of the spectacular collapse of Charles's
third Parliament.
The transformation which began to come over the appearance of the
English Church during the late 1620s was essentially the work of two men:
Laud and the king. Laud, once a protege of Bishop Neile, during the new reign
increasingly superseded him as the acknowledged clerical leader of Arminian-
ism in England.34 Laud was recommended to Charles by Buckingham, which
helps to explain the king's unflinching support for his leading cleric. Yet
Charles and Laud had religious views which coincided remarkably. The two
men were particularly close, and Laud's statements often reflect Charles's
thinking or confidence in him. Charles had a deep commitment to his own
religious principles. It was Lancelot Andrewes who predicted, before Charles
ever became king, that he would one day hazard his head and crown rather
than forsake his support for the English Church. Charles and Laud were
united in their opposition to post-Bezan Calvinism.35 Laud's anti-Calvinism
was encouraged by his earlier tribulations at the hands of the English
Calvinist establishment. That establishment had opposed his election as
president of St John's College, Oxford, had attacked his preaching in the
University and branded him a heretic.36 The theology of Laud and his
colleagues, with the controversy it aroused in England, was largely inspired
by the contemporary Dutch movement which had developed into an inter-
national reaction against predestinarian thinking.37 Laud recorded his
rejection of the idea of an eternal degree of reprobation and election; and,
breaking with the English reformed tradition, his inspiration was patristic:
'For that Christ died for all men is the universal and constant doctrine of the
catholic church in all ages, and no error of Arminius... ' 38 The anti-Calvinist
34
Neile, archbishop of York from 1632, remained an influential patron of Arminianism in
England. See CD1629, pp. 1 3 2 - 3 and passim; DNB, s.v. Neile; Tyacke, 'Puritanism,
Arminianism', pp. 1 3 0 - 1 , 1 3 4 ; Russell, Parliaments, p. 404.
35
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 120; Laud, Works, ii, p. 2 1 3 ; Trevor-Roper, Archbishop
Laud, p. 67; N . Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists (Oxford, 1987), pp. 7, 4 8 - 5 0 , 7 0 - 1 , 1 1 4 , 1 6 6 - 7 ,
181,228-9,246-7,266-70.
36
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 1 2 1 , 1 2 4 ; R. T. Kendall, Calvin and English Calvinism to
1649 (Oxford, 1979), pp. 2 8 , 2 1 1 (but see Collinson, 'England and international Calvinism',
p. 217); see also Hutton, William Laud, pp. 1 2 - 1 4 .
37
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 81; C. Bangs, 'The enigma of Arminian polities', Church
History, xlii (1973), p. 16; Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists, pp. 4, 28, 3 9 - 4 0 , 7 0 - 1 .
38
Laud, Works, iii, p. 304. See also his reply to Lord Saye and Sele: 'almost all of them say that
God from all eternity reprobates by far the greater part of mankind to eternal fire, without
The death of a Parliament 65
movement in England had been allowed to make great strides during the last
years of the late king's reign. But James had definitely presided over a moder-
ate Calvinist consensus and the Jacobean Church settlement had had an
orthodox Calvinist base.39 The alliance between Charles and Laud, however,
brought an official redefinition of puritanism to include the whole main-
stream of orthodox English Calvinism.40
Yet under Charles there was more at stake than conflicting theologies of
salvation. A wider struggle crystallized around the specific issue, a struggle
over the nature of English religious life.41 It seems unlikely that many
so-called Arminians in England had ever read the Dutch theologian, such was
the broader significance of Laudianism within the context of the national
Church.42 English Arminianism displayed additional features which dis-
tinguished it from its Dutch sister movement.43 Laud's programme was
clericalist. He lamented the passing of the days when English churchmen were
powerful and independent. Consequently, he sought to reduce the power of
the laity in the Church and promoted the rights of Convocation, High
Commission and ecclesiastical property, as well as the idea of episcopacy jure
divino. In this sense Laud harked back to the days of the pre-Reformation
Church.44 Arminianism in England also took on a ceremonial and sacra-
mental dimension. Laud did not believe in transubstantiation and held to the
idea of a real (as opposed to a corporeal) presence in the Eucharist.45 Yet his
an eye at all to their sin. Which opinion my very soul abominates. For it makes God, the God
of all mercies, to be the most fierce and unreasonable tyrant in the world'. Ibid., vi (1), p. 133
(I am grateful to John Morrill for this reference); Lake, 'Calvinism and the English Church',
p. 61n.
39
Fincham and Lake, 'The ecclesiastical policy of King James I', pp. 2 0 2 - 7 ; Collinson,
Religion of Protestants, pp. 8 1 - 2 ; Collinson, 'England and international Calvinism', p. 219;
P. Collinson, 'The Jacobean religious settlement: the Hampton Court conference', in
Tomlinson (ed.), Before the English civil war, pp. 2 8 , 4 9 - 5 0 ; Tyacke, 'Puritanism,
Arminianism', pp. 1 2 3 - 4 ; Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists, pp. 2 4 - 5 , 4 1 - 5 , 1 8 6 ; Lake, 'Calvinism
and the English Church', pp. 4 9 , 5 4 .
40
Tyacke, 'Puritanism, Arminianism', pp. 1 3 3 - 4 , 1 3 9 ; Cliffe, Puritan gentry, pp. 3 0 , 1 5 6 ; see
also Correspondence of John Cosin, ed. G. Ornsby (2 vols., London, 1869), i, p. 42.
41
I am grateful to D o n Kennedy for reminding me of this point. See also Lake, 'Calvinism and
the English Church', pp. 4 2 - 5 .
42
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 1 2 3 - 4 .
43
B. Worden, rev. art., London Review of Books, 19 Apr.-2 May 1984, p. 14; Tyacke,
'Puritanism, Arminianism', pp. 1 2 9 - 3 0 . The broader and less theological elements of
Laudianism clearly had roots in the more Catholic aspects remaining in English religious life
despite the progress of the Reformation; see Professor Collinson's subtle discussion,
'England and international Calvinism', pp. 2 1 8 - 1 9 .
44
Laud, Works, vi (1), pp. 1 1 - 1 2 , 20; C. Cross, Church and people 1450-1660 (3rd edn,
London, 1983), pp. 1 7 9 - 8 0 , 1 8 3 , 1 8 5 - 6 , 1 8 8 - 9 ; C. Hill, Economic problems of the Church
from Archbishop Whitgift to the Long Parliament (Oxford, 1956), pp. 3 3 2 - 3 , 3 4 0 - 1 , 3 4 3 ;
Hutton, William Laud, pp. 4 2 , 238; Sommerville, Politics and ideology, pp. 2 0 8 - 1 0 ;
Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists, p. 2 2 1 .
45
Hutton, William Laud, pp. 7 0 - 1 , 1 5 0 , 2 3 7
66 Charles I and the road to personal rule
46
Ibid., p. 73; Tyacke, 'Puritanism, Arminianism', pp. 1 3 0 , 1 3 8 ; Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists,p. 7.
47
Laud, Works, ii, pp. 1 7 3 - 4 ; Cross, Church and people, p. 177; CSPV 1636-9, p. 125;
Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists, p. 194 and n.
48
Hutton, William Laud, pp. 9 - 1 0 , 17, 30, 1 3 9 - 4 1 , 161; Welsby, George Abbot, pp. 122,
1 4 8 - 9 ; CD1628, vi, p. 56; Laud, Works, iii, p. 210, vi (1), p. 9; Morrill, 'The religious con-
text of the English civil war', TRHS, 5th ser., xxxiv (1984), p. 163n; Clarendon, Rebellion,
vol. i, pp. 1 2 2 - 3 ; J. S. McGee, 'William Laud and the outward face of religion', in R. L.
DeMolen (ed.), Leaders of the Reformation (London, 1984), p. 337.
49
Hutton, William Laud, pp. 1 5 5 - 6 .
50
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 2 3 1 ; Adams, 'The Protestant cause', pp. 4 2 3 - 4 ;
Hutton, William Laud, p. 162. Laud did not consider that the Synod of Dort could be an
authority within a different national Church; Laud, Works, vi (1), p. 246; Collinson,
'England and international Calvinism', p. 222; M. A. Breslow, A mirror of England, English
puritan views of foreign nations, 1618-1640 (Cambridge, Mass., 1970), pp. 3 8 - 9 , 42.
51
Laud, Works, vi (1), pp. 1 9 - 2 7 ; vii, pp. 1 2 - 1 4 ; Hutton, William Laud, pp. 63, 69; K. L.
Sprunger, 'Archbishop Laud's campaign against puritanism at the Hague', Church History,
xliv (1975), pp. 3 0 8 - 2 0 .
52
Culminating of course in the Scottish revolt. See C. Russell, 'Arguments for religious unity
in England, 1530-1650', JEH, xviii, 2 (1967).
The death of a Parliament 67
53
Heath is a striking illustration of this fact; see Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice'; see also
Tyacke, 'Puritanism, Arminianism', p. 140.
54
D. Mathew, The age of Charles I (London, 1951), pp. 3 0 4 - 5 .
55
Hutton, William Laud, p. 126; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 56n; Cust, The forced loan,
pp. 62ff.; Welsby, George Abbot, pp. 1 2 1 , 1 2 6 - 3 0 .
56
J. P. Sommerville, 'The royal supremacy and episcopacy jure divino, 1603—1640', JEH,
xxxiv, 4 (1983); Ornsby, Cosin correspondence, i, pp. 138, 1 4 7 - 5 0 , 154; Birch, i, p. 439;
Welsby, George Abbot, pp. 148—9; Cross, Church and people, pp. 176—7; Hutton, William
Laud, pp. 6 4 , 1 2 9 - 3 0 .
57
Tyacke, 'Puritanism, Arminianism', pp. 140—1; N . Tyacke, 'Arminianism and English
culture', Britain and the Netherlands, vii (1981), p. 101; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 2 2 8 , 2 3 7 ,
253n; Cust, The forced loan, p. 90; D . Hirst, 'Revisionism revised', p. 98; Sommerville,
Politics and ideology, p. 46.
58
G. Yule, Puritans in politics (Appleford, 1981), pp. 8 8 - 9 ; P. Collinson, 'A comment:
concerning the name Puritan', JEH, xxi, 4 (1980).
59
On the Dutch situation see Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 231—3; C. Grayson, 'James I and the
religious crisis in the United Provinces', in D. Baker (ed.), Reform and Reformation: England
and the continent c. 1500-1750 (Oxford, 1979), pp. 2 0 7 - 8 . Light is shed on the pre-civil
war English situation by D. Hoyle, 'A Commons' investigation of Arminianism and popery
in Cambridge on the eve of the civil war', HJ, xxix, 2 (1986).
68 Charles I and the road to personal rule
60
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 1 2 2 - 3 ; Collinson, 'England and international Calvinism',
pp. 2 1 8 - 1 9 ; Tyacke, 'Puritanism, Arminianism', p. 129.
61
Hutton, William Laud, p. 151; R. Mousnier, 'The exponents and critics of absolutism', in
NCMH, iv, pp. 1 0 6 - 8 .
62
Quoted in Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 146; see also Sommerville, Politics and
ideology, p. 194; CD1629, pp. 1 2 5 - 6 ; Hutton, William Laud, pp. 1 4 8 - 9 , 1 5 4 .
63
Hutton, William Laud, pp. 70, 8 1 , 8 7 , 1 4 8 - 9 ; Laud, Works, vi (1), pp. 1 1 - 1 2 .
64
Hutton, William Laud, p. 160.
65
Ibid., pp. 6 2 , 1 5 4 ; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 4 5 , 60ff.
66
Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 2 2 , 4 4 , 4 9 ; J. H . Elliott, 'England and Europe: a common
malady?', in Russell (ed.), Origins, p. 2 4 9 .
67
Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 4 6 9 ; see also C. Hill, Antichrist in seventeenth century England
(Oxford, 1971), pp. 3 7 and n, 66; Sommerville, Politics and ideology, p. 198.
68
Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 2 5 3 , n. 14.
69
Ibid., pp. 143-5,285.
70
Ibid., p. 2 2 ; Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 6 9 - 7 0 .
The death of a Parliament 69
the loyalty of his Catholic subjects, the provisions of his marriage treaty and
his basically liberal religious disposition on the other. The king's inclination
was to extend legal immunity to Catholics whenever he could. 71 Charles, like
Laud, aspired to a catholic ideal within the English ecclesiastical setting. 72
The English Arminians, like their Dutch counterparts the Remonstrants,
were opposed to any warlike foreign policy in the Protestant cause. The
Laudian view of foreign policy drew inspiration from several sources:
sympathy for the Roman Catholic Church and for its allies, a belief that
national religious life should be based upon peace and order, and an insular
nationalism opposed to the concerns of international Calvinism.73 Collec-
tively, these attitudes could only serve to encourage the king's emerging
interest in peace with Spain.
A fundamental paradox lay at the root of English Arminianism, which
helps to explain the reaction the movement provoked. Anti-Calvinism was
essentially a liberal position - in modes of thought and in beliefs - which in
England took on remarkably illiberal characteristics. Arminianism was, in
the broadest sense, part of the wider sceptical reaction against determinism
during this period.74 Laud's clearest statement of his view on the theology of
salvation was framed, significantly, as a rejection of the orthodox Calvinist
position.75 In theological discourse the English Arminian appeal was
consciously to reason, to criticism and to history. To English rationalists
such as Laud and Montagu the enemy was the dogma, as they saw it, of
Calvinism and popery.76 Likewise Laud did not consider his own church to
have a monopoly on the truth. Laud also disliked any rigid theological
definition of articles of faith: a practice which he saw as divisive within the
wider catholic world. His consistent attempts to dampen theological
controversy in England reflect the distinct Arminian approach to religious
71
Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 22; Russell, Parliaments, pp. 204ff., 2 2 9 - 3 0 , 2 3 9 - 4 0 , 242, 248,
2 6 3 - 4 , 297; Birch, i, pp. 375, 377, 379, 418, and ii, pp. 6 7 - 9 , 76-7, 303; M. J. Havran,
'Parliament and Catholicism in England, 1626-1629', Catholic Historical Review, xliv
(1958), pp. 279, 282; CD1629, p. 78; AMRE, CPA, 4 3 , fos. 337r, 338v; Reeve, 'Viscount
Dorchester', p. 207n; Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 1 3 7 - 8 .
72
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 6 9 - 7 0 ; P. Tudor-Craig, 'Charles I and Little Gidding',
in R. Ollard and P. Tudor-Craig (eds.), For Veronica Wedgwood these studies in seventeenth
century history (London, 1986).
73
Tudor-Craig, 'Charles I and Little Gidding', p. 186. In June 1 6 3 0 , when the negotiation of
the Treaty of Madrid was nearing conclusion, John Cosin preached tellingly on the text 'Pray
for the peace of Jerusalem'; The works of the Right Reverend father in God John Cosin, Lord
Bishop of Durham, ed. J. Samson (5 vols., Oxford, 1843-55), i, pp. 108-16. See also chapter
5, p. 169, below; Laud, Works, vi (1), pp. 19-20; Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 60-3,76,175,
190,231-3,235,300.
74
Tyacke, 'Arminianism and English culture'.
75
Laud, Works, iii, p. 3 0 4 , quoted on p. 6 4 , n. 3 8 .
76
Hutton, William Laud, pp. 18, 29-30,151-2,159; Haller, Rise of puritanism, pp. 235-6,
242; Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists, p. 245.
70 Charles I and the road to personal rule
77
Hutton, William Laud, pp. 5 8 , 1 3 2 ; Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 85; Laud, Works,
vi(l), pp. 11-12.
78
Tyacke, * Arminianism and English culture'; Hutton, William Laud, pp. 60—1; Bangs,
'Arminian polities', p. 16; Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 74—5.
79
Russell, Parliaments, pp. 4 0 4 - 5 ; CD1628, vi, pp. 52ff.; Hutton, William Laud, pp. 6 , 9 , 1 2 -
14; Collinson, Religion of Protestants, p. 8 1 ; Tyacke, 'Puritanism, Arminianism',
pp. 1 3 0 - 1 . 1 am grateful to Ian Breward for discussion of these matters.
80
Quoted in Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 103.
81
8 Jan. 1625; Ornsby, Cosin correspondence, i, p. 4 2 .
82
Tyacke, 'Arminianism and English culture', p. 100.
The death of a Parliament 71
with the development of the Laudian church could only appear sinister to
English Calvinists. Collectively, these features of Laudianism set off all the
alarms in the sensitive mind of established English Protestantism. Anti-
Arminianism in England was inextricably bound up with the nexus of inter-
national Calvinism, English Protestant nationalism and the idea of the godly
commonwealth and its government. Anti-popery was the linchpin in this
structure of thinking which knew no distinctions of degree in dealing with
Rome. Thus Arminianism, at bottom a liberal movement, became immedi-
ately eligible for condemnation as popery; and the religious issue in England
during the early years of Charles's reign became, to the mind of the anti-
Arminians, a struggle for the very life of the Reformation.83 An understand-
ing of Laudianism shows that this was an exaggeration; but it indicates also
how the issue could be seen in these terms. Charles provided his subjects with
ample evidence to justify a view that Arminianism was a popish plot. He did
this by demonstrating the link between liberal Protestantism and quasi-
Catholicism and by giving it a reality, with other provocative features, in the
English context. By the time Parliament reconvened in 1629 there was the
clearest evidence of the nature of the Laudian threat. Calvinist theology had
been silenced by means of a royal declaration, the episcopate was liable to be
captured from within by the anti-Calvinists, and at Durham Cathedral there
were ceremonies which had already been branded as popish. There were
rumours, moreover, of dealings for peace with Spain.84
There are already two very illuminating accounts of the 1629 parliamen-
tary proceedings.85 Partly as a consequence, what follows will be more of an
analytical than a chronological treatment. It will also seek to relate events in
Parliament to the wider political and intellectual scene. In 1629 the leadership
of the lower house was divided. Two groups competed for the direction of
proceedings in the Commons. Pym and Rich were deeply concerned with
religion, sought a settlement with the king's government, and were prepared
to vote tonnage and poundage given that Charles would abandon Arminian-
ism. Eliot and Selden were more concerned with constitutional grievances
(the punishment of the customs officers and parliamentary privilege) and
adopted a confrontational attitude.86 Yet the distinction between these two
political approaches is not quite so simple. Eliot was preoccupied with the
83
Yule, Puritans in politics, pp. 8 3 - 4 ; Collinson, 'England and international Calvinism',
p. 2 1 9 ; R. P. Cust and P. Lake, 'Sir Richard Grosvenor and the rhetoric of magistracy',
BJHR,cxxx(1981).
84
DNB, s.v. John Cosin; Ornsby, Cosin correspondence, i, pp. 144-5,. 1 5 5 - 7 , 1 6 1 - 9 9 ;
Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 101; CSPV1628-9, p. 358.
85
C. Thompson, 'The divided leadership of the House of Commons in 1629', in Sharpe (ed.),
Faction and Parliament; Russell, Parliaments, ch. 7.
86
Thompson, 'Divided leadership'. There is also Selden's apparent lack of interest in religion
during the remonstrance debate of 1628; CD1628, iv, pp. 1 1 7 , 1 2 1 , 1 2 6 - 7 , 1 3 0 - 1 , 1 3 3 .
72 Charles I and the road to personal rule
subversion of government and religion by evil counsel, and hence the two
strategies overlapped on the central question of religious policy. 87 The session
also demonstrated the link between religion and property in Calvinist think-
ing. The majority of members were concerned with both the religious and
constitutional themes (the latter involving the question of unparliamentary
taxation), finding it difficult to dissociate the two. 88 The divided leadership
remains a useful distinction nevertheless, for there were differences of politi-
cal style and emphasis between the two groups. While religion was the main
concern of the majority of members, the issue which at bottom produced a
deadlock between Charles and the Parliament, the approach of Eliot and
Selden and their desire to investigate the matter of the customs, temporarily
carried the house. The course of the session was also strongly influenced by
the absence of two men who had been inspirational in 1628. Wentworth's
enlistment in the service of the crown meant the loss of his conciliatory leader-
ship in the Commons, and Sir Edward Coke's failure to participate, probably
due to age and the desire to complete his Institutes, deprived the lower house
of his great learning in the common law. With the Commons' increasing
involvement in the issue of tonnage and poundage, Coke's absence meant the
lack of a powerful political weapon. The house was aware of being weakened
by his absence and this may well have encouraged their vindictive attitude to
the customs officers, the main constitutional stumbling-block of the
OQ
session.
When Parliament reconvened on 20 January, the proceedings in the
Commons appeared to be almost a continuation of the remonstrance debate
of 1628. It was decided that a committee of the whole house would deal with
the question of religion. One week later, after a forceful speech by Pym who
pointed to the dangers of Arminianism and popery and the need to reform the
Church, the Commons resolved that religion should take precedence over all
other business.90 This unanimous decision reflected the attitude of the House
of Commons as a whole. Francis Nethersole wrote to Elizabeth of Bohemia
that the Commons had given priority to the settlement of religion 'whereon
the hearts of all the house are expressly set'.91 Charles informed the Com-
mons that he wanted precedence given to tonnage and poundage; but he did
not forbid their proceeding with religion.92 On 2 February the Commons
87
Thompson, 'Divided leadership', pp. 2 7 5 - 6 , 2 8 1 .
88
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 9 3 ; Russell, Parliaments, p. 4 0 4 ; Yule, Puritans in
politics, p. 89.
89
CD1629, p. 138; S. D. White, Sir Edward Coke and "the grievances of the commonwealth*t
1621-1628 (Chapel Hill, 1979), p. 275.
90
C], i, pp. 920, 922; CD1629, pp. 20-1.
91
CD1629, pp. 250-1. See also Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 50-1.
92
CD1629, pp. 21-2,112-13, 247.
The death of a Parliament 73
explained their decision to the king. The dangers to religion were such that
they could not allay their proceedings 'until something be done to secure us
in this main point, which we prefer even above our lives and all earthly things
whatever'. The house acknowledged Charles's good intentions in the Church
but maintained that his purposes were crossed. In attaching priority to
religion, and in attempting to enlist the king, the Commons stated explicitly
their intention of bargaining the customs against ecclesiastical reform.93
Normally, Parliament could not expect to force an alteration of religious
policy by withholding supply.94 But in this case the constitutionality of the
king's ordinary revenue was the matter at stake; and the increasing disaffec-
tion of the chartered companies threatened a widespread stoppage of trade.95
In time of war, moreover, the crown was highly vulnerable to parliamentary
financial pressure. The Commons having staked out their political position,
government spokesmen in the house continued to make encouraging state-
ments about the king's good disposition in religion.96 But the fact remained
that Charles was not prepared to make concessions which were more than
cosmetic. His religious preferences meant that the 1629 session was doomed
from the start. And given the Commons' intention of withholding tonnage
and poundage until they had achieved reform, further conflict over the
customs duties could be expected as a consequence of the religious issue. In
fact further constitutional conflict came about when Eliot and Selden, with
their different critique of misgovernment, wrested control from Pym and
Rich during the session's later stages.97 Eliot's leadership did not, however,
signify any fundamental change in the political priorities of the house.
It was Pym who proposed a programme, adopted by the Commons, for the
investigation of the state of religion in England. The agenda referred to failure
to execute the recusancy laws, countenancing of papists, and the introduction
of superstitious ceremonies. To combat Arminianism, Pym recommended a
parliamentary statement of reformed articles of faith; and he called for an
inquiry into Arminian promotions, preaching and pardons, as well as the
licensing of books.98 The central problem in summarizing the tenets of
English Protestantism was the need for an authoritative Calvinist interpret-
ation of the Thirty-Nine Articles. The debate in the Commons foundered on
a disagreement over the sources to be used, principally because those pro-
posed were a mixture of statutory and non-statutory authorities. This part of
94
Ibid., pp. 2 9 - 3 0 . Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 94.
95 96
Ashton, City and the court, pp. 1 2 5 - 3 1 . CD1629, pp. 1 1 0 - 1 1 , 1 2 2 , 1 8 0 .
97
Thompson, 'Divided leadership', pp. 250, 2 5 4 - 5 , 262, 279 and passim.
98
Speech of 2 7 January; CD1629, pp. 2 0 - 1 ; CJ, i, p. 9 2 2 . See also the revealing answer drafted
by Laud to the programme of the Commons, Laud, Works, vi (1), pp. 1 1 - 1 2 .
74 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Pym's programme was, in effect, laid aside." The Commons also investi-
gated the recent printing of the Articles and the suppression, on Laud's
authority as bishop of London, of anti-Arminian and anti-Catholic pub-
lications.100 Time was spent in pointing to examples of failure to proceed
against recusants and to enforce the laws against Catholic priests and Jesuits.
All these developments, with the practice of popery at court, were held to
signal the workings of Catholic subversion throughout the land. 101
Arminianism, however, in the eyes of the Commons, was arguably a more
sinister development, claiming as it did to be the proper doctrine of the
English Church.102 In the words of Francis Rous, Arminianism was 'this
Trojan horse', sent to infiltrate the citadel of English religion: Tor an
Arminian is the spawn of a papist... ' 103 The Commons' failure to agree on
suitable authorities for doctrine, with their belief that Arminianism and
popery were allied forces, inspired them to make inquiries into the activities
of individual Arminians.104 The house was scandalized at Montagu's
episcopal appointment, at the royal pardon he had received, and at similar
indemnifications granted to Manwaring, Sibthorpe and Cosin. These
pardons, procured by the intercession of Bishop Neile, protected the recipi-
ents against parliamentary proceedings.105 The Commons were told of
ceremonial innovations at Durham and Winchester which were clearly the
work of Cosin and of Neile. The house was also told how Dr Turner, one of
Laud's chaplains, had refused to license a book denying Rome to be the true
church, and how Neile had instructed one Dr Moore not to preach against
popery.106 These and other such incidents involving the promotion of
Laudianism in England reinforced the Commons' belief that their religion
99
There is evidence of Charles's resentment of these parliamentary efforts to define true
doctrine, which reflected on the role of Convocation and, by implication, the royal
supremacy in the Church, SP16/133/28 (draft in the king's hand of a message to the
Commons, c. end January 1629). See also Thompson, 'Divided leadership', pp. 255-60;
Russell, Parliaments, pp. 410-11; C/, i, pp. 924, 928; CSPD 1628-9, p. 460; CD1629,
pp. 20-1,23,57,117,119-20.
100
CJ, i, pp. 926, 929; CD1629, pp. 58-60,125-8,138-40.
101
It is possible that a warrant of High Commission for the apprehension of priests and Jesuits
(29 January 1629) was intended by the crown to placate the Commons, CSPD 1628-9,
p. 460. See also C/, i, pp. 922, 930, 932; CD1629, pp. 64ff., 70-2,77-80, 82-3,144,146,
149-50,152-3,205,210,216,218-20,249-50.
102
Russell, Parliaments, p. 4 1 0 .
103 104
CD1629, pp. 12-13. Thompson, 'Divided leadership', p. 260.
105
The pardons related to all offences save treason to the person of the king and witchcraft,
CD1629, pp. 36ff. Charles may, imperceptively, have imagined that the pardons would
smooth the progress of the session. See also ibid., pp. 4 3 , 4 5 - 6 , 4 9 - 5 1 , 5 3 - 5 , 123, 130,
1 3 2 - 5 , 139, 180, 246; Birch, i, p. 335; Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 5 1 ; Ornsby,
Cosin correspondence, i, p. 153n; CSPD 1628-9, pp. 1 9 8 , 4 5 6 .
106
Robert Moore (or More), prebendary of Winchester Cathedral, as opposed to Gabriel More,
Fellow of Christ's College, Cambridge, sometime chaplain to Buckingham; Tyacke, Anti-
The death of a Parliament 75
was under attack from a single subversive force, the workings of which dis-
played a discernible pattern in national religious life. Moreover, the whole
godly commonwealth was at risk. Speakers continually linked religious
change with arbitrary government,107 a theme which had pervaded the
previous session.
In 1629, however, there was greater concern for the Church as the target of
subversion and therefore as the proper object of reform. This was certainly
the way John Pym was thinking.108 The immediate issue appeared to be, as Sir
Walter Earle pointed out, the very survival of Protestantism in England.109 It
was Parliament's role to act against the cancer in the commonwealth for, as
Littleton said, 'the neglect of our duty is the cause . . . ' 110 In this context, the
threat to parliamentary taxation was also a threat to religion. Rous urged
consideration of 'whether these [Arminians] be not the men that break in
upon the goods and liberties of this commonwealth . . . ' : men who sought to
bring an end to Parliaments.111 The question of tonnage and poundage thus
appeared as part of the religious threat; and Eliot, with his emphasis on evil
counsel and ministerial scapegoats, was able to carry the house.112 The body
of the Commons was receptive to the idea of a conspiracy at conciliar level,
the key perpetrators of which, Eliot, Cotton and others believed, were Laud
and the Arminian bishops.113 Laud w r o t e : ' . . . some are ready to slander us
as maintainers of popish superstition, and I know not what'. 114
As with the remonstrance debate of 1628, the key to understanding the
Commons' attitude in 1629 is the underlying historical framework uniting
English and international affairs. In 1629, however, the religious conflict in
England was further developed. Moreover, the nation's commitment to war
now hung in the balance. Together these facts had profound implications for
Calvinists, pp. 186, 214-15; J. and J. A. Venn, Alumni Cantabrigiensis, part I (4 vols.,
Cambridge, 1922-7), iii, p. 204. See also CJ, i, pp. 925, 932; Searle, Barrington family
letters, p. 53; CD1629, pp. 34-5,50-1, 63-4,116,125-6,192-3,203-4.
107
CD1629, pp. 52, 61,133,140,198.
108
Pym's direct interest in religion in 1629, as opposed to his preoccupation with the rule of law
in 1628, represents a step forward in his thinking and political activity. His legal and
religious concerns were interdependent. By 1629, however, he was seeking to concentrate on
what he perceived as the fundamental threat of religious innovation; see CD1629,
pp. 18—21. See also Russell, 'Career of John Pym', pp. 159ff. and 'Arguments for religious
unity', pp. 219—22; Cust and Lake, 'Rhetoric of magistracy'.
109
CD1629, pp. 18-19.
110
Ibid., p. 57.
111
Ibid., p. 13; The diary ofJohn Rous, ed. M. A. E. Green (Camden Society, London, 1856),
pp. 42-3.
112
Thompson, 'Divided leadership', p. 281.
113
CD1629, p. 149; The letter book of Sir John Eliot, 1625-1632, ed. A. B. Grosart (London,
1882), pp. 35-8; Russell, Parliaments, p. 409.
114
Laud, Works, vi (1), p. 21 (Laud's speech in Star Chamber in the trial of Henry Sherfield, Feb.
1632).
76 Charles I and the road to personal rule
the course of the session. The Parliament developed into a conflict between
what were essentially national and international aspirations: between
Laudianism and Weston's economic and diplomatic objectives on the one
hand and the priorities of activist Calvinism on the other. This conflict ulti-
mately destined the session to destruction. The collapse of the Parliament rep-
resented a victory for the Laudian and anti-war (and thus anti-parliamentary)
interests within the court, who counselled Charles against accommo-
dation.115 In opposing these interests, the Calvinist forces in Parliament were
just as concerned with the war as with reform of the English Church. Yet, for
them, a religious settlement at home was rendered imperative, not only by the
political reality of an anti-war lobby, but also by the logic of international
Calvinism. The elimination of the enemies of godly religion and war finance
at home would allow effective action in the Protestant cause abroad. No
qualitative distinction could be made, in the minds of Pym and others,
between the religious enemy within England and without. Yet they con-
sidered England's spiritual health to be of great importance for the survival of
Protestantism elsewhere in Europe. Why was this so?
Herein lies the solution to what may be considered one of the major
mysteries of this period of English history: why did the parliamentary
advocates of war in the Protestant cause become engaged in disputes with the
crown which strongly encouraged Charles to withdraw from that same
war?116 During this period, the parliamentary leaders of what has been
termed 'political puritanism'117 had a distinctly ideological view of the world.
Having a Calvinist rather than a Lutheran basis, it tended to be militant and
independent rather than pacifist and submissive. With the outbreak of the
continental conflict, the threat of Habsburg power invoked comparison in
England with the period of the 1580s and 1590s, and it summoned up
Elizabethan ways of thinking. English nationalism, we know, was tradition-
ally defined in anti-Hispanic as well as anti-Catholic terms. Moreover, in the
1620s, with the direct political application of covenant theology in English
puritan circles, England was seen as the chosen nation which could offer
leadership to Protestantism in Europe. Thus political puritanism did not
believe that England should remain an island of peace in a sea of war; and
Protestantism in England acquired a renewed interventionist imperative. The
Reformed Church in Europe, political puritanism believed, was engaged in a
struggle for survival with the Romish Anti-Christ; and it was incumbent
115
Of this more below, but see CSPV 1628-9, pp. 580-1; Laud, Works, iii, p. 210; Birch, ii,
p. 4; Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 297; L. J. Reeve, 'Sir Thomas Roe's prophecy of
1629', BIHR, lvi, 133 (1983), p. 120.
116
I am grateful to Conrad Russell for this question.
117
I believe the phrase belongs to Simon Adams; see S. L. Adams, 'The Protestant cause',
Abstract.
The death of a Parliament 77
118
Adams, 'The Protestant cause', Abstract; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 87; Adams,
'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624', p. 147; Speech of Sir Robert Heath
. . .in the case of Alexander Leighton in the Star Chamber, 4 June 1630, ed. S. R. Gardiner
(Camden Society Miscellany VII, London, 1875), p. 8; Hill, Antichrist, pp. 20, 68, 71;
Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 94-6,104,117,258n; CD1629, pp. 12ff., 1 4 , 3 3 - 4 , 6 9 - 7 0 ,
77, 9 5 - 1 0 1 , 1 4 5 , 1 4 8 , 1 7 0 , 1 7 8 , 2 0 4 - 5 , 2 1 0 - 1 1 , 2 4 7 ; Cust and Lake, 'Rhetoric of magis-
tracy', pp. 43, 46; Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 203, 226-7, 230, 233-8, 240-1;
Zagorin, 'Sir Edward Stanhope's advice', p. 309 and n; Cliffe, Puritan gentry, pp. 207-11,
230ff.; Russell, 'Arguments for religious unity', p. 222n; Russell, Parliaments, pp. 169,429;
Collinson, 'England and international Calvinism', pp. 212-14; Cross, Church and people,
p. 186; Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists, pp. 1,4,75,104,139. See also p. 225 below.
119
CD1629, p. 13; for examples of similar speeches see also ibid., pp. 16-17, 65-7. See also
Russell, Parliaments, pp. 406-7; Yule, Puritans in politics, p. 252; Cliffe, Puritan gentry, p.
210.
120
CD1629, pp. 12-13,16.
121
Ibid., pp. 14-15; see also ibid., pp. 13,15-16, 97,193-4; NUL, Ne.C, 15,404, p. 222.
122
CD1629, p. 204.
78 Charles I and the road to personal rule
123
Ibid., p. 6 8 ; see also Rous's speech, ibid., p. 1 3 ; Cliffe, Puritan gentry, p . 149.
124
Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 2 2 6 , 2 3 2 , 2 3 4 - 5 ; Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 1 9 1 - 2 .
125
See the earl of Clare's remarks o n the influence of Dutch Arminianism, N U L , N e . C , 1 5 , 4 0 4 ,
pp. 222,234-6.
126
See Rich's petition to the king for a fast (27 January 1629), CD1629, pp. 1 7 , 2 8 , 2 4 7 ; LJ, iv,
p. 15.
127
B. O'Farrell, Politician, patron, poet: William Herbert, third earl of Pembroke, 1580-1630
(UCLA PhD thesis, 1 9 6 6 ; published Ann Arbor, 1985), p. 174; see also the link between
Eliot and Warwick: H . Hulme, The life of Sir John Eliot (London, 1957), pp. 157, 2 7 6 ;
CSPV1628-9, p. 358.
128
CJ, i, p. 9 2 2 . See also ibid., pp. 9 2 3 ^ ; AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 8; CD1629, pp. 1 2 , 2 3 , 1 1 5 , 1 1 8 ;
CSPV 1628-9, p. 3 5 8 . The king's desire t o collect the customs w a s linked t o the revival of
Iberian trade. There w a s all the more reason for the C o m m o n s therefore, in terms of their
o w n religious thinking, t o bargain tonnage and poundage against religious reform.
129
T h e large extent of that debt is still unclear: see Russell, Parliaments, p. 3 9 0 ; Reeve,
'Viscount Dorchester', p. 2 2 I n .
The death of a Parliament 79
supply also, if it should be needfull: (at which words, the greatest part of the
house cried, All, AH).'130 The Venetian ambassador considered that reform
of the Church would purchase Charles the customs duties, as well as further
subsidies.131 The attitude of the Commons was reflected in the fact that the
crown sought to represent tonnage and poundage as a war measure.132
Charles's attitude to the session was surely bound up with his promise to help
his beleaguered uncle. He did not hesitate to encourage the Commons to con-
sider the demands of the war.133 Extraordinary supply could not be voted
before March, when the last of the subsidies granted in 1628 was due to be
collected.134 This, along with the delay over tonnage and poundage, explains
Charles's patience with debates on religion and his willingness to keep
Parliament in session.135 Despite the Commons' apparent willingness to vote
supply in 1629, there was probably some residual opposition to the con-
tinuing cost of the war.136 And despite the natural English (and parliamen-
tary) interest in the security of the Baltic, the arming of Denmark, a crippling
expense, had had no place in the parliamentary war plan of 1624.137
The parliamentary war strategy in 1629 never fully emerged. The war
lobby may well have supported the sending of reinforcements to Denmark,
but clearly they favoured the traditional war of diversion by sea against
Spain. An English West India company was their solution to the financial and
strategic problems of foreign policy. The Dutch West India Company was the
creation of the orthodox Calvinist war party. The establishment of such a
company in England, as a joint-stock venture and regulated by act of Parlia-
ment, had been proposed in the Commons in 1626.138 Since then the Dutch
had had spectacular success in taking the plate fleet, which had inspired the
revival of the English project in 1629. An English West India company, to
harness the wealth of the gentry and perhaps co-operate with the Dutch,
could, it was believed, conduct a godly and profitable war against the Spanish
treasure fleets. Such a union of Anglo-Dutch sea power was the greatest fear
of the Spaniards, for properly executed it could well mean the end of Spanish
power. Charles, however, refused to sanction the creation of an English
company. The scheme posed a threat to his royal control of foreign policy and
would probably involve a reduction in Admiralty profits and in impositions.
Charles, moreover, did not share the ideological stance of the parliamentary
130
CDl 629, p. 2 6 1 ; see also the Commons' earlier petition to the king for a fast, LJ, iv, p. 15.
131 m
CSPV1628-9, p. 537. CD1629, pp. 31-2,108,201.
133 134
Ibid., p. 247; LJ, iv, p. 15. Russell, Parliaments, p. 400.
135 136
CD1629, p. 32. Russell, Parliaments, p. 426.
137
CDl 629, p. 108; CSPV 1628-9, p. 5 2 9 ; Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621
and 1624', pp. 165ff.
138
Russell, Parliaments, pp. 262, 293-4, 299-300; C. Thompson, 'The origins of the politics
of the parliamentary middle-group, 1625-1629', TRHS, 5th ser., xxii (1972), p. 80.
80 Charles I and the road to personal rule
war lobby; he disliked the Dutch and was developing an interest in peace. The
establishment of an English West India company could well prolong the
Spanish war indefinitely.139
The House of Commons was the focus of political attention during the
1629 session. It was here that royal policies were attacked and where, it could
be argued, the Parliament failed to work. Appearances, however, can be
deceptive. The comparative silence in the Lords in 1629 is suspicious. There
is strong evidence to suggest that much of the intense activity in the Commons
was made possible, and was at least encouraged, by the tacit approval of
important elements in the Lords. The attack on Buckingham in 1626 had
clearly been sanctioned by Pembroke. In 1628, the Petition of Right had been
preserved as a legislative measure when a powerful group in the Lords - Saye,
Warwick and others - had brought about the exclusion of the saving clause.
It is unlikely that these men were without a similar influence during the
second session of the same Parliament, only six months later. An examination
of key political connections and aristocratic policies in 1629 suggests that this
analysis holds good. In terms of politics in the Commons in 1629, the import-
ant figures in the Lords were Pembroke and Warwick. Eliot was working
with both men and spent the Christmas period, on the eve of the session, in
Essex with Warwick. Rich was the earl's cousin and loyal businessman. Pym
had become connected with Warwick and his family in 1626. Rudyerd was
traditionally the leading spokesman for the Pembroke connection in the
Commons.140 These men were the critical focus of non-government activity in
the Commons in 1629. Pym, Rich and Rudyerd consistently advocated
reform of the Church, war with Spain and the avoidance of constitutional
conflict.141 Eliot's colleagues were unable to keep him in line and he adopted
an increasingly divergent political approach. He did, however, make what
was almost certainly a public acknowledgement of the efforts of certain peers
to restrain him from investigating the customs. 142
That particular members of the Lords -Warwick, Pembroke and probably
Saye - were seeking to use the Commons to achieve religious reform is
139
CSPV1628-9, pp. 5 1 6 , 5 1 8 - 1 9 , 5 5 7 , 5 9 0 ; AGS, E2519, exp. 6, 8; Thompson, 'Origins of
the politics of the parliamentary middle-group', pp. 80—1; Magurn, Rubens letters,
pp. 3 3 3 - 5 , 3 4 2 - 5 ; Birch, i, pp. 3 6 9 - 7 0 ; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 3 2 ; Adams, 'Spain or the
Netherlands?', p. 8 3 ; Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624', p. 151;
Cooper, 'Fall of the Stuart monarchy', p. 556; E. H . Kossman, 'The Low Countries', in
NCMH, iv, p. 3 6 8 ; Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 4 0 ; J. C. Appleby, 'An association for
the West Indies? English plans for a West India Company, 1 6 2 1 - 1 6 2 9 ' , Journal of Imperial
and Commonwealth History, xv (1987).
140
Russell, Parliaments, p. 13; Hulme, Life of Sir John Eliot, pp. 112n, 157, 2 7 6 , 305;
Thompson, 'Origins of the politics of the parliamentary middle-group', pp. 7 6 - 7 , 81.
141
CD1629, pp. 1 7 , 1 6 7 , 2 3 5 ; Thompson, 'Divided leadership', p. 2 5 0 and passim.
142
' . . . but n o w some raise up difficulties . . . of breach of Parliament and other fears. I meet
with this here and elsewhere'; CD1629, p. 94.
The death of a Parliament 81
entirely logical given their failure to combat Laud's influence at court. 143 In
the sphere of foreign policy, Warwick was building a large financial stake in
the continuation of the Spanish war. He was the prime mover behind the
West India company scheme. A Spanish agent reported that he had readied
his fleet and was awaiting the outcome of the session.144 Why, given their
deep concern for religious and foreign policy, did these men allow the Com-
mons to make the running in calling for reform? The most likely explanation
is that they did not wish to antagonize Charles unnecessarily after the events
of the previous session. Moreover, the preservation of their standing with the
crown was critical if they were to cap constitutional with religious reform.
They would certainly have supported reforming legislation sent up from the
Commons, but a comprehensive programme never got off the ground. In this
situation, the peers in question did not wish to be implicated directly if the
Parliament ended in fruitless constitutional collapse. In dissolving the Parlia-
ment, Charles would draw a sharp contrast between the behaviour of the
upper and lower houses.
The session was to finish disastrously for all who were seeking a settlement
which would alter the direction of religious and foreign policy. There can be
no doubt that hostile elements at court were largely responsible for the out-
come. Powerful evidence points towards Weston and Laud as the key figures
involved. They had the strongest motives — religious, financial, personal and
political - to wreck the session as Northampton may have sought to wreck
the Addled Parliament of 1614.145 Constitutional conflict, in this case over
the collection of tonnage and poundage,, created the perfect atmosphere in
which to counsel the dissolution of the Parliament. In promoting such con-
flict, Laud and Weston found fertile ground in the attitudes of the king.
Charles had strong views on the troublesome nature of Parliaments and on
the need to protect his servants (such as the customs officers) when they were
attacked. He was utterly opposed to the religious position adopted by the
143
Thompson, 'Origins of the politics of the parliamentary middle-group', pp. 77ff.; Russell,
Parliaments, p. 13; Beatty, Warwick and Holland, ch. 7; Cliffe, Puritan gentry, pp. 7 8 - 9 ;
Yule, Puritans in politics, pp. 7 9 - 8 0 , 82, 87; LJ, iv, pp. 6-7, 9 - 1 0 , 3 1 , 3 4 .
144
H e was having difficulty obtaining his commission. His enterprise may have depended on the
establishment of the company; AGS, E2519, exp. 6, 8. On Saye's advocacy of a naval war
against Spain see Thompson, 'Origins of the politics of the parliamentary middle-group',
pp. 72, 7 7 - 8 0 . On 2 0 February, the House of Lords appointed a large committee (which
included Warwick, Saye, Essex, Clare and Bedford) to investigate the shipping, arms and
defence of the kingdom; LJ, iv, p. 37. See also Beatty, Warwick and Holland, p. 100; A. P.
Newton, The colonising activities of the English puritans (New Haven, 1914), p. 58; W. F.
Craven, 'The earl of Warwick, a speculator in piracy', Hispanic American Historical Review,
x (1930), pp. 4 5 7 - 7 9 ; Appleby, 'Association for the West Indies?', pp. 2 2 5 , 2 3 0 .
145
L. L. Peck, Northampton: patronage and policy at the court of James I (London, 1982),
pp. 205ff.
82 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Commons. Finally, it appeared that events were presenting him with the
possibility of a peace settlement with Spain.
What were the anti-parliamentary motives of Weston and of Laud ? An end
to the Parliament and withdrawal from the war would give Laud the chance
to pursue his policies in the Church without interference. To Laud, Parlia-
ment could only appear as a powerful assembly of laymen, opposed to his
religious designs and view of the world, who could well bring about his
downfall and the revival of Abbot's influence. Laud was opposed in principle
to such public discussion of doctrine as was taking place in 1629. 146 His
ecclesiastical nationalism also rendered him unsympathetic to the foreign
complications beloved of international Calvinism.147 He was, moreover, a
decided opponent of Parliaments, considering them a threat to the royal
power. Laud's attitude to Parliament, and particularly towards this session,
was shared by his clerical colleagues and dependents. Montagu confided in
Cosin his fears of parliamentary action against the Arminians and his relief in
being awarded a royal pardon. Of the Parliament of 1628-9 he wrote: 'I
know no man I can build upon in that assembly . . . ' 148 Laud's attitude to
Parliament was thus encouraged by the faction he led. Weston had played a
part in referring the case of tonnage and poundage from Exchequer jurisdic-
tion to the 1629 session; no doubt he wanted a settlement of the customs for
financial reasons. As the session developed, however, he had stronger
reasons for wishing to see it ended. The Commons had complicated the grant-
ing of tonnage and poundage, making the grant conditional upon religious
reform; the parliamentary movement for war threatened to destroy the
Treasurer's diplomatic and financial strategy; and Eliot eventually swore that
he would impeach Weston if given the opportunity.149 Faced with all of this,
Weston could only counsel dissolution and seek to discourage Charles's
hopes of an agreement. Weston may have considered that tonnage and
poundage could be collected with relative impunity after Parliament had
failed to settle it. In their counselling of Charles the motives of Weston and
Laud overlapped. The Treasurer was, in Laud's words, 'very noble to the
Church' for the same reason that James I had extended limited favour to the
English Arminians: the latter approved of a policy of peace with Spain.150
Likewise Laud inclined to the foreign policy of the Spanish faction because he
wished, essentially for religious reasons, to avoid Parliaments.151
146
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 87, 89, 9 4 - 5 .
147
Hutton, William Laud, pp. 162-3.
148
Ornsby, Cosin correspondence, i, pp. 100,141,154.
149
On 2 March; see Thompson, 'Divided leadership', p. 272.
150
Laud, Works, vi (1), p . 2 7 3 ; Fincham and Lake, 'Ecclesiastical policy of King James I',
p. 201.
151
Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 166.
The death of a Parliament 83
The fact of a Laudian and pro-Spanish interest at court both explains and
is explained by the activity of a reformist and pro-war group in the Lords.
Unable to register their views with the king as effectively as they wished,
Pembroke and Warwick attempted to use the Parliament as a vehicle for put-
ting forward those same views. In seeking to prevent conflict so as to secure
an alteration of policy, these peers (with their close associates) became a
threat to Weston and to Laud, who thus became involved in a struggle for
political survival. Contemporaries recognized this conciliar and quasi-
conciliar dimension of the session. It can be glimpsed, as will be seen, in the
series of events which brought about the end of the Parliament. On the last
day of 1628 it was reported in London that 'it is true that there hath been
great and stormy labouring to hinder it [the Parliament]'.152 Sir Thomas Roe
had a keen political interest in the session as well as the chance to observe
manoeuvres at court. Roe's overriding concern was the threat posed by Spain
and the Counter-Reformation. He viewed the activities of the pro-Spanish
faction as an extension of those of the Habsburgs: a judgement which was, in
this instance, a great part of the truth. After the session Roe wrote to Lord
Vere of the endeavours, which he had witnessed, to scuttle the Parliament and
hamstring the English war effort, 'the enemy did like the devil, prophesy
before hand of that, which himself hoped to bring to pass . . . ' 153 The more
perceptive speakers in the Commons made clear that they recognized the
same deliberate design: to employ constitutional conflict to distract them
from religion and to break the Parliament. In Phelips's words, 'I conceive
this to be a bone thrown in by them that seek to draw a cloud over our
sun, our religion, to divert or interrupt us in the prosecution of them [the
Arminians] . . . ' 154 The Commons were more willing to adopt this view
because it coincided with two established notions: that Arminians were con-
stitutionally subversive and that Arminians conquered by division. But this
overall pattern of thought was built upon political reality: in this instance the
roles of Weston and of Laud. Clearly the leaders in the Commons were receiv-
ing information from their colleagues in the Lords, as well as from those at
court, particularly Roe, who sympathized with their views. Roe was signifi-
cantly involved in the movement for war against Spain in the Caribbean.155
The strength of the Commons' political analysis was, however, largely self-
defeating, for it worked against the urge to deal with specifically religious
questions. That is to say, the belief that Arminians and their countenancers
were involved in the customs dispute reinforced the sense of an attack on the
152
Birch, ii, p. 4.
153
154
Reeve, 'Sir Thomas Roe's prophecy', p. 120.
CD1629, p. 55, and see ibid., pp. 1 2 - 1 3 , 1 7 , 1 6 7 , 1 8 6 , 1 8 8 , 2 3 6 , 2 4 1 ; Russell, Parliaments,
pp. 404—5; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 2 2 3 .
155
SP81/35/fo.l57r-v.
84 Charles I and the road to personal rule
156
CD1629, pp. 1 3 , 9 5 - 1 0 1 , 1 8 6 ; Russell, Parliaments, p. 405.
157
Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 4 9 ; CD1629, p. 245; CSPD 1628-9, p. 4 6 1 ; APC
1628-9, p. 331; L/,iv, p. 12.
158 159
C/,i, pp. 928-9,931-2. Russell, Parliaments, pp. 402-3.
160
There was a traditional distinction between parliamentary privilege and liberties; see the
important discussion in Elton, Tudor constitution, pp. 260ff. Technically, Eliot was claiming
privilege (freedom from arrest) for Rolle (for his goods as well as for his person). Yet Eliot's
use of the term 'liberties' seems to have represented his conflation of these t w o spheres of
parliamentary rights. This is consistent with his emphasis on the conciliar function of the
Commons particularly, in the tradition of sixteenth-century 'liberties'; CD1629, pp. 1 5 6 - 7 ,
222-3.
161
As opposed to Selden's belief that it was the highest court; Thompson, 'Divided leadership',
p. 278.
162
CD1629, pp. 61,178,238,247,250.
163
Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 5 8 - 9 ; CSPV 1628-9, p. 5 6 8 ; Russell, Parliaments,
p. 414.
The death of a Parliament 85
These affronts generate very great rancour, and there is great fear of a rupture, as the
king and Parliament are brought to such close quarters that neither can give way with-
out forfeiting their word and authority. If this happens, your Excellencies may
imagine in what a miserable condition this kingdom and the north of Europe will
be.lgJ
During the four days' interval before Parliament was due to reassemble, Eliot
and his associates planned the impeachment of Weston and Bishop Neile. 165
Bishop John Williams apparently heard of the scheme and sought to arrange
an accommodation between Eliot and Weston. His efforts were unsuccessful.
The evidence suggests that Weston encouraged Charles in his stand over the
customs officers.166 Charles and Weston also decided to foil the impeachment
with an immediate adjournment when Parliament reconvened.
The Eliot group may have got wind of the government's intentions; they
seem to have expected a dissolution and, at all events, were determined to
prevent the Parliament being immediately adjourned or dissolved. When the
Commons reassembled on 2 March, the group of conspirators occupied those
places, usually taken by Privy Councillors, nearest the chair. 167 After prayers
were read, the Speaker, Sir John Finch, announced the royal order that the
house adjourn until 10 March. From the floor there were cries of 'No'. In
what became a famous scene, Eliot moved to have a declaration read, but the
Speaker refused to allow it. Finch had an absolute command from the king
that no man be permitted to speak. He attempted to rise so as to end the sit-
ting but was restrained in his chair by Holies and Valentine. Finch still refused
to put the question. Eliot gave a paper to the clerk in an attempt to have it
read. When the serjeant at arms refused to lock the door, Sir Miles Hobart did
so and pocketed the key. Finch begged to be allowed to go to the king and the
house was divided in opinion as to whether they should permit it. 168 Eliot
proceeded to speak. The anger and jealousy he felt towards Wentworth and
Weston (Thomas Roe dubbed Eliot 'the envious man')169 was inextricably
164
Contarini to the Doge and Senate, 2 7 Feb. 1629, CSPV1628-9, p. 566.
165
Eliot's co-conspirators in the Commons o n 2 March were John Selden, Denzil Holies,
Benjamin Valentine, Walter Long, William Coryton, William Strode, Sir Miles Hobart and
Sir Peter Hayman.
166
Hacket, Scrinia reserata (pt 2), p. 8 3 ; Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer, p. 142.
Contarini's information was that the government sought to negotiate a settlement with the
Commons' leaders at this point and that these conversations foundered over the punishment
of the customs officers; CSPV 1628-9, pp. 5 7 9 - 8 0 . This was almost certainly a garbled
version of the truth. That overtures were made (presumably by Williams) to Eliot alone is
consistent with the fact that the other leaders of the Commons would not have allowed the
Parliament to be destroyed by the constitutional issue in this way.
167
Hulme, Life of Sir John Eliot, p. 307; I. H . C. Fraser, 'The agitation in the Commons,
2 March 1629, and the interrogation of the leaders of the anti-court group', BIHR, x x x
(1957).
168
CJ, i, p. 932; LJ, iv, p. 143; CD1629, pp. 242,252-3,255,257-8,261.
169
Reeve, 'Sir Thomas Roe's prophecy', p. 120.
86 Charles I and the road to personal rule
bound up with his belief in evil counsel. This, in turn, fuelled his desire to
make clear what he considered his essential loyalty to Charles: 'God knows I
now speak with all duty to the king.'170 Eliot was certain that the disputes
which had led to the adjournment of 25 February, and the adjournment itself,
were Weston's work. He accused the Lord Treasurer and Bishop Neile of
being innovators in government and religion. These were men who broke
Parliaments, stated Eliot, lest Parliaments should break them. Weston, how-
ever, he singled out as 'the great enemy of the commonwealth. I have traced
him in all his actions.'171 This accusation was followed by a threat of
impeachment. If Eliot came again to Parliament he would 'fall upon the
person of that great man'. He concluded by recommending 'that we should
declare all that we suffer to be the effect of new counsels to the ruin of the
government of this state: and so to make a protestation against these
persons . . . ' 172 Eliot wanted Finch to communicate the feeling of the house
to the king.173 Concluding his speech, Eliot surreptitiously tossed the paper
containing his resolutions into a fire.
Other members spoke. Littleton supported the tenor of Eliot's speech.
Valentine and Hayman called for the paper to be read. Selden drew attention
to the constitutional point at issue, claiming that the Speaker was the servant
of the house before being that of the king. Finch, however, knew that he was
trapped between two loyalties.174 Maxwell, the usher of the black rod, sent
word through the door that the serjeant at arms had been summoned to
attend the king.175 Expressing the impatience of the alternative leaders of the
Commons, Rich said that Maxwell should be admitted and the house
adjourned.176 Holies, however, proceeded to read Eliot's resolutions from
another copy, encountering as he did so 'some opposition'. 177 The Three
Resolutions condemned anyone who promoted religious change, popery or
Arminianism in England, who counselled the collection of tonnage and
poundage without parliamentary consent, or anyone who so collected it, as
'a capital enemy' to the 'kingdom and commonwealth'. The resolutions also
condemned any subject paying the duties, when not granted by Parliament, as
an enemy to the liberties of England.178
170 171
CD1629, pp. 101-6,253,258. Ibid., p. 102n.
172
Ibid., pp. 1 7 0 , 2 4 2 , 2 5 9 - 6 1 ; Phelips called for Weston's impeachment before Eliot did; ibid.,
p. 2 4 3 . See also Russell, Parliaments, pp. 4 1 5 - 1 6 ; Hulme, Life of Sir John Eliot, pp. 3 1 0 - 1 3 ;
Thompson, 'Divided leadership', p. 2 7 2 .
173
CD1629, pp. 240,242.
174
Selden also stated that the body of the liberties of Parliament was at stake; ibid., p. 171. See
also ibid., pp. 240, 2 4 3 , 2 5 6 , 2 6 4 - 5 ; Russell, Parliaments, p. 416.
175
Hulme, Life of Sir John Eliot, p. 3 1 4 .
176 177
Digges also called for an adjournment; CD1629, pp. 1 7 1 - 2 . Ibid., p. 267.
178
Ibid., p. 1 0 1 ; Gardiner, Constitutional documents, pp. 8 2 - 3 . The use of the words 'capital
enemy' derived from Eliot's reluctance to lay a charge of treason without the opportunity to
establish the truth of it; Thompson, 'Divided leadership', p. 2 7 3 .
The death of a Parliament 87
179
I am grateful to John Morrill for encouraging me to think about the wording of the resol-
utions. The government's (or at least Heath's) suspicion of Eliot's choice of words may be
indicated by the evidence of Heath's questions for Selden after his arrest, which use the word
'attainted' in misquoting the resolutions; SP16/139/8, fo. 15v. (Selden dissociated himself
from Eliot's views; ibid.) See also A. Woolrych, 'The English revolution: an introduction', in
E. W. Ives (ed.), The English revolution 1600-1660 (London, 1968), p. 13; H. Schwartz,
'Arminianism and the English Parliament, 1 6 2 4 - 1 6 2 9 ' , JBS, xii (1973).
180
See Russell, Parliaments, pp. 4 1 5 - 1 6 .
181
Contarini to the Doge and Senate, 6 March 1629, CSPV1628-9, p. 580.
182
APC 1628-9, pp. 351-2 (3,4 March).
88 Charles I and the road to personal rule
insisted on force and a rupture, the course [which was] followed.' 183 To
Weston's consideration of policy was now added the threat of impeachment.
He had been hoarding public money for months as if (wrote Contarini) he
had been working to wreck the parliamentary session. 184 His advice against
conciliation, under the circumstances, finally prevailed with Charles. A
proclamation announcing the dissolution had been prepared on 2 March and
was published two days later. The king dissolved the Parliament in person on
10 March, a proceeding to which the Commons were not summoned, con-
trary to custom. Charles remarked upon the extreme unpleasantness of the
occasion, praised the conduct of the Lords, and stated that it was the seditious
activity of a few in the lower house which had led to the failure of the session.
Charles thus appealed to what was his and the crown's interpretation
of these events. 185 Undoubtedly Laud, and probably Neile, joined Weston in
counselling the dissolution. Soon afterwards Laud wrote in his diary, T h e
Parliament which was broken up this March 10 laboured my ruin . . . ' 186
Owing to the Council debates, Weston's leading role in bringing an end to the
Parliament was soon well known to wider political society. Public opinion
correctly linked his name and Laud's to the event and both men became
extremely unpopular. 187 The reaction of their opponents in the Lords can be
glimpsed in the rumours of impeachment circulating at the time of the
dissolution. 188
Yet responsibility for the collapse of the Parliament was not unilateral.
There was a fundamental conflict between Charles and the Commons over
the king's religious policy. It was this which made the session unworkable
from the start. In hoping that he could somehow obtain a grant of the customs
without more than superficial religious concessions, Charles was impercep-
tive and unrealistic. The lower house never gave the slightest indication that
they would compromise their desire to reform the Church. Without their
conviction that the religious and constitutional issues were joined, it is
unlikely that Eliot could have guided their proceedings at all. The enthusiastic
endorsement of his Three Resolutions depended upon their inclusion of
Arminianism and popery and the popular belief that Weston was an
Hispanophile and a crypto-Catholic. And the withholding of tonnage and
poundage could be seen as a means of starving an ungodly regime. 189 Eliot, of
183
CSPV1628-9, p. 5 8 0 ; Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 6 - 7 .
184
CSPV1628-9, p. 581.
185
For more on this subject see chapter 4, below. See also Laud, Works, iii, p. 2 1 0 ; LJ, iv, p. 4 3 ;
SP45/10/fo. 175r; CSPV 1628-9, p. 5 8 0 ; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 77.
186
Laud, Works, iii, p. 2 1 0 ; see also Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 9 4 - 5 , 2 9 7 .
187
CSPV 1628-9, pp. 5 8 0 - 1 , 5 8 9 ; Birch, ii, p. 12; Laud, Works, iii, p. 2 1 0 .
188
Birch, ii, p. 13.
189
CSPV 1628-9, p. 580; Green, Diary of John Rous, pp. 42-3.
The death of a Parliament 89
course, also played his role. In seeking to punish the customs officers and in
announcing an attack on the Treasurer, he had made a very serious misjudge-
ment of Charles. He was wildly optimistic about the king's likely attitude to
his servants and, unlike others in the Commons, insufficiently aware of the
danger that the Parliament could collapse. 190 This, combined with his strong
sense of personal frustration and desire for reform, made it impossible for
Pembroke or Warwick to restrain him. Charles's patience with the house was
sorely tried as the session progressed.191 Eliot's final act was therefore
precipitate. Weston and Laud capitalized on it immediately and a breakdown
was the result.192
The events of 2 March constituted a failure for Pym's priorities but these
remained an integral part of what had occurred. The possibility of supply was
a casualty of the conflicting attitudes to the Parliament: the need to destroy it
as opposed to the desire to use it for reform which would protect the godly
commonwealth of England and its international commitments. Essentially
the Parliament failed as a consequence of wider political and ideological
influences. It was this which made for such an utter constitutional collapse.
Of course, in a narrower and more immediate sense, the Commons con-
tributed significantly to that failure. Yet they do not appear to have been
striving to augment parliamentary power. The body of the house and the
Warwick-Pym-Rich axis were as much traditionalists in their view of the
role of Parliament as in their desire to defend established English Protestant-
ism.193 Eliot, like these men concerned with the threat of innovation, tended
nevertheless to place extreme emphasis on the role of the House of Commons.
This was inspired by his obsession with improper and inadequate counsel.
Eliot was not a major or particularly original constitutional theorist. Yet the
views he developed after 1628, on the importance of Parliament and particu-
larly of the House of Commons, were a significant legacy.194 They are
inseparable, however, from the national political crisis which he did so much
to precipitate in 1629.
The dissolution of Charles's third Parliament was not as decisive an event
as often has been and might be supposed. The fact that eleven years then
elapsed without another Parliament should not be allowed to obscure the
complexity of the developments which produced the personal rule. Yet con-
temporaries understood that the conclusion of the Parliament was an event of
undeniable significance. There was a widespread sense of failure, particularly
amongst those who wanted war and reform of the Church. Thomas Roe
wrote of 'the funeral of our Parliament', an event which he believed 'hath
shipwrecked a l l . . . ' 195 Simonds D'Ewes considered it the most gloomy, sad
and dismal day for England in five hundred years.196 Such pessimism derived
not only from the high hopes held of the session. They followed upon the
earlier urgent sense that it was essential that it succeed. Sir Thomas
Barrington, a firm supporter of Pym's priorities, failed to see any logic in
Eliot's tactics:
Princes should in policy have some time and way left to evade when point of honour
is in competition; if they acknowledge their acts past illegal, and their ministers con-
fess it and plead ignorance, I know not why it were not better to take reasonable satis-
faction for the rest and declare our right to posterity by a law, and the errors past, than
by labouring to punish more to let fall the end of our desires in that and all.197
This was an intelligent and surely justifiable condemnation of Eliot. While
Charles was deeply offended by Eliot's behaviour, and while he shared the
prevalent sense of failure, he does not appear to have been unduly dismayed.
It was reported that he returned from dissolving the Parliament in high spirits,
'as if he had freed himself from the yoke'.198 Clearly he was pleased to be free
of a troublesome session which had profited him nothing. Yet, as will be seen,
his financial need and his interest in war were slow to disappear. They would
not allow sudden rejection of parliamentary ways. But the 1629 session
remained a powerful disincentive for Charles in subsequent consideration of
policy and of the possibility of another Parliament.
The king's decision to align himself with Weston and Laud against the
Commons, together with their supporters in the Lords, was a significant
event. It signalled the beginning of the kind of high politics which character-
ized the years of personal rule. At a decisive moment Charles had identified
with an insular circle of advisers who stood for Laudian, anti-war and anti-
parliamentary policies in Church and state. These men and their associates
were a minority in Council and vilified by public opinion. They were fiercely
opposed by peers such as Warwick, alienated from the regime, and by senior
members of the government jealous of their power. The earl of Holland, as
Warwick's brother, was a link between those within the court and those out-
side who wished to bring down Weston, Laud and their dependents. In turn,
the threat of impeachment became a force for the encouragement of a non-
195
Reeve, 'Sir Thomas Roe's prophecy', p. 120; Roe supported Pym's parliamentary
strategy.
196
Gardiner, History, vii, p. 223. See also DNB, s.v. D'Ewes; Searle, Barrington family letters,
pp. 6 0 - 1 .
197
Barrington was writing on 25 February; Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 5 8 - 9 . He was
later a member of the Providence Island Company, CSPCol. 1574-1660, p. 125.
198
CSPV1628-9, p. 589.
The death of a Parliament 91
Parliament and the courts, and likewise a committee of the whole house to
investigate violations of the Petition since the previous session. The crown's
perversion of the record, together with the attempt to levy the customs with-
out parliamentary consent, revived the fear of a threat to liberties from
arbitrary power. In 1629, as had happened with the Five Knights' case, this
was a threat from which Charles could not ultimately be dissociated. 202
It was the question of tonnage and poundage, and in turn the seizure of the
merchants' goods, which led to the most striking and alarming reflection
upon Charles during the session. Eliot and Selden were supported by Holies
and Phelips in their campaign for the punishment of the customs officers:
supposedly a means to vindicate the privileges of the house and obtain
restitution of Rolle's goods. The Commons, after scrutinizing the king's
warrant to the customers, maintained that it did not authorize the seizure of
the goods and that Rolle, as a member of Parliament, should be allowed the
immunity of privilege for his possessions. Rich was opposed to this line of
political action as well as the reasoning which sustained it. The matter, he
argued, would ultimately involve the king if it were pursued. Like Pym he had
different priorities and wanted a settlement with Charles, rather than the kind
of political aggression which would render such an agreement impossible.
The Privy Councillors in the Commons also followed the line of argument
that action against the customers would reach to the king whose servants they
were. The case made against them by the Commons was for this reason
legally weak. The customs farmers examined by the house made a clear dis-
tinction between their roles as customs farmers and as royal officials, insisting
that only those farmers who were also customs officers, that is authorized
collectors, had taken action to distrain the goods in obedience to the king's
command. Eliot's persistence thus only cut the ground from beneath his feet:
the case for ministerial misconduct dissolved and the stage was set for a
dramatic intervention by Charles.
The king was moved by a sense of honour in seeking to protect those under
him. He could also fear that proceedings like this would dissuade other royal
officials from obeying him in the future. The question was thus a complicated
one. Charles's action in protecting the customs officers was not the simple
result of an ignorance of the value of sacrificing his servants to protect him-
self. While the king was moved by rectitude, as he had been in defending
Buckingham, he coculd also claim that the Commons were being unreason-
able. On 23 February he told them that the matter concerned him 'in a high
degree of honour and justice' and, moreover, that what the customs officers
had done was by his special direction. The statement explicitly refuted any
202
C/, i, p. 920; CD1629, pp. 245-6; Russell, Parliaments, pp. 401-2; Foster, 'Printing the
Petition of Right'.
The death of a Parliament 93
separation of the role of the officials from that of the king.203 Charles's claim-
ing of responsibility had created a constitutional impasse and the Commons
were stunned. Phelips's response was to call for prayer to God that he might
'cause us to understand truly and to direct us'. 204 Eliot clung to the view of evil
counsel about the king while Selden probed the possibility that the king's
command did not protect delinquents from Parliament. Phelips, however,
summed up the mood of the house by saying that the occasion warranted 'a
fearful silence'.205 The Commons adjourned for two days in order to ponder
the implications of the king's intervention. Charles's declaration effectively
ended proceedings in the house until the dramatic events of 2 March. 206
Religious developments also inspired doubts about Charles during the
course of the session. It was revealed in the Commons that ten Jesuits
apprehended at Clerkenwell had been bailed, and the execution of one
stayed, by order of the king.207 It was increasingly difficult to accommodate
such evidence of Charles's indulgence of popery. Phelips and Strode main-
tained that the Lord Chief Justice was to blame for failing to inform the king
that his command contradicted a vital principle of English justice.208 Inci-
dents such as this, with the rise of Arminianism, caused the Commons to
invoke increasingly the religious orthodoxy of the Jacobean period. While Sir
Richard Grosvenor maintained that religious decline had set in under James,
the desire to hold up the previous reign as a mirror for Caroline heterodoxy
can be taken as evidence of a failing confidence in Charles as a godly prince.209
This in turn created a tension in men's thinking about the royal supremacy.
203
It is conceivable that Charles was influenced by Cotton's advice in 1628 against the sacrifice
of royal servants as 'no less fatal to the master, than to the ministers in the end'; Rushworth,
Historical collections, i, p. 476. See also CD1629, pp. 7, 83ff., 8 6 - 7 , 88ff., 94, 155, 159,
165-8, 223, 236-7; APC 1628-9, p. 341; CSPD 1628-9, p. 478; CSPV 1628-9,
pp. 5 7 9 - 8 0 ; Russell, Parliaments, p. 403; Thompson, 'Divided leadership', pp. 267, 269;
Ashton, City and the court, pp. 1 3 3 - 5 .
204
CD1629, p. 238.
205
Ibid., pp. 168-9,238.
206
Ibid., pp. 1 6 8 - 9 ; Thompson, 'Divided leadership', p. 270. It is possible to see Eliot's
demonstration of 2 March as directly inspired by the king's intervention of 23 February. The
Commons' self-adjournment on that day was followed by an adjournment by royal
command two days later until 2 March.
207
CD1629, pp. 74ff., 7 8 , 8 0 - 1 , 1 4 8 , 1 5 1 , 2 1 5 . See also the matters of Charles's removal of the
1628 remonstrance from the records of Parliament (ibid., pp. 2 4 6 - 7 ) and Digges's complaint
about the increase of popery in Ireland (ibid., p. 145).
208
Strode maintained that Hyde should not have carried out such an order; ibid., pp. 8 0 - 1 , 1 5 1 .
See also ibid., p. 2 1 1 .
209
Godly, of course, in Calvinist as opposed to Laudian terms. See ibid., pp. 6 8 - 9 , 121, 180,
1 9 4 , 2 3 4 ; Russell, 'Career of John Pym', pp. 155,159ff., 165; Hill, Antichrist, pp. 65ff. The
situation was not helped by Charles's tendency to draw attention to his own role in religious
policy as in other matters; CD1629, pp. 3 1 - 2 , 1 4 9 . See also ibid., pp. 9 5 - 1 0 1 ; Sommerville,
Politics and ideology, p. 219.
94 Charles I and the road to personal rule
210
Nethersole wrote to the queen of Bohemia of 'this matter which some of them study hard out
of an apprehension of the danger our religion may be in by this vast power increased to our
kings, if God for answer should send us one of a contrary religion or if it be but by preferring
of Arminians now'; CD1629, pp. 2 4 8 - 9 ; see also ibid., pp. 35ff., 131.
211
CD1628, iv, pp. 128-9; CD1629, pp. 25-8, 32, 52, 77, 94,112-13,132-3,140-2,155,
157-8,224; Hulme, Life of Sir John Eliot, pp. 370-2. Littleton's thinking was very much in
this vein, CD1629, pp. 189,235.
212
CD1629, pp. 62, 142, 198, 2 0 0 - 1 , 205; Russell, Parliaments, p. 412; and see Sherland's
statement that evil counsellors cast loyal subjects in the role of opponents of the king,
CD1629, pp. 15-16.
213
CD1629, pp. 136, 143, 145, 2 2 3 , 226, 232. See also R. Tuck, " T h e ancient law of free-
dom": John Selden and the civil war', in J. S. Morrill (ed.), Reactions to the English civil war
1642-1649 (London, 1982), pp. 1 3 9 - 4 2 .
214
In his declaration of 10 March 1629; Gardiner, Constitutional documents, p. 98.
The death of a Parliament 95
215
O n Eliot's political thinking see Sommerville, Politics and ideology, p. 158; J. H . M .
Salmon, The French religious wars in English political thought (Oxford, 1959, repr. 1981),
pp. 62—3.
216
Morrill (ed.), Reactions to the English civil war, Introduction, pp. 6—7; Morrill, 'Religious
context', p. 171 and n.
217
CD1629, pp. 8 5 , 1 8 6 , 2 2 3 , 2 3 2 , 2 3 6 , 2 4 0 , 2 4 2 ; Thompson, 'Divided leadership', pp. 2 8 0 - 1 ;
CSPD 1628-9, p. 198; Russell, Parliaments, p. 424; Russell, 'Career of John Pym', pp.
159ff.; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 32.
218
Russell, Parliaments, pp. 239-^40 and n.
96 Charles I and the road to personal rule
219
CSPV1628-9, pp. 5 5 7 - 8 , 5 6 6 , 5 8 0 - 1 ; Cust, 'News and polities', pp. 75, 8 3 - 5 .
220
Charles acceded to the throne on 27 March 1625. See B. H. Newdigate (ed.), The poems of
Ben Jonson (Oxford, 1936), pp. 1 7 3 - 4 . I am grateful to Judith Richards for drawing my
attention to this poem.
221
A. Fletcher, The outbreak of the English civil war (London, 1981), p. 82; Russell, 'Career of
John Pym', pp. 159ff., 165; Gardiner, Constitutional documents, pp. 202ff.; Clarendon,
Rebellion, vol. i, p. 3; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 2 1 4 - 1 6 .
The death of a Parliament 97
222
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 103, for more on this subject see chapter 6, below.
223
For more on this subject see chapter 4, below.
224
CD1629, pp. 140, 178; see also Sir Miles Fleetwood's labelling of the Arminians as
sectaries; ibid., p. 193.
98 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Parliament is dissolved in anger, and without deciding anything... The present times
were not suited to disputes of this s o r t . . . The courtiers are very disconsolate, fore-
seeing that they will remain a long time in need, without money, as they have been for
many months. The kingdom is furious against the Treasurer, and bears the king very
little love . . . It is bad news for Italy, and the king of Denmark also will be compelled
to do what he does not wish . . . What matters is that Parliament has retained the full
possession of its privileges without yielding a jot, for on the last two occasions the king
has always yielded something. If he returns again he will have to do the same, and if
1
Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 59-60.
2
Ibid., p. 60. See also Birch, ii, p. 12.
Coryton and Hayman, although released soon after their incarceration, were still subject to
the Star Chamber information filed by Heath in May; SP16/142/36; and see p. 121, below.
See also AFC 1628-9,pp. 351-2, 389; ST, iii, cols. 236, 252, 285; Gardiner, History, vii,
p. 80; DNB, s.v. Hobart, Sir Miles; T. Rymer and R. Sanderson (eds.), Foedera (20 vols.,
1704-32), xix, pp. 6 3 ^ ; CSPD 1628-9, p. 540.
On the story of their case and the proceedings against them see chapter 5, below.
It was also part of a tradition of political imprisonment, stretching back into Tudor times,
which reached very striking proportions in the 1620s. See L. J. Reeve, 'The arguments in
King's Bench in 1629 concerning the imprisonment of John Selden and other members of the
House of Commons', JBS, xxv, 3 (July 1986), p. 265, n. 10.
99
100 Charles I and the road to personal rule
he does not, which many believe to be his determination in order not to lose his crown,
it will be a difficult matter to find money.6
The Venetian had painted a portrait of events most serious in its implications.
Clarendon, in looking back over this era, was to describe the same develop-
ments in almost mysterious terms. Recounting the largely unsuccessful his-
tory of the first three Caroline Parliaments, he concluded: 'in a very short time
after that supply granted, that Parliament was likewise, with strange circum-
stances of passion on all sides, dissolved'.7
What were the immediate elements of this strange and grave situation
created by the collapse of the parliamentary session? Eliot, by his words and
actions in the Commons, had accused royal counsellors of treason and had
come to threaten the very authority of the crown. He had also begun to under-
mine the financial foundations of the state. The immediate consequence of
the events of 2 March was a widespread refusal to pay customs duties and
therefore a stoppage of trade. The customs constituted the largest single
element of the royal income. Moreover, the tax-strike came at a time of
desperate royal financial need. War naturally caused a reduction of trade
(and therefore of revenue) while placing a greater burden upon the govern-
ment's financial resources. The state of the English Exchequer was, as we
have seen, particularly dire at this time. For some weeks the English merchant
community, together with the Dutch merchants in London, refused to trade.8
A deputation from the company of Merchant Adventurers, which effectively
controlled the cloth trade, was summoned before Council. When questioned
they cited the protestation (or Three Resolutions) of the Commons which
they believed to have been voted by the House. To their understanding, the
Commons had resolved that any who paid the duties when collected without
parliamentary consent were betrayers of the liberties of England.9 The
company subsequently decided to continue their boycott. The Dutch
merchants were similarly reluctant to transgress English constitutional prac-
tice.10 Clearly the commercial community was afraid of retaliatory action by
any future Parliament. Few or none were prepared to pay the duties and those
who did so employed other men's names rather than their own. 11 By refusing
6
CSPV 1628—9, pp. 580-1, the two occasions presumably being the Petition of Right and
Charles's acknowledgement in 1629 that tonnage and poundage was the free gift of his
subjects.
7
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 6.
8
Fresh disturbances had occurred over the payment of tonnage and poundage before the 1629
parliamentary session; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 28; Birch, ii, pp. 5-6; see also CSPV
1629-32, pp. 7-8, 19, 29; CSPD 1628-9, pp. 506, 524; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester',
pp. 135-6.
9 10
Bodl. Lib., Tanner Ms 71, fos. lr-2r. Gardiner, History, vii, p. 83.
11
CSPD 1628-9, p. 524. The merchants of Colchester, in refusing to pay the duties, would
only agree to pay what would be agreed upon by the king and any future Parliament, APC
The aftermath 101
1628-9, pp. 378-9. Ashton (City and the court, p. 130) argues for the existence of a new
political alliance between the chartered companies and the parliamentary leadership during
the early Caroline period. The House of Commons was apparently well representative of the
outport traders; B. Supple, Commercial crisis and change in England, 1600—1642
(Cambridge, 1959), p. 231 and n. Yet there were stronger economic reasons for the
merchant community to disavow political action in support of the Commons. In 1629 such
action—promoted more by fear of, rather than solidarity with, Parliament—was abandoned
to curtail financial loss. There was, moreover, a gulf of interest separating the merchants
from Pym and the alternative leaders of the Commons. Their war strategy implied damage
to trade as well as alliance with the Dutch, the bete noire of the English merchant community.
12
Gardiner, History, vii, p. 82.
13
Ashton, City and the court, p. 132; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 83; Supple, Commercial crisis,
p. 113.
14
CSPD 1628-9, p. 550; Supple, Commercial crisis, pp. 113-14.
15
Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 84—6; ST, iii, cols. 373ff.
16 17
CSPD162S-9,p.524. SP16/138/45,7 March 1629.
102 Charles I and the road to personal rule
growth of popular authority may be a just object of his majesty's preventing care . . .
the many circumstances of it are . . . just not to be written.
Douglas had voiced the fear of 'popularity' customarily felt in the upper
reaches of early Stuart society.19 He had allowed himself to envisage the dis-
solution of political society in England. Yet significantly, like Heath, he had
diagnosed a serious threat to the sovereign power of the crown, and traced it
to what had earlier transpired in Parliament. He had endorsed Heath's belief
in the workings of a conspiracy.
Such a belief was doubtless amplified by fear but also had a basis in fact. In
addition to the tax-strike by the merchants, the situation in the West Country
was becoming highly charged. Public support for Eliot caused a dangerous
situation in places and threats to public order. Sir Barnard Grenville con-
sidered this mood directly related to the events of the parliamentary session. 20
It is difficult to ascertain to what extent such incidents were isolated ones, but
there can be no doubt that these problems were real and could increase. Here,
moreover, the same pattern is suggested of a conspiracy of disobedience
rooted in Parliament. The parliamentary sessions of 1628-9 had seen the
development of ideas concerning court conspiracy. The idea of a project,
within the government, for the subversion of the English commonwealth by
innovation had gained increasing currency. (As will be seen, Charles's
government was sensitive to accusations of innovation and of new coun-
sels.)21 Eventually, in the aftermath of the Parliament, conspiracy theory of
parliamentary activity was developed at court. The serious and general fears
for the crown which surrounded the dissolution were thus, increasingly,
mutually opposing fears.22 In a political society which conceived of itself in
terms of perfect harmony, there was a tendency to characterize unwanted
conflict or dissent as illegitimate conspiracy.23 Yet the ideas of conspiracy
developed during and after Charles's third Parliament were not simply the
hackneyed motifs of political discussion. On the contrary, interacting with
political reality and with each other, they became individual historical forces
of themselves.
With the events of 2 March and the conclusion of the Parliament, an official
interpretation of its destruction quickly emerged. This interpretation
18 19
SP16/530/39,16 April 1629. Cust, The forced loan, pp. 1 8 - 2 0 .
20
SP16/147/14, Grenville to Sir James Bagg, 19 July 1629. The letter is quoted at length in
chapter 5, p. 130, below.
21
See Heath's interrogatories for Eliot (SP16/139/6, no. 35), Abbot's archiepiscopal letter of
April 1629 {CSPD 1628-9, pp. 5 1 6 - 1 7 ) , and chapter 5, below.
22
See also Russell, 'Career of John Pym', pp. 164—5.
23
Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 2 3 5 - 6 . See also Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 4 7 - 8 ; P. Zagorin,
The court and the country (London, 1969), pp. 8 0 - 3 .
The aftermath 103
reflected the views of Charles and his ministers and was a reaction to Eliot's
resort to conspiratorial dissent. The royal proclamation which was published
on 4 March24 gave the first indication of Charles's view of what had
transpired:
By the malevolent dispositions of some ill-affected persons of the House of Commons,
we have had sundry just causes of offence... Yet we resolved with patience to try the
uttermost which we the rather did, for that we found in that house a great number of
sober and grave persons, well affected to religious government, and desirous to
preserve unity and peace in all parts of our kingdom... It hath so happened by the dis-
obedient and seditious carriage of these said ill-affected persons of the House of
Commons, that we, and our regal authority and commandment, have been so highly
condemned, as our kingly office cannot bear, nor any former age can parallel. And
therefore it is o u r . . . resolution, to dissolve the same Parliament... Nevertheless, we
will that they, and all others should take notice that we do, and ever will distinguish
between those who have showed good affection to religion and government, and those
who have given themselves over to faction, and to work disturbance to the peace and
good order of our kingdom.25
This statement reflected Charles's sense of injury as well as his belief that
Eliot had mounted a conspiracy against him. Charles's sense of threat,
combined with an unctuous rectitude, was always a powerful guiding influ-
ence upon him. The king, and officially the crown, had understood the
events in the Commons as unprecedentedly offensive and a threat to the peace
and obedience of the realm. Such events had been perpetrated by those ill-
affected to the government rather than those who were loyal. This was an
exercise in public information, suggesting that it was not the whole house that
was disenchanted and in opposition to the regime. It was also an attempt to
induce members of the house to loyalty in the future, and to appear as if they
had been loyal, with a scarcely veiled threat. The label of faction was
derogatory in early modern England and implied divisive and unconstructive
self-interest. Charles, it seems, harboured a particular dislike of such division
as an offence against the authority of monarchy. The thrust of the procla-
mation was the idea that in the Commons there were two distinct elements:
the loyal and the disloyal.26 In promoting this view the document sought to
dispel the notion that criticism could be loyal, or justified. Despite what had
been the king's considerable patience with an aggressive house, these were
unrealistic assumptions. They ignored what had been the truth: the divisions
24
CSPV1628-9, p. 580.
25
SP45/10/fo. 175r (printed in Larkin, Stuart royal proclamations, ii, pp. 2 2 3 - 4 ) .
26
This interpretation had been anticipated in a royal declaration of 1626 in which Charles gave
an account of his first two Parliaments; see Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced
loan', p. 212. His public statements of 1629 were, however, more intense, reflecting his belief
in the unprecedented nature of events. The later statements also developed the idea of a
conspiracy to subvert obedience throughout the kingdom. See also Birch, ii, p. 13n.
104 Charles I and the road to personal rule
in the Commons had not been primarily of this sort, of loyalty and disloyalty;
rather, they had been ones of political priorities, and the Commons as a whole
had resented the king's religious and financial policies.27 It was for this reason
that the proclamation had avoided defining the majority. It had appealed to
the idea of a substantial and uncritical loyalist group in the Commons which
had not really existed in 1629 in the way the crown wished to describe it. As
an optimistic and virtually deliberate misapprehension at the time, this
royalist tactic could only be effective when the ideological differences within
the Commons were greater and the political stakes higher, and when the
house as a whole could not be led to the belief that sustained and fundamental
criticism of royal policy was best for the country. Things were not as they
were to be in the autumn of 1641 and the Commons in 1629 were largely
united. Yet the development of official conspiracy theory remained a
response to a dangerous political initiative which, originating in Parliament
out of personal and ideological frustration, threatened subversion and invited
retaliation.
This was by no means Charles's final public statement on the fate of the
Parliament. His insecurity, his fastidiousness and his highly developed moral
sense caused him to make copious statements by way of justification and
explanation at difficult times. This desire for public recognition of his
righteousness, together with his concern for order, meant that Charles's state-
ments tended to be very much influenced by those he had made before. Thus
it is often possible, as in 1629, to trace the development of his thinking as he
wished to make it known. On 10 March when Charles formally dissolved the
Parliament with a speech to the House of Lords, he maintained his conspiracy
theory of the session. The fault lay with a small number of 'vipers' in the
Commons who had cast 'a mist of undutifulness' over the eyes of most of the
members, ' y e t . . . there was a good number there that could not be infected
with this contagion'.28 This was a significant elaboration on the theme by way
of an admission that the majority of the Commons had supported Eliot.
Charles repeated his accusation that the demonstration had been seditious.
He also threw the activities of the Commons into greater relief by praising the
dutiful carriage of the Lords. Charles was certainly aware that a number of
peers were opposed to his government. It is also possible that he perceived
their lack of sympathy with Eliot's tactics. While castigating the Commons he
was also taking the opportunity to reach out for the support of the Lords.
On the day Parliament was actually dissolved, a royal declaration was pub-
lished seeking to justify the king's action further. It announced his commit-
ment to religion without innovation, the rule of law and the Petition of Right.
Such commitments by Charles were always subject to his own interpretation.
27 28
See chapter 3, above. I / , iv,p. 43.
The aftermath 105
From what we know of his views concerning Arminianism and the Petition,
this was less a statement of policy than a tactical response to the attacks which
had been made on his government. The declaration continued the reference
to a group in the Commons who had taken advantage of the times to sway the
house and to stir up jealousy, fear and subversion. Their punishment, it was
stated, would be reserved to a due time. Charles was leaving his political
options open in dealing with popular men whose fate could well affect the
course of another Parliament. Moreover, Charles's awareness that Eliot's
action had been endorsed by the Commons caused him to extend his
interpretation of their behaviour a good deal:
We are not ignorant, how much that house hath of late years endeavoured to extend
their privileges, by setting up general committees for religion, for courts of justice, for
trade, and the like; a course never heard of until of late . . . to the unsufferable dis-
turbance and scandal of justice and government, which having been tolerated a while
by our father, and ourself, hath daily grown to more and more height... and some
have not doubted to maintain that the resolutions of that house must bind the judges,
a thing never heard of in ages past. But in this last assembly of Parliament, they have
taken on them much more than ever before.
Charles considered that 'they turned the necessities grown by that war, to
enforce us to yield to conditions incompatible with monarchy'.29
The king had come to accuse the entire House of Commons, as an insti-
tution, of serious constitutional misconduct. Moreover, his belief in a
conspiracy by a group of individuals had been transformed into a belief in a
wholesale conspiracy against the authority of monarchy. Charles had also
pushed his accusation back in time, beyond the events of 1629, to the period
of his father's reign. There was truth, as well as paranoia, in all this. The
Parliaments of 1621 and 1624 had seen the most extensive efforts by the
Commons to influence foreign policy. 30 In 1626 Charles had been forced to
forfeit supply or sacrifice his favourite. In 1628 his power of prerogative
imprisonment had been subjected to parliamentary debate and enforced
redefinition. In 1629 the Commons had indulged in much committee activity
reflecting upon the government.31 This was in addition to their investigation
of efforts to collect tonnage and poundage and to their opposition to the
crown's religious policy. There can be no doubt that Charles's first three Par-
liaments, as a consequence of their concern with the character of his govern-
ment, became unwittingly involved in constitutional aggression, and clearly
the 1629 session had come to disturb the peace of the kingdom. Thus far
Charles's declaration contained a measure of the truth.
Yet the king's interpretation remains highly questionable. Whether James's
29
Rushworth, Historical collections, i, Appx, pp. 7 , 1 0 .
30
Sec Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624', passim.
31
C/,i,p.92O.
106 Charles I and the road to personal rule
last two Parliaments necessarily prefigured the later and more serious events
is dubious. Charles had made the inadvertent admission that he did not share
his father's skills of management. Moreover, the Parliaments of the late
1620s can be seen as using financial leverage to insist upon the traditional
parliamentary function of counsel. The royalist Clarendon considered that
during this period Parliament was fulfilling its proper role. He saw Parlia-
ments as experts in seeking out national diseases, in political pathology and
cure.32 The legislative and judicial pre-eminence of Parliament was long-
established, and likewise the committee procedure.33 Charles was particu-
larly jealous of any reflection on what he saw as the sovereign power of the
crown. He had written to the earl of Carlisle a year earlier that there could be
'no other condition equal to the sovereign point nor anything more sharply
opposite to a monarchy than sovereignty in any particular'.34 Above all,
Charles's declaration, formulated in anger and characteristically simple,
must be understood in the light of his prevailing sense of personal threat. His
own belief in a conspiracy against him had grown in the face of a national
crisis which was increasingly beyond his capacity to resolve. His overriding
concern at this point was to convey the impression that he could not be
intimidated. Any interpretation of the Parliaments of the 1620s in terms of a
milestone along a high road leading to parliamentary power must accommo-
date the fact that, while this was Charles's view, subsequent assessments
should not be unduly affected by his overdeveloped fears.35
There were, among Charles's advisers, men disgusted with proceedings in
the Commons but who did not consider the constitutional breakdown to be
irreparable. Dorchester, as Secretary of State, became in early 1629 an
important advocate of the resummoning of Parliament and the continuation
of the Spanish war. With the king he drafted a crucial proclamation of
27 March which outlined the official future policy of the crown towards
Parliament. Dorchester, assisted by his friend Roe, strove to counteract the
increasing influence of Weston and of Laud. An investigation of Dorchester's
thinking sheds light on the development of policy at this point.
32
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 10.
33
On parliamentary power see Elton, Tudor constitution, pp. 233ff. In pointing to claims for
the judicial pre-eminence of the Commons, Charles was probably overreacting to the school
of thought represented by Sir Edward Coke's statement in 1628 that n o judge ever
contradicted a resolution of both houses of Parliament; see CD1628, iii, p. 628. N o doubt
the king was also mindful of the Commons' efforts in 1629 to recover John Rolle's goods,
seized (pursuant upon the Exchequer decision) for failing to pay tonnage and poundage
although he was a member of Parliament. See Thompson, 'Divided leadership', pp. 2 4 8 , 2 6 6
and passim.
34
BL, Harl. M s 1584, fos. 173r-174v.
35
Gardiner (History, vii, pp. 78—9), in taking the declaration at face value, as evidence that the
Commons were tending to seize upon sovereign power, was moved to one of his digressions
on his constitutional theme.
The aftermath 107
36
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 13. See also pp. 1 1 , 1 2 , 1 4 .
37
SP84/140/fo. 93v, Dorchester to Dudley Carleton, 14 Oct. 1629.
38
S P 8 4 / l l l / f o . 92, Carleton (later Dorchester) to Calvert, 5 Feb. 1622.
39
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 1 3 - 1 4 .
108 Charles I and the road to personal rule
forthcoming,
till means may be found for a more real supply and assistance of the king of Denmark.
A work which upon the unhappy rupture of our Parliament (whereby his majesty's
affairs are mightily put out of square) cannot so well be effected as was hoped and
were to be wished. But his majesty is so careful of the general good, and the king of
Denmark's preservation in particular, [that] it is the end whereof his endeavours do
tend... 4 0
Neither Charles nor Dorchester wanted Christian to make a disadvantageous
peace with the emperor. Dorchester wrote to the English ambassador with
Denmark that Morgan's force would be maintained and ships sent to the
Elbe, but that patience was required in awaiting further assistance from
England. The Secretary issued a repeated plea for time: 'you a r e t o represent
to that king his majesty's constant resolution to enlarge himself as soon as
he shall have rectified these accidental disorders in his government at
home . . . ' 41
Dorchester was in agreement with Charles's reaction to events and
described the disorders as the work of a group of individuals, who should be
punished:
the hopes which were built upon the good success of [the] Parliament are already come
to nothing by the disobedient and seditious carriage of some disaffected persons in the
House of Commons, which hath enforced his majesty to show his royal authority
whereby to free it from contempt, and make them suffer for their presumption.42
Moreover, the disaster of the Parliament had caused the government
(inspired by Weston) to investigate avenues of non-parliamentary financial
supply. As Dorchester wrote, Charles had been forced 'to think of other ways
to relieve his wants and necessities; which being so great as every man knows
there will the more time be required to find the means how to rectify these dis-
tractions . . . '43 The need for supply was linked to the desire for reform and
the restoration of order. Since the king, wrote Dorchester, was 'very solici-
tous of what may conduce to a better settle [ment] in the manner of his
government, it is to be hoped that notwithstanding this unexpected event of
this last Parliament, God will bless his counsels and actions . . . ' Dorchester
forwarded to Anstruther a copy of the king's declaration dissolving the
Parliament, 'whereof you will easily discern how desirous his majesty was of
the continuance thereof, and how loath to separate the same'.44 For
Dorchester the resummoning of Parliament was the ideal financial solution.
40
SP84/139/fo. 75r.
41
SP75/10/fo. 139r-v. See also SP75/10/fo. 119r-v; SP84/139/fos. 149r-150v.
42
SP75/10/fo. 119r, Dorchester to Anstruther, March 1629.
43
SP16/139/46; Alexander, Charles Vs Lord Treasurer, pp. 1 4 5 - 6 , 1 5 8 .
44
SP16/139/46.
The aftermath 109
45
SP75/10/fos. 73r-74r, Sir John Coke to Anstruther, 5 March 1629, stating that the
dissolution was an interim measure to punish the offenders, and that when Parliament met
again the loyal element would conform to the king's desires.
46
SP84/139/fos. 98r-99v. Dorchester had helped to administer the forced loan in 1627 but he
much preferred the parliamentary grant of 1628 as a means of supply; Reeve, 'Viscount Dor-
chester', p. 20.
47
SP45/10/fos. 1 7 8 - 9 (printed in Larkin, Stuart royal proclamations, ii, pp. 2 2 6 - 8 ) .
48 49
Gardiner, Constitutional documents, p. 210. SP16/530/23.
110 Charles I and the road to personal rule
his anger at Eliot's influence in the wake of the Parliament. Not only was the
stoppage of trade continuing, but members of the peerage were visiting Eliot
in the Tower.50 Two basic themes ran in counterpoint in the text of the
proclamation. There was Charles's indignation and his accompanying sense
of threat combined with Dorchester's desire to bring about the resumption of
the parliamentary process without damaging the crown. It was necessary for
Dorchester to exercise tact in seeking to moderate Charles's anger.
Manchester, the Lord Privy Seal, and Coventry, the Lord Keeper, had already
risked disfavour in counselling accommodation.51
The proclamation began by referring to the king's declaration of 10 March.
Despite it,
some ill-disposed persons do spread false and pernicious rumours abroad, as if the
scandalous and seditious proposition in the House of Commons made by an outlawed
man desperate in mind and fortune, which was tumultuously taken up by some few,
after... by our royal authority, we had commanded their adjournment, had been the
vote of the whole house, whereas the contrary is the truth . . . 52
The document then related how 'the wisest and best affected' in the Com-
mons had at the time pointed to the evil nature of Eliot's resolutions. It also
stated that those suspected to have voted for the resolutions had since, 'upon
examination', disavowed them. This was a reference to the interrogation of
the members who had been arrested.53 The sum total was a contrived piece of
propaganda seeking to disguise the fact that Eliot's motion had been carried
on the voices. Thus the proclamation returned to the notion of a supposedly
loyal element which had failed to support Eliot. This element considered the
resolutions 'a thing of a most wicked and dangerous consequence to the good
estate of this kingdom: which appeareth to be so, by those impressions this
false rumour hath made in men's minds, whereby, out of causeless fears, the
trade of the kingdom is disturbed . . . ' 54 While not attempting to burden his
subjects with new taxation, Charles, like his father, had a right to certain
duties and intended to use them for the defence of the kingdom and for the aid
of friends and allies.55 This was clearly a tactical appeal to the Protestant
cause in attempting to break down the tax strike. It also reflected Dorchester's
real desire for a Protestant foreign policy. Not only would those who spread
dangerous rumours be punished, but any who denied the king the duties
would be disavowed as his subjects.56 This proscription was a direct negation
50 51
SP16/139/19. CSPV1629-32, pp. 580, 589.
52
SP45/10/fos. 178-9. The description of Eliot as 'desperate in mind and fortune' was a truth-
ful identification of the elements working within him.
53 54
On this see chapter 5, below. SP45/10/fos. 1 7 8 - 9 .
55
Ibid.
56
SP45/10/fo. 179: 'but shall esteem them unworthy of our protection w h o shall deny the
same' (the only words unique to the final printing).
The aftermath 111
57
SP45/10/fos. 178-9.
112 Charles I and the road to personal rule
king and his ministerial counsel were concerned, Parliament had not,
officially, died a sudden death.58
One significant observer had not interpreted events in this light. Sir
Thomas Roe had had a substantial stake in the outcome of the Parliament.
The Council had approved of his plan for the re-arming of Denmark, con-
tingent upon parliamentary supply. He was associated with Dorchester in
pushing the war option at court. Roe, like Dorchester, was a loyal servant of
Elizabeth of Bohemia, an enemy of Spain and the Habsburgs and a man of
strong Calvinist faith.59 He supported the strategy advocated by Pym and
Rich in the Commons: that of 'sweetening' the king by confirming a grant of
the customs in order to influence religious and foreign policy. 60 Roe saw the
parliamentary session as a measure of England: 'All I will say is that we betray
ourselves . . . ' 61 He related to Lord Vere how the session had met with
disaster. His analysis was influenced by his desire, in the face of all evidence,
to keep faith in the king. After mentioning the strenuous efforts of the anti-
parliamentary lobby at court he chose, like Charles, to place the greatest
blame upon Eliot. Eliot was, to Roe, simply a jealous would-be courtier who
had used the dispute over tonnage and poundage to revenge himself upon the
government:
The zeal of the Commons was vented with more passion than wisdom. They ran ill
ways to good ends, and so the envious man entered at our own breaches, and laid a
bait to distemper them, which they too easily swallowed. Whereas, if they had at the
first given the king the ancient benevolence, which all his ancestors had possessed, and
so sweetened the first actions, they might have done what they pleased in the establish-
ing of religion, and found a good prince to concur with them, and it was impossible
for any man to have been so impudent, as to counsel a breach upon that point. But they
were thrust upon a work that hath shipwrecked all, and by striving for a shadow of
liberty, have lost the substance.62
Clearly Roe was overly optimistic about Charles's willingness to
accommodate religious reform. Roe was seeking to reconcile his ideological
preferences with the fact that he served a king from whom he differed in
religious opinions.63 Yet there was more involved here than his difficulty in
believing in Charles. An acknowledgement of the king's susceptibility to bad
58
SP16/530/23; SP45/10/fos. 1 7 8 - 9 . The arguments for the forced loan, holding out the
possibility of a future Parliament (Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council and the forced loan',
p. 219) once the people's loyalty had been demonstrated by payment of the loan, form a
contrast here. The proclamation of 2 7 March 1629 prescribed more difficult conditions for
a resummons, reflecting the extent to which politics had become more complicated by this
time and conflict more serious.
59
SP95/3/fo. 51r; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 10.
60 61 62
Reeve, 'Sir Thomas Roe's prophecy', p. 120. Ibid. Ibid.
63
It is clear in his correspondence with Elizabeth of Bohemia how his desire to believe in the
king was marked by an anxiety about Charles's policies at home and abroad; SP81/35/fos.
143r-144r, 160r-v.
The aftermath 113
64
Reeve, 'Sir Thomas Roe's prophecy', p. 121.
65 67
Ibid. « SP81/35/fo. 160r-v. Ibid.
68
Reeve, 'Sir Thomas Roe's prophecy', p. 1 2 1 .
69
SP75/10/fos. 164r-165r; SP88/5/fos. 42r-48r; SP88/5-8 passim.
70
Reeve, 'Sir Thomas Roe's prophecy', p. 119.
114 Charles I and the road to personal rule
mentary session, deplored the events in the Commons, believed that Eliot's
supporters should have been more loyal, considered the king's position and
the dissolution fully justified and felt strongly the need for another Parlia-
ment. Yet while Roe had envisaged a lengthy and indefinite period of non-
parliamentary government, Dorchester had drafted a public statement
deliberately avoiding this implication, and his correspondence indicated his
desire that government resume its normal course.
What can account for the difference between the Dorchester and Roe views
of the future, given their common interpretation of events and close associ-
ation? Within Roe's analysis there was a distinction between what he believed
would be the case and what he wished to happen. His was a fearful conclusion
which he believed not best for the country. But, after discussion with
Dorchester and others, he had taken a broader view and placed it in a longer
term. By virtue of perceptive observation as well as his belief in the justice of
the king's reaction, Roe had foreseen what could become a link between the
government's desire to reform itself and to vindicate the royal authority
generally and Charles's rejection of parliamentary means in response to the
Commons' behaviour in 1629. 71 This potential association of a reform in
government and non-parliamentary government had no real historical
precedent in England. Neither was it inevitable. There is no evidence of a
decision in 1629 by the king or his ministers to govern England without
Parliament. Rather, the evidence suggests the flexibility of policy at this time
and the complexity of the circumstances, in England and in Europe, amid
which it was formulated. Roe's observations are significant as much for their
insights as for the remarkable veracity of their conclusion. While Roe was at
liberty to formulate the reflective views of a waiting ambassador, he was not
involved, as was Dorchester, in the daily process of government and counsel.
This, and Dorchester's full awareness of the need to settle the government,
inclined him less to despair and more to positive endeavour. Despite the fate
of the Parliament it was necessary to pursue prerogative government, non-
parliamentary taxation, obedience to the royal authority, and if possible,
Protestant diplomacy or its continuation by other means. For Charles might
well be kept interested in preventing a Danish capitulation, with its conse-
quences for Protestantism and English dynastic interests. The financial needs
of foreign policy were intimately related to the parliamentary question and to
the government of the country as a whole. 72
Not all royal counsellors saw policy Dorchester's way at this time. Weston,
supported by Laud as well as by Cottington, continued to counsel Charles
against Parliament and war. The king hearkened increasingly to this line of
71
Ibid., pp. 1 2 0 - 1 ; Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice'; SP16/138/63, SP16/141/80.
72
SP16/138/63,SP16/141/80.
The aftermath 115
73
Gardiner, Constitutional documents, p. 8 4 ; SP16/141/80; Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 4 7 1 .
74
AGS, E2519, exp. 1 1 - 1 3 , 1 6 .
75
SP84/139/fos. 98r—99v. In writing to Sir Robert Anstruther, Dorchester termed them 'those
proscriptions and curses pronounced in the H o u s e of C o m m o n s . . . ' ; SP75/10/fo. 139r.
76
SP84/139/fos. 98r-99v; SP75/10/fo. 140v.
116 Charles I and the road to personal rule
crisis and disturbance which inspired them, however, could only act as a dis-
incentive for Charles to recall Parliament.
The situation lent weight to the counsel of Weston. The Treasurer wanted
to persuade the king that Parliament should not be resummoned for some
years. There is no evidence to suggest that Weston was opposed to the insti-
tution in principle. He had sat in the House of Commons in most of the
Jacobean and Caroline Parliaments and had adopted a moderate position
over the forced loan. 81 His attitude contrasts with Laud's ideological objec-
tion to Parliament as a popular assembly damaging to monarchy. Weston
combined personal interest with a coherent strategy for reform. By nature a
fearful man, the Treasurer was opposed to the idea of another Parliament
which could be expected to proceed with his impeachment.82 To protect him-
self he was prepared to forego the constitutional (and perhaps the financial)
advantage of a parliamentary grant of the customs. Avoiding meetings of
Parliament during the foreseeable future, however, would also remove the
public forum for cries of involvement in the war. Weston's rehabilitation of
the financial position of the crown would be greatly eased by the elimination
of war finance altogether.
While Weston and the prevailing political circumstances argued against
resummoning Parliament, there were pressing financial reasons for Charles
to consider it. Until well into the autumn of 1629 the poverty of the crown
was extreme. There was insufficient money to provide for the day to day
needs of the queen, the household and government.83 In foreign affairs
Charles wished to support his uncle and to uphold the cause of his displaced
sister Elizabeth. In mid-1629 he had received no commitments in her favour
from Spain. While he had hopes of a negotiated settlement of the Palatine
question, there were powerful pressures upon him to preserve his options and
work towards the resumption of parliamentary supply. Such a resumption
required the settling of his government at home. This, it appeared, might be
a difficult matter, for Eliot and his associates remained recalcitrant in prison.
81
Alexander, Charles Fs Lord Treasurer, pp. 1 4 5 - 7 ; Cust, The forced loan, pp. 67ff.; DNB,
s.v. Weston, Richard, first earl of Portland.
82
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 6 2 , 64.
83
Birch, ii, p. 20; CSPV1628-9, p. 580; CSPV1629-32, pp. 67,142,178-80, 205.
<« 5 * »
Government and justice
performing a new function at this time. Its role as the cement which held
political society together was supplanted, from their point of view, by its
efficacy as a weapon of dissent. This was not as sharp an alteration of
perspective as such a statement might suggest. The appeal to the rule of law
and the jurisdiction of Parliament, made by Eliot, Selden and the others, was a
conscious appeal to established political tradition. On another, perhaps
unconscious, level it became increasingly radical and remained a reaction
against the emerging nature of Charles's rule. As Contarini observed in 1629,
'the king . . . desires to be absolute master, and not bound by the laws . . . 5 l
Charles had an utter lack of sympathy with both the letter and spirit of the
law. He assessed his actions in a moral and not a legal way. As a young man
he once stated that he could not become a lawyer because he was unable to
defend a bad cause nor yield a good. 2 In later life he tended to equate his legal
with what he considered his moral rights3 and this encouraged his inclination
to arbitrary rule. The case of the imprisoned parliamentarians as it unfolded
in King's Bench was therefore a necessary legal resolution of fundamental
political, and constitutional, conflict.
The proceedings of the government following the end of the 1629 session,
and its concern with subversive conspiracy, reflected the subtle changes
affecting the political scene. On 3 March, in the midst of the Council debates
as to whether to dissolve the Parliament, the nine members of the Commons
who had attempted to resist the adjournment were summoned to appear. The
evidence suggests that their continuing spirit of protest before Council on
4 March encouraged the king's decision to terminate the Parliament. The
same day that they appeared, the Council ordered their arrest and the
proclamation dissolving the Parliament was published.4 It was also ordered
that the studies of Eliot, Selden and Holies be sealed: their papers might
provide evidence against them.5 Each of the prisoners was interrogated at
length. The Council wanted detailed information about the plans, intentions
and preparations of the Eliot group, about a meeting they had had at a tavern
some time between 25 February and 2 March and about visitors to and
occurrences at their lodgings. Cory ton, despite a remarkable lapse of memory
about the events in the Commons, rashly volunteered that a meeting had
1
To the Doge and Senate, 28 Aug. 1629, CSPV1629-32, p. 177.
2
Hutton, William Laud, p. 25.
3
Gardiner was perceptive on this point; History, vii, p. 277.
4
APC 1628-9, pp. 351-2; CSPV 1628-9, p. 580; see also ST, iii, col. 236. Strode and Long
did not appear before Council when summoned but were subsequently apprehended;
Larkin, Stuart royal proclamations, ii, pp. 228-30; PRO, C115, N2, 8534, Richard
Wigmore to Viscount Scudamore.
5
4 March; APC 1628—9, p. 352. Approximately forty-eight hours were available to these
men in which to remove incriminating material (Eliot had destroyed his copy of the Three
Resolutions in the Commons on 2 March). No evidence from their private papers was
presented against them in court.
120 Charles I and the road to personal rule
SP16/138/87-9, SP16/139/6-8, SP16/143/9; CSPD 1628-9, p. 540; Hulme, Life of Sir John
Eliot, p. 316; Fraser, The agitation in the Commons'; see also Reeve, The arguments in
King's Bench', p. 265, n. 5.
SP16/141/44.
Charles's habit of obtaining the judges' opinion in advance of legislative and judicial
proceedings reflected both his difficulty in dealing with the law as it stood and his desire
that it be an instrument of his will. Judge Whitelocke objected in principle to this practice;
Whitelocke, Memorials, i, p. 36. Charles's questions to the senior judges in early 1629
apparently preceded those addressed to the whole judiciary by several weeks. See The
autobiography of Sir John Bramston of Skreens, ed. Lord Braybrooke (Camden Society,
London, 1845), pp. 49-54; Rushworth, Historical Collections, i, pp. 662-4; ST, iii,
cols. 236-9; SP16/141/44. Note also Hayman's belief that he had committed treason; CSPD
1628-9, pp. 551-2.
Government and justice 121
9
On Charles's annotation to this effect see Braybrooke, Autobiography of Sir John Bramston,
pp. 50-1.
10
ST, iii, col. 285; Whitelocke, Memorials, i, p. 39.
11
Coryton was released after 7 (perhaps after 9) May and Hayman after 19 May. Both men
were free by the time Littleton addressed King's Bench on 5 June, as they did not then appear
with Selden and the others. Gardiner, History, vii, p. 92; ST, iii, cols. 252,264,285; CSPD
1628-9, pp. 543,551-2; SP16/142/36; Birch, ii, p. 15; see also p. 99, n. 3, above, and p. 122,
n. 13, below. Coryton owed his continuation in the Vice-Wardenship of the Stannaries to
Pembroke; Russell, Parliaments, p. 14.
122 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Yet the other seven prisoners would not yield. Charles was determined to
inflict exemplary punishment upon them and to vindicate his authority
against parliamentary privilege. In seeking to punish the prisoners he was
strongly supported by Attorney-General Heath.12
On 6 May, six of the prisoners (Selden, Strode, Long, Valentine, Holies and
Hobart) sued for writs of habeas corpus in the Court of King's Bench, seeking
bail.13 The following day Heath filed charges against all nine prisoners in Star
Chamber. Charles wished neither to be compromised nor to lose the
initiative.14 Star Chamber, with its summary style of justice, was the kind of
court to recommend itself to Charles. The hearing immediately attracted
great public attention. Heath's information sought to sidestep the privilege
issue by emphasizing the dangerous and supposedly unparliamentary con-
spiracy Eliot had led. Heath maintained that Eliot, with his confederates, had
attacked the crown and the customary workings of Parliament. Heath
repeated the official contention that the majority of the Commons were loyal
and attempted to slur the sincerity of Eliot's appeal to the public good. The
prisoners maintained their appeal to privilege, entering pleas against the juris-
diction of the Court. Star Chamber referred the privilege issue to three senior
judges who heard it argued before them. The hearings were still continuing in
early June. Charles was impatient and wanted the judges' opinion. He
summoned the whole judiciary to Greenwich. Upon questioning them he
learnt that a clear majority leaned to the arguments of the defendants. By the
end of the summer legal recess, Charles had decided to allow the Star
Chamber proceedings to lapse.15 Walter Long was prosecuted separately in
the same Court for leaving his post as High Sheriff of Wiltshire (clearly an
appointment meant to exclude him from Parliament) to attend the Commons
in 1628. Proceedings were instituted against him the following year.16
The imprisoned members of the Commons clearly decided as a group to
seek release by habeas corpus in the first week of May. The crown was
obviously hesitant to bring them to trial and, under these circumstances, it is
12
On Heath, see Cust, The forced loan, p. 60; SP16/138/45; Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice'.
13
PRO, KB29/278, King's Bench controlment roll, Hilary term, 1629; Gardiner, History, vii,
p. 90. Apsley's statement on 9 May that he had a writ for Coryton may have been absent-
minded and remains a mystery as it accords neither with the controlment roll nor the rule
book of the Court. See CSPD 1628-9, p. 543 and the references cited above. On Eliot see
below.
14
Gardiner failed to grasp this point; History, vii, p. 91; SP16/142/3 6.
15
SP16/142/36, SP16/143/4-13, SP16/143/32, SP16/144/11-15, 37, SP16/149/38; Birch, ii,
pp. 15-18; CSPD 1628-9, pp. 524, 547, 556; Whitelocke, Memorials, i, 39; Gardiner,
History, vii, pp. 91—2; The autobiography and correspondence of Sir Simonds D'Ewes
during the reigns of James I and Charles I, ed. J. O. Halliwell (2 vols., London, 1845), i,
pp. 413-14.
16
ST, iii, cols. 233-6. On the outcome of this case see below, p. 156.
Government and justice 123
unlikely that they wished to allow it the political advantage of their extended
imprisonment. Their desire to demonstrate the principle that they were
legally entitled to bail was probably heightened by a suspicion that Coryton
and Hayman would defect.17 When they were imprisoned in March the
warrant of the Council had stated no cause of commitment. Now, two
months later, the crown complied with the requirement of the Petition of
Right that a cause be shown. The situation differed from the Five Knights'
case, since there was now the possibility of statutory interpretation.
Precedents could be set which were clearer than in case law, and binding at
common law because made under statute. For the crown not to have shown
cause would have risked judicial construction of a binding requirement.18
The crown desired to create a form of precedent which would at least protect
the prerogative under the law. Moreover, the granting of bail upon the stated
cause would involve political defeat, for the advantage of discretionary
imprisonment would be lost. That advantage was not only symbolic and
coercive. The government was genuinely concerned to prevent what it saw as
conspiracy. For the prisoners to obtain their freedom under the law, even
temporarily, would be a great advantage. They also wished to have the
Petition of Right and its provisions seen to operate in their favour. In seeking
bail and continuing their stand, they were increasingly concerned with more
than politics and constitutional principle. These concerns became bound up
with the preservation of their personal credibility as the stakes were raised,
with the self-propelling stubbornness of dissent. This human factor implied a
gulf of understanding between the prisoners and those who supported the
king. Dr Benjamin Laney (later bishop of Ely) wrote on 25 June: 'So long as
subjects may have their liberty so cheap as for the asking, they were extremely
to blame and unthankful to complain.'19
The cause of imprisonment notified by the crown on 7 May was 'notable
contempt committed by them against ourself and our government and for
It may also have been significant that they applied for writs on the day that Chambers was
being sentenced in Star Chamber (Gardiner, History-, vii, p. 90). They may have wanted the
cause of their imprisonment stated before the crown developed confidence in a serious
charge. They may not have wanted to allow the crown the political advantage of their
imprisonment until a trial which might be precipitated by the successful prosecution of
Chambers. Such consideration of Chambers' case would not have been incompatible with
the reasons given in the text above.
The prisoners would also have been encouraged by the fact that Chambers, committed by the
Council, had obtained a stated cause of imprisonment, and bail, the previous October
(Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 4-5). His case, however, did not have the celebrity of theirs and
his offence was less serious. This, combined with the fact that the Petition of Right could still
be invoked for the first time against the royal prerogative, gave the 1629 hearings greater
political and constitutional importance. Chambers' case was not cited in these hearings.
Birch, ii, p. 21.
124 Charles I and the road to personal rule
stirring up sedition against us'.20 This not only echoed the suggestion of
treason in Charles's questions to the judges. Seditious behaviour so described
was probably the most unspecific, non-capital offence with such treasonable
undertones that could be devised by the government. The intention was to
avoid bail and to characterize a high crime against the state.21 The Petition of
Right had required the showing of a cause.22 It could not specifically legislate
against such an arbitrary cause, for it was impossible to include within the
specific nature of any legislative act the illegality of any given arbitrary cause.
It was not an easy task for the King's Bench judges to assess the bailability of
this cause as returned. The arguments in the habeas corpus hearings were
lengthy, complicated, and charged with the wider political conflict. My
analysis of these hearings has appeared elsewhere,23 and it is necessary only
to give a brief account here.
In May and June, during the Easter and Trinity legal terms, the Court heard
the arguments on both sides. The lawyers Aske and Mason, appearing for
Strode and Long, held that the cause returned was not sufficiently explicit and
therefore an insufficient cause of detention. Berkeley and Davenport, for the
crown, argued that the cause shown was indeed sufficient, and sought to
prevent the construction of the king's prerogative under the Petition of Right.
The eyes of all were on the law of the future as much as the politics of the
present. The crown presented a skilfully justified yet dubious opinion based
upon the letter rather than the spirit of the law. It argued that the Petition did
not oblige explicit statement of a cause by writ but that its legislation related
to an eventual indictment. The argument also appealed to the unspecific
nature of the return to characterize treason and hence argue against bail. The
crown, in framing an arbitrary cause of imprisonment - general yet sub-
stantial - thus sought to have the advantage both ways. It wished to avoid the
legislation of the Petition against prerogative imprisonment, and to enjoy the
usual advantage at law of a treasonable accusation - the denial of bail - with-
out having committed itself to such an accusation. This was probably out of
20
PRO, KB29/278, membr. 3 3 , King's Bench controlment roll, Hilary term 1 6 2 9 , Selden's
cause, and the same is repeated for the others. There is no customary reference to the coram
rege roll, indicating the arbitrary nature of the imprisonment without information laid until
Michaelmas. See also Rushworth, Historical collections, i, p. 6 6 4 ; ST, iii, cols. 2 4 0 - 2 .
21
Any offender committed for a non-capital offence (i.e. for any crime except treason or felony
- save petty larceny) was automatically eligible for bail. Capital offenders were bailable only
under special circumstances at the discretion of King's Bench. See Whitelocke, Memorials,
i, p. 3 9 ; Maitland, Constitutional history, pp. 2 2 9 - 3 0 , 2 7 1 f f . , 3 1 4 - 1 5 ; ST, iii, col. 2 6 6 . On
the nature of sedition see W. S. Holdsworth, A history of English law (13 vols., London,
1 9 2 2 - 5 2 ) , v, pp. 2 0 8 - 1 1 . 1 am grateful to Conrad Russell for this reference.
22
O n the legislative nature of the Petition of Right see Reeve, 'Legal status of the Petition of
Right'.
23
See Reeve, 'The arguments in King's Bench', o n which the following paragraphs are based.
The arguments can be found in ST, iii, cols. 2 4 1 - 8 6 .
Government and justice 125
belief that the Court would not find the facts of the case to constitute treason,
but merely non-capital offences. Likewise this reflected a desire to avoid the
political difficulties of a trial for high crimes against the state, while employ-
ing the coercive device of extended imprisonment. Such was the crown's
policy, expressed in its legal brief. Attorney-General Heath, reporting the
proceedings to this point, said that the judges had given no indication of their
judgement either way, but seemed to be 'yet unsatisfied'.24
On 5 June, at Trinity term, Edward Littleton appeared for John Selden. The
two men had been closely involved in the progress of the imprisonment issue
since 1627 and collaborated in producing Littleton's submission to the Court.
The brief was clearly the work of probably the two most able common
lawyers in England.25 In arguing for Selden's right to bail, Littleton demon-
strated brilliantly how failure to award it would be against the Petition of
Right. The crown had argued, in effect, that the prisoners should not be
bailed because the true cause of their imprisonment was not explicitly stated:
an argument for arbitrary imprisonment despite the Petition. The two men
were determined to register the illegality of this proposition. Littleton did so
by establishing that under both the Petition and common law practice the
king was required to state the true cause of imprisonment explicitly. More-
over, the cause of imprisonment stated was to be understood as the true
cause. The submission was a tour de force which inspired Hobart, Holies and
Valentine, who had their counsel ready to argue for them, to rely upon
Littleton's case. Heath, who was to have appeared after Littleton for the
crown, found the strength of this argument so off-putting that he deferred his
reply indefinitely. Littleton found himself the subject of considerable
celebrity in London.26 In court Selden complained to the judges of Heath's
delay. Strode, impatient of judgement, asked them whether they would bail
a seditious priest but not a seditious member of Parliament, adding that if the
prisoners died in custody the judges would have blood on their hands. 27
Heath addressed the Court on 13 June. With the right to bail now clear
under the law as it stood, his response was to suggest that the Petition of Right
had not changed the law. He was attempting unsuccessfully to retrieve the
legal position in the Five Knights' case. With an assumption of guilt before
trial and a fallacy in law, he stated that
the king intends to proceed against them in convenient time. And some that were
offenders in the same kind are already delivered, to wit, Mr Coryton and Sir Peter
24
SP16/142/85.
25
With the obvious exception of the aged Sir Edward Coke. Selden had been a counsel in the
Five Knights' case and a framer of the Petition of Right, and Littleton had played an
important role in the parliamentary proceedings of 1628.
26 27
Birch, ii, p. 17. Ibid., pp. 1 8 - 1 9 .
126 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Hayman. Therefore, if any injury be done to the prisoners, they themselves are the
cause of it, for not submitting themselves to the king.28
Heath's submission was essentially a political reaction against the legal
strength of Littleton's case. He pointed to the sedition mentioned in the return
and told the judges that bail should not be awarded before they had consulted
with the king. Heath's defence of an arbitrary cause of imprisonment by the
king was a brief for the arbitrary government of his subjects, that is, without
reference to due process of law but attempting to enlist the judges in such
exercise of the royal power.29
Heath's submission had continued the interplay of legal and constitutional
issues with political conflict, themes which in this case had become inextri-
cably linked. Personal considerations, moreover, operated behind the legal
briefs, as the participants in the hearings were forced to come to terms with
the wider implications of the case.30 Heath stated clearly the constitutional
relevance of the issue, a statement partly elicited by his difficulty with the law
as it stood. Berkeley and Littleton agreed that the case was essentially con-
cerned with a specific and difficult aspect of the law. Yet both made reference
to the importance of the case and the potential involvement of a consti-
tutional issue. Each man had his reasons for offering an understated assess-
ment. Berkeley was in the early stages of a career which brought him a knight-
hood and eventually appointment to King's Bench, a career which was
built upon a remarkable commitment to the royal prerogative and which led
ultimately to his impeachment by the Long Parliament. It is unlikely that his
opinion of the 1629 hearings was given without regard to his prospects and
convictions. Littleton, an advocate of the Petition of Right and an eminent
common lawyer, in time became Chief Justice of the Common Pleas. His
opening remarks in 1629, assessing the historical standing of the case, under-
stated its constitutional aspect to the extent of self-contradiction.31 He
showed considerable courage in representing Selden when victory could
mean the lasting disapproval of the king. Hayman found, by contrast, that his
legal counsel did not dare assist him.32 Littleton was diligent in defending the
legislation of the Petition of Right for which he and Selden had worked. Yet
28
ST, iii, col. 2 8 5 .
29
It would seem that Heath was acting here partly as a mouthpiece for Charles's views. I am
grateful to Conrad Russell for drawing my attention t o this problem. Yet the Attorney-
General clearly had a personal commitment to the suppression of dissent and was inclined
towards arbitrary government (Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice'; DNB, s.v. Heath, Sir
Robert). Heath w a s n o match for Selden and Littleton and contemporaries harboured
doubts about his legal ability. Birch, i, p. 3 4 1 ; SP16/142/85; Knowler, Strafford letters, i,
p. 58.
30
On what follows, see Reeve, T h e arguments in King's Bench'.
31 32
ST, iii, col. 252. CSPD 1628-9, pp. 551-2.
Government and justice 127
33
This interpretation is supported by the evidence of Littleton's draft brief, containing a clear
and unqualified statement that this w a s a major constitutional case, which he qualified in
court. It also contains a lengthy profession of loyalty t o the king which presented him with
considerable drafting difficulties. It is not k n o w n whether Littleton made the statement of
loyalty in court; CUL, M s M m , 6.63 A , fo. 3v.
34
Whitelocke, Memorials, i, p. 3 8. This opinion w a s k n o w n in London in June; Birch, ii, p. 2 2 .
35
Whitelocke, Memorials, i, p . 3 8 ; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 9 4 . Trinity term customarily
ended o n the quindene of St John the Baptist (8 July).
128 Charles I and the road to personal rule
custody and placed in the Tower by the king's own warrant. There, like the
other prisoners, they found themselves in the custody of the king's Lieuten-
ant. Counsel for the prisoners requested the decision of the Court nonetheless
but the judges refused. The authority of the Court was subverted and the
prisoners could not be bailed or remanded.36 On 24 June the king addressed
a letter to the judges, explaining why the prisoners had not been brought to
court and stating that Selden and Valentine would appear the next day. A
second and shorter letter followed several hours later stating that none of the
prisoners would appear. The judges were told that King's Bench was the
king's court. They were also told that it was the royal prerogative to present
however many of the prisoners as Charles chose, given that all the judges had
not yet resolved the main question (the issue of bail). It was held, moreover,
that to allow the prisoners to attend, according to the rule of the Court, would
be an act of royal favour in the light of their disrespectful conduct towards
Charles and the judges. Effectively this was an appeal to the special circum-
stances of the case, as interpreted by the crown, that is to reason of state. The
royal justification for the enforced remand of the prisoners sought to defend
what was, in effect, arbitrary imprisonment. Heath's initial assumption that
two of the ringleaders, if presented, would be remanded, had been qualified
by discussion that very day with Chief Justice Hyde, who had obviously inti-
mated that they would be awarded bail. This inspired the government's
revision of its decision. The second letter implied that to present none of the
prisoners was the king's decision alone upon 'more mature deliberation'. The
king's explanation sought to dispel Various constructions' of his action, and
referred to his desire not to 'decline the course of justice' but to resolve 'this
great business, so much concerning our government'. The letters were drafted
by Heath and Dorchester together, the Secretary's diplomatic language pre-
vailing over the Attorney's more polemical approach, but there is no doubt
that the documents expressed the will of the king.37
Throughout the summer of 1629 the prisoners were denied the ruling on
36
The Court had been informed that Hobart, Long and Strode would be placed in the Tower
'until by due course of law they and every [one] of them shall be thence delivered': the words
of the king's warrant, PRO, KB29/278, membr. 45, King's Bench controlment roll, Trinity
term 1629. This was not the first time that Charles disobeyed an order of the Court in this
case. In May, Apsley at the Tower, under instructions from the Lord Keeper and the
Attorney-General, had stated the cause of imprisonment only upon the second issuing of a
writ and without returning the prisoners. For this he was twice fined by the Court and
threatened with arrest. The prisoners having originally entered his custody by the king's
warrant, he was not prepared to have them leave it save under a similar warrant;
SP16/142/82, Apsley to Dorchester, 14 May 1629. See also SP16/145/32, 3 9 , 4 1 ;
Rushworth, Historical collections, i, pp. 6 7 9 - 8 1 ; ST, iii, cols. 2 8 6 - 7 ; Whitelocke,
Memorials, i, p. 38; CD1628, iii, pp. 194-5.
37
SP16/142/78, SP16/145/35-9, SP16/145/40-2; Rushworth, Historical collections, i, pp.
6 7 9 - 8 4 ; ST, iii, cols. 2 8 6 - 7 .
Government and justice 129
bail. They remained in the Tower as close prisoners under the watchful eyes
of the crown.38 In conjunction with the emerging treaty with Spain, their fate
remained the leading issue in England, both for the government and for pub-
lic opinion. The case was closely involved with the problem of keeping order
in the country and was intimately related to financial and foreign affairs. Its
outcome was critical for the possibility of another Parliament in the foresee-
able future. A letter from a Spanish agent at court at the end of June placed
domestic affairs in their international context. The letter, surviving in the
papers of Secretary of State Sir John Coke, was intercepted by the English
authorities. It referred to the atmosphere of political conflict and described
the slow breakdown of the stoppage of trade. There was no way yet found 'to
pay the king's debts or to relieve his wants which peace and parsimony will
hardly supply in any short time'.39 The letter reported the Danish conclusion
of peace with the emperor at Liibeck and the consequent revival of Anglo-
Baltic trade. Cottington, it was decided, would go to Spain, 'which is a very
great sign of our good meaning here, at least in his opinion... ' 40 This intelli-
gence suggests that Charles's problems at home and abroad might conceiv-
ably be solved by the promotion of commerce and peace. Yet the royal court
was in immediate and dire financial need.41 The insolvency of the crown,
moreover, did not help in sustaining its authority in the public eye. Heath
wrote of the need to dispel the 'unworthy opinion . . . that the king is in
want . . . ' 42 There was thus still pressure upon Charles to consider the
resummoning of Parliament. And without another Parliament he might yet be
unable to influence European affairs to the degree he wished. It was for this
reason that the prisoners were the subject of international attention. 43 It was
not only financial and foreign affairs, however, which implied the need for a
quick and favourable solution to the problem of the prisoners.
Viscount Grandison wrote to Sir Thomas Roe, who had left for the courts
of northern Europe, at the end of July. Grandison wrote with the information
available to a Privy Councillor. He related how the imprisoned members of
Parliament continued a menace to Charles's authority at home:
The habeas corpus men remain still where you left them, where they may feed them-
selves with popular applause, whereas if they did ground their opinions upon religion
and the true rules of government they would not become so dangerous instruments to
those that hearken after them and to themselves.44
38
NUL, N e . C , 15,404, p. 217; SP16/139/19, SP16/142/18, SP16/142/52, SP16/145/32,
SP16/150/101; Melbourne Hall, Coke Mss, bundle 36, report on visitors to the Tower by
Apsley.
39
Melbourne Hall, Coke Mss, bundle 3 7 , 2 6 June 1629.
40 41
Ibid. Seep. 117, n. 83, above.
42
Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice'; see also CSPV1629-32, p. 289.
43
CSPV 1629-32, p. 139; NUL, Ne.C, 15,404, p. 26. " SP16/147/74.
130 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Grandison saw that the prisoners' stand was a definite threat to Charles's
government. At the same time in the West Country Sir Barnard Grenville
wrote of
the foulness of sundry ill dispositions poisoned by that malevolent faction of Eliot. So
much as I see all is out of order. Our deputy lieutenants are either fearful to execute
or unwilling to do their duties commanded from the Council board . . . The
lieutenancy is grown into such contempt since the Parliament began as there be [some]
that dare to countermand what we have on the Lords' commands willed to be done .
.. and there doth not want some that endeavour to dissuade a great part of the country
from that obedience [the musters]... 45
The spirit of disorder had clearly permeated some localities and its effects had
been slow to subside. Clare, writing to his son Lord Haughton, also in July,
linked the imprisonment of Eliot and the others to the unsettled political
atmosphere and the ill will which had developed between the king and his
people.46 The prisoners were rapidly coming to be the keystone, and the
leading symbol, of Charles's difficulties in governing England.
There is evidence that Charles's regime was apprehensive of the danger of
actual revolt during the summer of 1629. In July an arrest in Fleet Street by
the Serjeants of the Sheriff was opposed by some army officers. This triggered
an extensive and violent riot. The situation became, after the militia were
called out, an occasion of open rebellion. Barricades were raised by the rebels
but their surrenders were obtained after the king's lieutenant had delivered a
proclamation.47 There were several deaths by the time order was restored.48
Grandison reported to Roe that men had grown 'so bold as to give public
affronts to government'.49 The episode provoked a strong response from
Charles and the Council, reflecting the depth of their fears. A proclamation
called for the apprehension of all involved in 'those outrages which were com-
mitted rather in a rebellious than a riotous manner . . . ' 50 It mentioned
affronts to public justice and to public officers and ministers, which acts were
worthy of exemplary punishment. The malefactors were to be found, and
surgeons were ordered to reveal them to the authorities 'upon their allegiance
to us, and the duty they owe to the public good of our state, and upon pain
of such punishments as by our prerogative royal can be inflicted upon them
for their neglect herein'. Even suspects were to be handed over, and anyone it
might concern was 'carefully to observe the same at their uttermost perils'.
The episode was debated in Council. Secretary Coke informed Chief Justice
45 46 47
SP16/147/14. N U L , N e . C , 15,404, p. 218. SP16/148/35.
48
Clare (a biased source) reported at least a dozen killed at the hands of the trained bands;
NUL, N e . C , 15,404, pp. 2 1 8 - 1 9 . See also Birch, ii, pp. 2 3 - 6 ; NUL, N e . C , 15,404,
pp. 2 1 8 - 1 9 , 2 2 1 ; Lindley, 'Riot prevention and control', pp. 1 1 4 - 1 5 , 1 1 9 - 2 0 , 1 2 5 - 6 .
49
SP16/147/74.
50
Larkin, Stuart royal proclamations, ii, pp. 2 4 6 - 8 , 1 8 July 1629.
Government and justice 131
Hyde that the government found it strange that the events were considered
only a riot. Other laws and governments, according to Coke, would have
found these capital offences. The king wanted to know whether the Lord
Mayor would have been legally culpable if his forces had killed a hundred or
more of the seditious persons 'wherein the law itself doth justify the shedding
of so much blood'.51 The king did not seek revenge against individuals but
rather 'the preservation of government'.52 His thinking linked the recent
criticisms of his government to the street fighting. He would not prosecute
such a matter in Star Chamber
and so publish to all the world, that his government may not only be condemned, but
opposed in this manner without further danger or penalty than a fine: the consequence
whereof may in favouring particulars ruin the whole kingdom by degrees.53
But if the law admitted of no other form of punishment, Charles had no inten-
tion of proceeding further, 'rather than make such a precedent to encourage
rebellion, which beginneth by such actions, and to which it might have been
feared that this tumult . . . might have grown, if it had not been stayed by
God's favour'.54 The Chief Justice was enjoined to take the case into more
serious consideration and the king requested the opinion of the judges. Hyde
replied that they would not grant the offenders any degree of favour 'for they
deserve it not'.55 Not only did Charles and his ministers fear the breakdown
of government. The king was seeking legal sanction for the suppression of
incipient rebellion in the most summary fashion. The reaction of Charles and
the Council reflected a connection between the atmosphere of political
tension and the risk of civil violence.
Besides the influence of the prisoners and the violent mood of the City,
economic conditions had conspired—particularly in East Anglia — to produce
potentially dangerous popular unrest. In 1628 a spectacular depression had
begun to affect the cloth trade and the result was pressure on standards of
living in areas of textile production. The onset of the slump coincided with a
bad harvest in 1629. The result was a serious shortage of grain and in places
major famine. Demobilization of unpaid troops could only have aggravated
the situation. Merchants were unwilling to export grain when this might
provoke a rising in the country.56 And Privy Councillors allowing the Dutch
to export wheat from England ran the risk of being stoned.57 The flashpoint
was in Essex, where the peace of the county was unstable. A riotous theft of
corn at Maldon on 22 May attracted a particularly strong reaction from the
51
SP16/148/35, Coke to Hyde, 9 Aug. 1629.
52 53 54
55
Ibid. Ibid. Ibid
Melbourne Hall, Coke Mss, bundle 37, Hyde to Coke, 2 7 Aug. 1629.
56
The merchants also feared a parliamentary inquiry; CSPV1629—32, pp. 2 0 7 - 8 .
57
Ibid., p. 202.
132 Charles I and the road to personal rule
58
APC 1629-30, pp. 24-5.
59
Birch, ii, p. 17; J. Walter, 'Grain riots and popular attitudes to the law: Maldon and the crisis
of 1629', in J. Brewer and J. Styles (eds.), An ungovernable people (London, 1980). See also
Larkin, Stuart royal proclamations, ii, pp. 230—1; Clay, Economic expansion and social
change, i, p. 222; Supple, Commercial crisis, pp. 14-19,103^, 234; AFC 1628-9, pp. 89,
309-10,417,419.
60
Larkin, Stuart royal proclamations, ii, pp. 2 7 1 - 3 , 2 9 8 - 3 0 4 , 3 1 2 - 1 4 ; APC 1629-30,
pp. 371, 373, 3 8 3 - 4 , 4 0 4 ; APC 1630-1.
61
PRO31/3/66/fo. 140v.
62
Charles actually used the word, according to Chateauneuf; ibid., fo. 132r. See also CSPV
1629-32, p. 204.
Government and justice 133
men close [prisoners] unless they petition; this is the height of power.' 63 He
wrote again in September: 'law being laid aside, what bounds can be set to
will, and power?'64
Charles's state of mind made him particularly susceptible to Weston's
counsel. The Treasurer's immediate concern was to prevent his own impeach-
ment. In political circles this was considered inevitable should Parliament
reconvene.65 There were two individual threats of impeachment which might
become one. Eliot had made his intentions clear in the Commons on 2 March,
and the earl of Holland, jealous of Weston's power, was working to bring
about a Parliament and his fall.66 The Treasurer, seeking financial solvency
for the crown, and the credit, prosperity and political independence it would
afford him, was opposed to the demands of the war lobby. He also favoured
peace with Spain out of sympathy for the Habsburg position. Like Charles, he
also wished to settle the government at home, an achievement which would
render his own position more secure. Weston, therefore, while not exclusively
self-seeking, nevertheless had political aims which thoroughly interlocked
and which would all be served by preventing the recall of Parliament for the
indefinite future. The Treasurer's interests were furthered by the king's view
of Parliament and he encouraged Charles's fears for his royal authority.67 He
shared the king's desire to break the revolt led by Eliot. As Clare wrote in
September, 'the hard proceedings are thought to be fruits of his [Weston's]
fear...'68
The Treasurer, however, was not fully secure in the favour of the king.
Charles wished to appear independent and ungoverned by any favourite.69
Court politics therefore acquired particular importance, despite the fact that
Weston was tending to hold sway.70 The other leading Councillors (with the
obvious exception of Laud) openly favoured a Parliament to extend their
influence at Weston's expense. An anti-Habsburg group, Protestant and
basically pro-French, consistently advocated a Parliament for the renewal of
the war. Its most conspicuous members were Pembroke, Holland and
Dorchester. Leading courtiers such as Holland and Carlisle, denied the
remuneration of office by the penury of the crown, favoured a Parliament in
their own financial interest.71 The calling of a Parliament to satisfy these
various ends would require conciliation of the imprisoned members.
Coventry, Manchester and Dorchester were chiefly involved in seeking to
63
NUL, N e . C , 15,404, p. 217.
64
Ibid., pp. 2 2 2 - 3 , and see also ibid., p. 227.
65
PRO 31/3/66/fo. 123v; CSPV1629-32, p. 227; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 3 1 2 - 1 4 .
66
Ibid.
67
PRO 31/3/66/fo. 136v; CSPV 1629-32, p. 177.
68 69 70
NUL, Ne.C, 15,404, p. 227. CSPV 1629-32, p. 204. Ibid., p. 9.
71
Ibid., pp. 204-5; BL, Harl. Ms 7000, fo. 273r-v; PRO 31/3/66/fos. 136v-137r, 208r.
134 Charles I and the road to personal rule
72
Birch, ii, p. 18; Melbourne Hall, Coke Mss, bundle 37, Coventry to Coke, 11 Sept. 1629.
73
CSPV1629-32, pp. 204-5.
74
NUL, N e . C , 15,404, p. 2 2 3 ; CSPV 1629-32, p. 178; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 108.
75
SP16/150/114. Banbury may well have been criticizing Charles's attitude by implication. I
am grateful to Conrad Russell for this point.
76 77
SP16/175/77. SP16/175/77, SP16/176/24.
Government and justice 135
78
NUL, Ne.C, 15,404, p. 223.
79
Birch, ii, pp. 28—9. Valentine had sat for St Germans.
80
Hirst, 'Revisionism revised', p. 9 2 .
81
Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 1 0 6 - 7 . It was reported in September that Selden had
survived an attempt t o kill him; Birch, ii, p. 2 9 .
82
DNB, s.v. Thomas Baron Coventry, and Henry Montagu, second earl of Manchester;
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 5 7 - 8 ; Birch, ii, p. 18; Cust, The forced loan, pp. 1 3 , 1 7 , 2 3 n ,
41,44_5} 52,55,57,59,68-71,80,86,103,118,190n; Russell, Parliaments, pp. 31,415.
136 Charles I and the road to personal rule
ing such men and without the support of peers such as Pembroke, Warwick
and Saye, was pursuing, increasingly, a different kind of dissent from that
practised by Pym. Yet Eliot and his fellow-prisoners had certain aristocratic
connections which were revealed, as will be seen, in the concurrent proceed-
ings against Sir Robert Cotton and his associates. The only peer we know to
have positively supported the prisoners was Clare. He considered his son
Denzil a martyr to arbitrary power and professed incomprehension of the
charges against him.83
At the end of the summer recess, the crown made efforts to employ the
judges in achieving its ends by the bailing of the prisoners before the
Michaelmas term. This policy linked the constitutional threats to the royal
authority: the Petition of Right and the claim of parliamentary privilege. The
crown desired that the prisoners, in being granted bail, enter into a legitimate
financial bond of good behaviour. But it also wanted their bail to be provided
for under royal letters patent as an act of prerogative. In addition, the royal
policy was to make a second offer of such bail conditional upon a request for
pardon for refusing the first. This condition was not acceptable to the judges.
Such a bail would clearly imply the justice of the imprisonment and negate
any construction of the Petition of Right against it. Likewise it would render
untenable any objection to the jurisdiction of King's Bench in the name of
privilege. Otherwise bail would constitute legal redress for the prisoners
being, necessarily, the assessment of an answerable cause of imprisonment,
and would be no indication of the jurisdiction of the king's court. The rider
of submission and request for pardon would vitiate any reflection upon the
king's absolute discretion constituted by the first refusal, and in so doing
would render the guilt and the pardon general in the case. This policy, there-
fore, would endorse arbitrary imprisonment as a just and exemplary demon-
stration of the royal authority. It might avoid the necessity of a full hearing,
which would be a serious liability for the crown. It would also pursue a
policy of conciliation, without compromising the royal authority, a course
which appealed to Charles's moderate ministers. The policy of bailing the
prisoners in this way was arrived at in a meeting between Coventry,
Manchester and Dorchester in September, the judges' ruling on bail pending
at the term. Almost certainly, the Councillors sought to reconcile the
prisoners' legal demand that they be freed with the king's desire for their sub-
mission and the preservation of his authority. The attempt at reconciliation
took place in the context of critical royal financial need and coincided with
tenuous rumours that a Parliament might be called.84
83
NUL, Ne.C, 15,404, pp. 217, 222-3; P. Crawford, Denzil Holies, 1598-1680, a study of
his political career (London, 1979), p. 24.
84
SP16/149/37; SP97/14/fo. 330r; SP96/3/fos. lllr-112r; Clark, 'Thomas Scott and the
Government and justice 137
To release the prisoners in this way Charles needed the co-operation of the
King's Bench judges. His relations with the judiciary had had a chequered
history, and his desire to enlist them in the exercise of an arbitrary prerogative
had met with only marginal success. They had angered the king by refusing
to subscribe to the legality of the forced loan. Sir Ranulphe Crew, the Chief
Justice of King's Bench, had been removed and replaced by Sir Nicholas
Hyde. Hyde's legal integrity can certainly be acknowledged, and he never
sought to pre-empt the collective opinion of his colleagues. In 1628 the judges
had refused to guarantee that the Petition of Right would not prune the king's
prerogative.85 In the Star Chamber proceedings against the imprisoned
members of Parliament they had so far appeared to favour the argument of
privilege. King's Bench had insisted (despite Charles's seeking to intervene)
on attempting to rule that the prisoners were entitled to bail. The law was
only circumvented by the king's use of force. Constitutional conflict had cast
the judges in the role of umpires and so far they had sought to uphold the law.
There was, however, another complicating factor in 1629. The fear of par-
liamentary reprisal was probably an encouragement, for at least some of the
judiciary, to avoid conclusive judgement against Eliot and the rest.86 This may
have influenced the opinion given in favour of privilege. Yet Charles's rule
had associated the judges with his style of government and a number of his
actions. Hyde was a Buckingham man and had drafted the duke's defence
against the 1626 articles of impeachment.87 The political context of his
appointment in King's Bench could not be ignored. In 1627 the judges were
forced to remand the five knights according to law. In 1628 Charles had
stated in Parliament that the judges, under the king, were the supreme
interpreters of the law. 88 Finally, in 1629, King's Bench had no choice but to
accept the de facto remand which was forced upon the prisoners. Conse-
quently, the English judiciary was falling into disrepute. Hopes of receiving
justice from the judges were being supplanted by hopes of Parliament. The
judges, particularly through the case of the recalcitrant parliamentarians,
were to become increasingly involved in the justification of the Caroline
89
regime.
growth of urban opposition to the Spanish match', pp. 2 3 - 4 ; CSPV1629-32, pp. 1 7 8 , 2 8 9 .
In connection with the royal plan for the bailing of the prisoners, Gardiner (History, vii,
p. 109) cites a letter from Charles to the judges of King's Bench of 9 September, for which
he gives no reference. I have been unable to locate this document.
85
DNB, s.v. Hyde, Sir Nicholas; Whitelocke, Memorials, i, p . 4 7 ; Cust, The forced loan,
pp. 5 4 - 5 ; Reeve, 'Legal status of the Petition of Right'.
86
PRO 31/3/66/fos. 195v-196r; CSPV1629-32, pp. 205-6.
87
DNB, s.v., Hyde, Sir Nicholas.
88
CD162S,iv,p.481.
89
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 8 8 - 9 ; Green, Diary of John Rous, pp. 5 0 , 6 2 - 3 ; Reeve, 'Sir
Robert Heath's advice'; SP16/104/51; Birch, i, p. 3 7 4 ; Rushworth, Historical collections, i,
Appx, p. 7.
138 Charles I and the road to personal rule
The decision to proceed at common law was part of the emerging realiz-
ation that it was necessary to bring the prisoners to public account. Proceed-
ings in King's Bench had been initiated by the prisoners' suing for writs of
habeas corpus. This had raised the matter of bail and the crown had sought
to prevent it. The subsequent attempts to achieve pardons and avoid trial
indicate that the Star Chamber information laid before the long vacation was
partially by way of intimidation. The king's mention of pardons at Hampton
Court, with the release of Coryton and Hayman, perhaps explains the
Venetian ambassador's prediction in late June that the prisoners were to be
released.95 It indicates also that the decision to proceed in King's Bench was
a reaction to the failure to have the prisoners submit and request pardon in
the summer, and to the approach of the Michaelmas term.96 The policy of bail
by letters patent and a request for pardon was an attempt to deal with these
concerns and achieve the ends of the crown without final recourse to a trial.
The latter could be avoided only if a pardon provided the same full redress for
Charles. The judges were to be enjoined to achieve it in King's Bench.
The day that Hyde and Whitelocke met the king at Hampton Court,
Dorchester wrote to Hyde after their departure. Obviously an agreement had
been reached but one affected perhaps by misunderstanding: 'Immediately
after your [Hyde's] parting... I presented a letter to his majesty according to
the concept I showed you to be directed to your lordship and the rest of the
judges of the Court.' Charles did not want to sign the letters patent without
being informed what the judges would do if the prisoners refused bail by
them:
his majesty understood your mind and Justice Whitelocke's . . . yet because he would
be as well satisfied of the rest before he gave order for the prisoners' release, he hath
commanded me to dispatch a messenger expressly and in all diligence . . . 9 7
The question was, on the face of it, that of bail or remand, and perhaps that
of submission and pardons. The diplomacy of the judges may have been
matched by the optimism of the king, but Charles certainly knew his own
mind. To this letter Hyde replied:
Coke Mss, bundle 3 7 , Coventry to Coke, 11 Sept. 1 6 2 9 . There was word in August of an
information being prepared for filing in King's Bench, N U L , N e . C , 1 5 , 4 0 4 , pp. 2 2 9 - 3 1 . Star
Chamber did not pass sentence of death (Maitland, Constitutional history, p. 262) but since
the judges were of the opinion that the offences were not capital it is unlikely that this fact
influenced Charles in his decision t o proceed at c o m m o n law. At the time of the Star
Chamber information the threat of capital punishment may have appealed to Charles in his
efforts t o break the prisoners.
95
CSPV1629-32, p . 121.
96
Whitelocke {Memorials, i, p. 39) also refers t o the pardons, intimated by 'good hands'. This
would seem t o refer to Arundel and Dorset, and perhaps to others, N U L , N e . C , 1 5 , 4 0 4 ,
pp. 2 1 7 , 2 2 0 .
97
SP16/530/89.
140 Charles I and the road to personal rule
. . . if they refuse to put in bail upon this gracious direction of his majesty . . . w e will
remand them to prison: and if they move at the term, yet if they be bailed it shall be
according to his majesty's letter, without declaring what the law is which w e conceive
to be according to his majesty's pleasure . . . 98
The judges had been requested to conceal the legal ratio of the case, out of
definite concern with the Petition of Right, as well as to render their judge-
ment formally sanctioned by the prerogative. Dorchester replied that the king
only partially approved of their opinion. If bail by the letters were offered in
perpetuum it would be self-defeating, giving no public display of the king's
absolute discretion in imprisonment nor any public redress for the crown
against sedition or privilege short of full trial. Dorchester wrote,
his majesty upon such a refusal is resolved they shall neither have their liberty by his
letter nor by other means till they acknowledge their fault and demand pardon. I write
the more largely to your lordship because I would be the more clearly understood."
Charles and those about him knew that the issue was the public standing of
the prerogative and the creation of a legal precedent which could protect or
prejudice it. Yet the requirement of pardon, albeit a need of the king, was no
legal obligation for the judges. It was incompatible with a judgement of bail,
and an extra-legal use of the Court. Hyde replied,
they shall be sure never to be bailed by us but according to such letters a n d . . . if they
should . . . refuse to put in bail according to his majesty's gracious direction, and
should so desire bail without acknowledging their fault or desiring p a r d o n . . . yet bail-
able they are by the law. 1 0 0
This was unmistakable. Yet the letters patent were to go forward neverthe-
less. Dorchester wrote to Hyde that the king had decided that the letters
should be signed. Charles was resolved that the letters would be withdrawn
if the offer were refused, and was determined that the prisoners would not be
freed by any means without seeking pardon as previously stipulated. The king
wished to know as soon as possible how the prisoners 'govern themselves'.101
This was an important letter and the end desired was clear. If the prisoners
refused bail upon the king's initiative before the term, the crown did not wish
them to be free until it had received public redress, that is the demonstration
of the royal authority over those held to have committed offences against it.
In requesting that the judges deny bail until this was achieved Dorchester was
not specifically asking them to break the law. Although they might be with-
drawn, the letters were signed and sent in the knowledge of the judges' view,
accompanied by a reiteration of policy and a request for information. On one
hand Dorchester was making an absolute assertion of the king's prerogative.
He was asking that the judges act as instruments of the royal authority, of
98 10 101
SP16/149/110. " SP16/150/3. ° SP16/150/4. SP16/150/10.
Government and justice 141
government. On the other hand he was revealing that the crown had to
reckon with the law in this matter. Events would reveal the extent of the royal
authority under the law. This might be a lengthy procedure, for it was clear
that if the judges would not administer an unqualified submission and pardon
at the term, the prisoners having refused to offer submission, then the crown
would indeed be forced to try them. The knowledge of how they reacted to
the bail by letters patent would indicate the nature of that trial, and whether
it would be necessary to establish jurisdiction and guilt. The desire to achieve
a pardon was in fact an intention to shorten the lengths to which the crown
need go to achieve the end of its policy. The reaction of the judges was a
measure of the king's reckoning with the law in attempting to proceed in
summary fashion.
Likewise Charles had to reckon with the prisoners, suspicious of any device
to deny them bail. Apsley, the Lieutenant of the Tower, wrote to Dorchester
that he had habeas corpus writs for their appearance on the first day of term.
He desired the king's command, signified under the Great Seal, as to whether
to obey the writs. Each of the prisoners had threatened an action of £10,000
against Apsley if they were disobeyed.102 Eliot, Selden and the others were
clearly aware that they were playing for very high stakes. 103 Between victory
over the crown on one hand and imprisonment and a heavy sentence on the
other the gulf was wide. The political situation, and the importance of public
opinion, were grasped by the Venetian ambassador. He related how during
the summer the prisoners had refused to confess and 'accept liberty at the cost
of their conscience':104
Already, by some devices, they have postponed the case of these members for two
terms. Now the king himself recognizes that the judges can legitimately settle the
matter, and if they do not they will be exposed to censure whenever Parliament meets
... Many still believe that these prisoners will not accept their release upon such terms
[i.e. a bond of good behaviour]... Certain it is that affairs grow more bitter every day,
and by these disputes the king has made his people see that he can do much more than
they may have imagined.
Yet he concluded: 'the royal authority has been notably injured and
diminished'.105
At the end of the long vacation the prisoners were brought before the
judges, according to the king's direction, to be questioned as to their willing-
ness to accept the good behaviour bond. On 3 October they were taken from
the Tower to Serjeants' Inn and appeared before the judges in Hyde's
chamber. Six refused outright to accept the bond which they saw as an impli-
102
SP16/150/12, Apsley to Dorchester, 2 Oct. 1629.
103
104
I am grateful to John Morrill for this point.
CSPV1629-32, p. 205, Soranzo to the Doge and Senate, 2 Oct. 1629.
105
Ibid., pp. 205-6.
142 Charles I and the road to personal rule
cation of guilt. Walter Long weakened, when interviewed alone, and agreed
to be bound at the persuasion of his counsel. He afterwards tried to be
readmitted to custody without success.106 Hyde reported the proceedings to
Dorchester:
some of them thought it might prejudice the goodness of their cause. We resolved then,
that we would never bail them now, nor hereafter, without binding them to their good
behaviour... And we are all of opinion that they could not anyway disadvantage their
cause more than by standing upon [i.e. rejecting] these terms, therefore our humble
desire to his majesty i s . . . to bring them to the Court at the term, according to the writs
sued out by themselves [and] granted at the end of the last term. And if they come, they
shall be sure of no other terms at our hand[s] than now we offered them; which if they
shall publicly refuse, they will make all men witnesses of their insolent spirits, and
show themselves fitter to be where they are than abroad.107
Apsley reported similarly that they did not wish to prejudice their cause with
an imputation of guilt.108 Hyde had furnished Dorchester with a statement of
intent and with legal and political advice. It seems that the advice was taken,
for the writs were obeyed, the letters patent were not withdrawn and sub-
mission and pardon were not insisted upon with the offer of bail. The crown
had decided that the most practical course politically was to proceed accord-
ing to the law. If the prisoners accepted bail by the letters it would advance the
king's purpose, but this would not end the need to achieve a pardon or con-
viction. The habeas corpus proceedings were a fundamental obstacle to
Charles's policy and an undermining of the political use of arbitrary
imprisonment. Yet the king still had some opportunity to obtain redress.
At the beginning of term, counsel for the prisoners requested the ruling on
bail.109 The judges stated that they were eligible but also required the bond of
good behaviour. The bond asked of Selden and Holies, and probably of the
others, was £3,000, reflecting the government's view of the seriousness of
their offences.110 Selden stated the case for the prisoners. They would offer
sureties for their future appearance, as was customary, but not for good
behaviour while on bail. Selden pointed out that such a bond, usually
required of disturbers of the peace, was seldom asked even in cases of felony
or treason.111 He declared that the issue had been and should be that of bail
alone and never such a bond. He desired that the issues be severed, under-
106
Birch, ii, pp. 3 0 - 1 ; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 110.
107
SP16/150/22, Hyde to Dorchester, 4 Oct. 1629. Sir John Bramston refers to a statement by
the judges to the prisoners that 'the king had determined the question [i.e. of bail] depending
in court'; Braybrooke, Autobiography of Sir John Bramston, p. 58.
108
SP16/150/24, Apsley to Dorchester, 4 Oct. 1629.
109
The prisoners appeared at the bar on 9 October. See SP16/150/12; Birch, ii, pp. 3 1 - 2 .
110
Birch, i, p. 416; NUL, Ne.C, 15,404, pp. 229-31.
111
The offences in this case were clearly not felonious or treasonable; ST, iii, col. 309; Maitland,
Constitutional history, p. 314.
Government and justice 143
standing exactly the intention of the government in having the Court sanction
the exercise of the prerogative. He pointed out that to accept such terms was
an implication of guilt. In this instance, such an implication would defeat the
provision of the Petition of Right to have an answerable cause of imprison-
ment assessed for bail before trial, hopefully without prejudice, and certainly
without favour. He continued, 'We demand to be bailed in point of right, and
if it be not grantable of right, we do not demand it: but the finding of sureties
for the good behaviour is a point of discretion merely... ' m This was correct.
Likewise the implication reflected upon parliamentary privilege: 'and we can-
not assent to it without great offence to the Parliament, where these matters
which are surmised by return were enacted'.113 Charles had linked the ques-
tions of imprisonment and privilege in seeking to use the Court as an instru-
ment of the royal authority.
The judges disavowed any legal knowledge of privilege at this point; the
return of the writs made no mention of anything done in Parliament.114
Whitelocke's reply to Selden made the issue clear. He stated that 'the surety
of good behaviour is a preventing medicine of the damage that may fall out
to the commonwealth; and it is an act of government and jurisdiction, and
not of law'.115 This had been Selden's point. The judges were revealing their
hand and their willingness to make the law available to the interests of the
king. In the same way this was to prejudice the prisoners' concerns, the
Petition of Right and privilege. The crown was reckoning with the law and
simultaneously desiring justice to work in the interests of government. Since
bail could not be avoided, the concern was more that the prisoners sanction
this procedure than with the prevention of sedition. 'And [Attorney-General]
Heath... said, that by the command of the king, he had an information ready
in his hand to deliver in the Court against them.' 116 The threat of actual indict-
ment, immediately and without notice, was coupled with a warning from
Hyde:
If now you refuse to find sureties for the good behaviour, and be for that cause
remanded, perhaps we afterwards will not grant a habeas corpus for you, inasmuch
as we are made acquainted with the cause of your imprisonment.117
The Chief Justice knew both the law and the royal policy. In following due
process of law he was also seeking to further the ends of the crown as
Dorchester had described them. Obliged to offer bail at the term, he was act-
ing in accordance with what he had written to Dorchester on 4 October, that
112 113
5T,iii,col.289. Ibid.
114
The disallowal of the appeal to privilege here was apparently based upon the technical issue
of legal knowledge of the return of the writs, rather than upon a substantive judgement con-
cerning jurisdiction; ST, iii, col. 289. See also Guy, 'Origins of the Petition of Right', p. 294.
115 116 117
ST, iii, col. 289. Ibid. Ibid.
144 Charles I and the road to personal rule
rejection of such bail would disadvantage the cause of the prisoners, who
upon refusal would be properly in prison. Under the law he could not require
of them submission, but his statement to them carried the same assumption
as the pardon Charles had endeavoured to register, that such a refusal was an
offence against royal justice and a proper cause of detention. In refusing bail
and being remanded, the six prisoners were not in the position of the five
knights in the 1627 case, completely ineligible for bail, for they had desired
the full advantage of the Petition of Right in principle above the actual free-
dom it had made possible.
One of the prisoners eventually accepted bail on the judges' terms. Holies,
after being entreated by his wife and father-in-law, Serjeant Ashley, agreed to
be bound on 30 October.118 Ashley was a king's serjeant at law and a strong
supporter of the prerogative.119 He was probably afraid that Denzil's recal-
citrance would damage his career. Holies went free, but his acceptance of
bail, by himself and without submission to Charles, did not save him from
eventual trial as a principal actor in the events of 2 March.
By claiming a right to unconditional bail, the majority of the prisoners (and
Holies until almost the end) were refusing to allow a legal precedent for
arbitrary imprisonment and a denial of their claim of privilege. With the
knowledge that their case was one of national importance, they were forcing
the crown to travel the most embarrassing and extensive lengths possible
under the law to achieve its end of demonstrating the royal authority against
them. It was the prisoners who were rejecting the compromise devised by the
moderates in the Council. Their dissent from the manner of Charles's rule
thus promoted further political polarization. The moderates could no longer
stand on the shrinking ground between Eliot and Selden and the king. The
Venetian ambassador, seeing the public support for the prisoners, remarked
with unwitting overstatement that they had the support 'of the whole com-
munity', support which they sought to exploit and which they hoped would
lead to their compensation by Parliament.120 For the prisoners would have to
be tried - that is, the cause of their imprisonment would have to be justified
and the claim of privilege invalidated. The crown, however, wished to avoid
this process.
Given the need for royal redress, and the prisoners' consistent resolve, there
was also the possibility that they might be 'bought'. A plan to invest the recal-
citrant members of Parliament with government office can be reconstructed
in part from the surviving documentation. This episode is still clouded in
118
Ashley and William Noy (later Attorney-General) acted as sureties for Holies. Birch, ii,
pp. 36, 40, 57; NUL, N e . C , 15,404, p. 234; Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 98;
Crawford, Holies, p. 24.
119
CD1628, ii, pp. 528-9; L/, iii, pp. 758-9, 764. 120 CSPV1629-32, p. 212.
Government and justice 145
obscurity and may not have got beyond the initial idea. It was an option, how-
ever, definitely explored by Heath and the king. It represents, moreover, an
approach often favoured by Charles to the problem of dissent. Several days
after the prisoners appeared at the bar, Heath wrote to Dorchester with
Hyde's advice to
leave them as men neglected until their . . . stomachs come down, and not to proffer
any information at all... But I dare not subscribe totally to his opinion, to forbear the
information; nor could I conveniently alter his opinion with reason, lest I should
thereby discover too far the king's intentions touching them, which is fit to be as
counsels.121
Such a policy was consistent with the recruitment of Wentworth, who entered
the Privy Council at this time, and of the parliamentary lawyers Noy, Mason
and Littleton, as well as Sir Dudley Digges. 122 Charles was usually prepared
to consider, as he did at the time of the Long Parliament, the purchasing of
men's loyalty with office, as long as this did not involve any alteration in pol-
icy.123 This idea may explain Charles's reasonable mood at Hampton Court
at the end of the summer of 1629. It is conceivable that the king, his honour
satisfied, might have extended his official hand to all the prisoners save Eliot,
his hatred for whom was clearly unappeasable. Dorchester and the moderates
were probably promoting this manoeuvre. Heath was utterly frank in dis-
cussing it with the Secretary.124 If it worked it would greatly advance the
policy of conciliation and of minimizing reflections upon the crown while
renewing respect for the royal authority. The last aspect was all-important.
Hyde's advice to Heath echoed the meaning of his statement at the hearing,
but the same week he seems to have agreed to a different measure.
The prisoners having been remanded, Heath devised a plan to prosecute
them summarily and in camera. He submitted the scheme to Dorchester for
review and Charles's approval, and had Hyde agree to implement it in his
chamber at the inns of court. It was directly linked to the idea of 'buying' the
prisoners, and in part grew out of the idea of striking a possible bargain upon
a surprise attack. The Lieutenant of the Tower also agreed to use informers
to spy on the prisoners. For the in camera hearing they would have to be
brought before the Court, 'because otherwise they cannot... be compelled to
answer'.125 This could be done in the custody of the Marshal before one of the
judges, where they could be charged 'on a sudden, and in an evening . . . ' 126
121
SP16/150/53. See also Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice'; N U L , N e . C , 15,405, p. 2 3 2 ;
Gardiner {History, vii, p. I l l ) neglected to discuss this question.
122
Whitelocke, Memorials, i, pp. 3 8 - 9 .
123
B. Manning, 'The aristocracy and the downfall of Charles P, in B. Manning (ed.), Politics,
religion and the English civil war (London, 1973), pp. 7 9 - 8 0 .
124
See also SP97/14/fo. 330r.
125 126
SP16/150/53, Heath to Dorchester, 13 Oct. 1629. Ibid.
146 Charles I and the road to personal rule
To this Dorchester replied that it was not clear why the prisoners could not
answer as well out of the Tower as the Court of King's Bench, 'because such
as are in process are bound to answer from all places . . . ' 127 Nevertheless it
was decided in consultation with the king 'that the information shall go on
with all expedition, the nature of the business not permitting neglect... nor
protracting of time'.128 What was the reason for all this haste and secrecy? It
is likely that the situation in the country, and certainly the need for a Parlia-
ment, were felt to be pressing.129 One consideration was definite. As the head
of the judiciary, Hyde did not enjoy the full confidence of the government.
Yet he was more disposed to the needs of the crown that some of the other
judges, whose favour, as the present case had shown, Charles could not take
for granted.
The day that Dorchester advised Heath that the extraordinary procedure
was approved, he wrote to Lord Keeper Coventry on a matter which was
definitely related. He wished to know whether the chief judge of the
Exchequer, Baron Walter, would accede to the wishes of the king. The Sec-
retary wanted a categorical answer.130 Walter had altered his opinion on this
case and in so doing had greatly angered Charles. Having encouraged the
king to prosecute, Walter had now decided, apparently, that prosecution
could legitimately be blocked by parliamentary privilege.131 It was suggested
to Walter that he petition to be allowed to retire from the bench. He main-
tained his stand, however, and held to the view that he could only be dis-
missed for breach of the law. Charles ordered his suspension from office. 132
Desperately in need of a satisfactory solution, he was willing to lean on the
judges and coerce them to obtain the ruling he required. His treatment of
Walter was a reaction to the dissent of one judge. But the evidence suggests
that it was also Charles's intention to stop defection amongst the judiciary
and encourager les autres.
Walter's fate shows how Charles was failing to learn (as he usually did), 133
- in this instance about the requirements of English legality. This was largely
a reaction against the use made of the law by men such as Selden, abler than
himself. Charles's response to the complexities of constitutional conflict - to
the oracles and riddles, as he called them 134 - w a s to reject those complexities
127
S P 1 6 / 1 5 0 / 5 5 , Dorchester t o Heath, 13 Oct. 1 6 2 9 .
128 129 13
Ibid. CSPV1629-32, pp. 199,205. ° SP16/150/52.
131
This is the most logical interpretation of Whitelocke's statement of Coventry's view;
Whitelocke, Memorials, i, pp. 45-6. See also DNB, s.v. Chambers, Richard. Walter's stand
was clearly uninfluenced by fear of parliamentary action against the judiciary, given his
preference for the loss of judicial office. See also Gardiner, History, vii, p. 114.
132
SP16/150/47, SP16/150/58; NUL, N e . C , 15,404, pp. 230-1, 233; Birch, ii, pp. 3 3 ^ , 36;
Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 112-14.
133 134
Seep. 176, below. ST, iii, col. 288.
Government and justice 147
and urge his judges to do the same, in the interests of royal power. His attitude
to the judges was derived from a belief in his own rectitude, the concomitant
of which was a belief in the guilt of those (such as the prisoners) who had
given him offence. The Venetian ambassador observed how the imprisoned
members of Parliament remained constant in their resolution:
it clearly appears how rigorously they maintain the principle that they cannot be
adjudged guilty. The king has intimated to all the judges that it is his royal pleasure
that they shall proceed to their condemnation. The judges excused themselves, thus
giving his majesty particular offence. He subsequently sent a writ for the suspension
of one of them . . . It is thought that he will be dismissed altogether ... 1 3 5
With Charles now under pressure to prosecute, and with the judges very
dubious of the crown's stance against privilege, it is logical to infer that
Charles was seeking to signal the other judges by suspending Walter. The
prisoners, moreover, understood that message: their guilt was assumed, and
inherent in any assertion of the jurisdiction of King's Bench over that of
Parliament.
The in camera hearing was an attempt to avoid the difficulties facing the
crown in the case and their public display. Of the six prisoners in custody, 136
it was intended to prosecute only Eliot, Holies and Valentine, the ringleaders
on 2 March. The trial of fewer defendants would be less embarrassing.
Punishment of them might induce the others to submit, and Selden's legal
ability would have disinclined the government to proceed against him
further. Heath told Dorchester of the arrangements and, the king being con-
sulted, the plan was finally approved. This was the day following Walter's
statement of his intransigence.137 Heath explained why the prisoners had to
leave the Tower. The information was filed, and it was necessary to have
them answer in court. If they appeared 'by the coercion of the ordinary pro-
cess of the Court', this would 'require time, and may admit many delays, if the
defence pleases, and there is little doubt of their wills in this case'. 138 But if the
appearance was simply in the custody of the marshal,
they are as if present in court, where by the rule or order of the Court only, without any
process, they may be charged... which is the king's action, and if they do not answer
within the time prescribed to them by the Court, which shall not be long, it shall be
taken pro confesso . . . it can be no other way but by a habeas corpus: but I advise the
manner of it to be this. They shall not appear publicly in court where they may have
opportunity to vent themselves, but the Lord Chief Justice shall send for them on a
sudden to Serjeants' Inn, where nothing shall be done but to commit them to the per-
son of that court and to charge them with the information, and bailed they shall not
be if they would offer it... I find him and left him resolved, that if any of the prisoners
135
CSPV1629-32, p. 222, Soranzo to the Doge and Senate, 23 Oct. 1629.
136
Holies not being bailed until 3 0 October.
137 138
15 Oct. 1629, SP16/150/66-7. SP16/150/66.
148 Charles I and the road to personal rule
would now relent, and desire to be bailed, they shall not be received until the king be
first made acquainted thereof. And whensoever it shall be done I will take care that the
entry thereof upon record shall appear to be per mandatum domini regis, and not as
if it were done mero jure}39
At one stroke, Heath intended to win the legal and political battle for the
crown. He wished to establish the jurisdiction of King's Bench without
having the prisoners physically and publicly come to court, and to elicit, if not
an acknowledgement of jurisdiction, a tacit confession of guilt. If necessary
he sought, very dubiously, to invalidate by common law record any definition
of an absolute power of prerogative imprisonment made by the Petition of
Right in this case. Previously the bail by letters patent had been intended to
prejudice the prisoners' trial and to have the operation of the law sanctioned
by favour. Bail per mandatum . . . would be regardless of customary notions
of justice, since really at the royal discretion. The whole exercise would be a
strictly arbitrary procedure in admitted contradiction of the due process of
law. It relied upon the co-operation of the Chief Justice and was approved by
the king and the Secretary of State.140 Such was the desire of the crown to have
the prerogative sanctioned by the name of justice despite the law. In this way
the issues of jurisdiction and imprisonment had become thoroughly linked.
The crown's attitude presumed the guilt of its opponents and the Venetian
ambassador had been perspicacious. The resolve of the prisoners had
exposed the belief of the king, and of some about him, 141 that trial of the
offence, the cause of imprisonment, should be unnecessary. Yet finally it
could not be unnecessary. The in camera hearing, an attempted substitute for
a public trial, was never held. Heath had overstated its efficacy, but in itself
it could not be a conclusive measure. For the crown could not ultimately
avoid a reckoning with the law, that is the insistence of the prisoners that they
be freed unconditionally upon bail or tried without delay, and the likely
opinion of the judiciary as a whole that a summary hearing could be no sub-
139
Ibid. Whether a bail so recorded could justify arbitrary imprisonment at law is dubious, see
Selden's argument, CD1628, ii, pp. 3 4 8 - 9 . It w o u l d also be only a c o m m o n law record, and
a distinctly irregular proceeding, in the face of a statutory requirement. Heath's plan here
echoes his attempt t o pervert the record in the Five Knights' case; Guy, 'Origins of the
Petition of Right', p. 2 9 7 .
140
S P 1 6 / 1 5 0 / 6 7 , Dorchester t o Heath, 15 Oct. 1 6 2 9 . Heath's intention t o interpret refusal t o
answer the charge pro confesso probably derived from the c o m m o n law principle of nihil
dicit under which the prisoners were ultimately found guilty. Yet o n that occasion King's
Bench required a plea against jurisdiction t o be argued, and Heath's plan for the in camera
hearing appears arbitrary and illegal in every sense.
141
N o t surprisingly, there is n o evidence that Coventry, with his sense of legality, approved of
the initiative. Dorchester, as a non-lawyer, w o u l d probably have h a d fewer difficulties.
Hyde's agreement to participate is extraordinary; Heath may have misrepresented the extent
of his co-operation which may only have been t o refuse bail without consultation with the
king. Whatever Heath's misrepresentation, the king's approval remains crucial evidence.
Government and justice 149
stitute for such a trial. If the law were disregarded in the way proposed by
Heath, the certain objection of the prisoners would present grave difficulties
for the crown. The need to establish guilt under the law could not be avoided.
As Apsley reported to Dorchester, the prisoners would neither confess of their
own volition nor request pardon.142 They were inspired by a fusion of prin-
ciple, personality and overwhelming political investment. They were not,
therefore, such as could be coerced or bought.
Heath's information was filed in King's Bench on 4 November, eight days
after Apsley reported the unwillingness of the prisoners to petition the king.
Eliot, Holies and Valentine were charged with seditious conduct and speeches
in Parliament, principally Eliot's speech against the Council and the judges of
23 February and, 'by confederacy aforehand', the demonstration of 2 March.
The royal authority, Heath argued, had power over the sitting of Parlia-
ment.143 With the charges laid, the defendants refused to plead to the
offences. They entered a plea against the jurisdiction of the Court, as they had
in Star Chamber, maintaining that only Parliament could judge them. They
knew that their guilt was assumed and their offences political such as to be
adjudged true upon any hearing. A plea against jurisdiction was the only one
which would not ipso facto involve a verdict of guilty. Heath moved that the
plea be overruled but the Court desired it to be argued. The judges, however,
gave a telling clue to their thinking and their relationship to the crown case.
Hyde invoked the resolution of all the judges earlier in the year that an offence
committed in Parliament, 'criminally or contemptuously', rested punishable
in another court.144 Hence, as Whitelocke stated, the sole remaining question
was whether King's Bench could punish such an offence. Croke and Jones
added that jurisdiction in such a case would be only logical: King's Bench was
the highest criminal court and the king technically sat in judgement there. 145
Things were quickly becoming clear. The government was succeeding in con-
veying its notions of guilt and jurisdiction and in enlisting the support of at
least some of the judges. The case had surely had a cumulative effect upon
those sitting in King's Bench. There had been the king's questions, probing
the subject of privilege and emphasizing the serious nature of the offences, the
crown's insistence upon a bond of good behaviour and finally the pressing
home of the charges in court. There had been, above all, the suspension of
Walter. It could only have had a sobering effect upon his brethren. In
response to the crown's urgings and in the light of their own opinions, the
King's Bench judges were apparently ready to override all former doubts
about privilege and any fear of parliamentary reprisal. This was despite the
142 143
SP16/150/101, Apsley to Dorchester, 27 Oct. 1629. ST, iii, cols. 293-4.
144 145
•("the Parliament being ended")', ibid., col. 294. Ibid., cols. 294-5.
150 Charles I and the road to personal rule
fact that the charges in King's Bench were virtually identical with those laid
earlier in Star Chamber.146
The hearing recommenced on 25 January, in Hilary term 1630. The pre-
vious day, Sir Thomas Barrington had written to his mother, 'the great affair
of the King's Bench is tomorrow to be tried between the king and our Parlia-
ment men . . . God send such an issue as may most glorify Him and benefit
king and subjects.'147 The fact that the prisoners were allowed counsel con-
firms that the judges did not consider this a capital trial.148 Eliot was involved
in the preparation of the defence and the submissions to the Court reflect his
thought. For the prisoners privilege was, of course, the basis for a legal
defence of their behaviour. Eliot, however, in the course of opposition and
under the pressure of prosecution, was evolving the view of privilege as an
ideal in itself. He was concerned with the standing of Parliament in the eyes
of posterity, wanting to satisfy the law insofar as it did not prejudice this end,
taking the Tudor idea of parliamentary liberties - the right to counsel and
legislate - to a new extreme.149 Mason, in defending Eliot, held that the
offences were in fact expressions of the proper role of Parliament: The Parlia-
ment is . . . the grand council of the king.'150 He argued that despite the
supposed conspiracy outside the house, 'yet the act is legal; for members of
the house may advise of matters out of the house: for the house is not so
much for consultations as for proposition of them'.151
The Court replied that the issue was not the truth of the offences, but
'admitting them to be offences, the sole question is whether this court may
punish them; so that a great part of your argument is nothing to the present
question'.152 The defence proceeded to argue the rights of privilege against
jurisdiction without surrendering the brief that Eliot and the others had com-
mitted no wrong. Any appeal to the supposedly curial status of the Commons
(not a novel idea in the seventeenth century) was very dubious. The lower
house had little claim to be a court of justice.153 The defence, however, could
146 147
SP16/142/36; ST, iii, cols. 293-4. Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 124.
148
I am grateful to Wilfred Prest for advice on this point. Eliot and Holies were defended by
Mason, Bramston and Holt, and Valentine by Mason and Calthorpe. Later Holt was
replaced by William Lenthal. Gilbert Barrell is also mentioned as a counsel for the defend-
ants; Hulme, Life of Sir John Eliot, p. 329.
149
See the discussion of the events of 2 March in chapter 3, above, particularly p. 84, n. 160.
While Eliot used the word liberties' in the exchange with Pym in 1629, in the early seven-
teenth century the word 'privilege' could be used to refer to liberties in the technical sense.
Braybrooke, Autobiography of Sir John Bramston, pp. 49ff. See also Maitland, Consti-
tutional history, pp. 3 2 0 - 1 ; Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 8 - 1 0 ; Grosart, Letter book of
Sir John Eliot, pp. 89ff.; Hulme, Life of Sir John Eliot, p. 335; J. Forster, Sir John Eliot: a
biography (2 vols., London, 1864), pp. 5 5 0 - 1 .
150 15f m
ST, iii, col. 2 9 5 . Ibid., col. 298. Ibid, col. 299.
153
Ibid., cols. 296, 300, 301, 303; Elton, Tudor constitution, pp. 234n, 263-4.
Government and justice 151
and did invoke the Commons' right to govern and punish its members as well
as the legal privilege implied by the ancient tradition that Parliament was the
highest court in the realm.154 This brief interlocked with the view that 'these
offences are justifiable'.155 For counsel could argue simultaneously against
the jurisdiction of the Court and in defence of the behaviour of Eliot and the
rest. In Calthorpe's words, 'For any thing that appears [charged], the House
of Commons had approved of these matters, therefore they ought not to be
questioned in this court.'156 And again: 'the Parliament is a transcendent
court, and of transcendent jurisdiction:... and if they be offences, this reflects
upon the house, which hath not punished them'.157 This was the point of the
crown's assumption of guilt with its appeal to criminal jurisdiction. If such
jurisdiction were established over the House of Commons, and Parliament,
then privilege could not protect acts which were incompatible with the
character of the government practised by the crown. This was the basic
constitutional issue at stake in the trial. Calthorpe pointed to the absence of
legal precedent for the punishment of what were (in his view) similar actions
in Parliament when any plea had been entered against jurisdiction. Such an
argument from absence could well be good in law, but it could break down
in view of the unprecedented nature of the offences as charged. Only the case
itself could provide a conclusive judgement against parliamentary privilege -
and it might well.158
Heath's reply was an effective submission confronting the arguments of the
defence head-on. He moved swiftly to refute any claim that the Commons, or
indeed Parliament, was a permanent criminal court. He also attacked the link
the defence wanted to forge between the liberties (and probably the curial
status) of the Commons and the notion of the High Court of Parliament:
the House of Commons is not a court of justice of itself. The two houses are but one
body, and they cannot proceed criminally to punish crimes, but only their members by
way of imprisonment; and also they are not a court of record . . . And there is no
necessity that the king should expect a new Parliament. The Lords may grant com-
missions to determine matters after the Parliament ended; but the House of Commons
cannot do so. And also a new House of Commons consists of new men, which have
no cognizance of these offences.159
Heath's argument dwelt, of course, on the nature of those offences. He held
154
ST, iii, cols. 295-304; Elton, Tudor constitution, pp. 233ff., 264-6; CD1629, p. 178. These
principles were presented in conjunction by counsel because to do so particularly suited the
defence of acts in the Commons before an extra-parliamentary court. It would also seem that
there was an intention to suggest the curial status of the Commons.
155 156 157
ST, iii, col. 300. Ibid., col. 301. Ibid., col. 303.
158
Almost certainly Calthorpe w a s arguing o n the basis that the supposed offences were not
capital; ibid., cols. 301, 303, and see ibid., col. 299.
159
ST, iii, col. 2 9 9 . A t least t w o of the judges endorsed Heath's argument that Parliament w a s
not a permanent criminal court; ibid., cols. 3 0 6 - 7 .
152 Charles I and the road to personal rule
that Parliament could make complaints in a parliamentary way, but not move
things 'which tend to the distraction of the king and his government'.160 The
defendants had not acted as befitted counsellors of state; their behaviour had
verged upon treason.161 Heath completed his outlining of the offences by
stressing that they were the actions of individuals. He thus avoided the
stronger legal defence which could have been mounted if the supposed
offences had been demonstrable resolutions of the whole House of Com-
mons: 'if the truth were so these matters might be given in evidence'.162 He
stressed, moreover, the novelty of the crime in order to argue that 'there can-
not be a precedent of such a judgement'.163 Heath had presented a brief for an
arbitrary government, based upon an assumption of guilt - a brief to which
his political views and style of mind were eminently suited. From this an argu-
ment in favour of the Court's jurisdiction could easily flow.
The legal question was no straightforward matter calling for a clear-cut
decision. The actions of the defendants could easily be seen as seriously
criminal. Heath was right, however, in portraying the offences as unpre-
cedented. They were, above all, political offences which had inspired the
wrath of the king. They had also deepened the existing constitutional conflict
and ushered in a web of legal complexities. The judges, when first consulted
by Charles, while acknowledging the difficulty of the issue, had generally
considered the offences to be punishable outside Parliament. Then, when
consulted at the time of the Star Chamber proceedings, they had appeared to
favour the arguments of the defence. If the judges of King's Bench were to rule
in favour of the crown, they must contradict this latter opinion and overrule
any marginal claim of privilege. The four judges were to display remarkable
unanimity in handing down their ruling on the defendants' plea.
Essentially two principles underlay the ruling of the Court and together
made the decision on jurisdiction possible. Both were evident in the opinion
given by each individual judge.164 One was the initial pronouncement of
the judiciary in 1629 that offences against the crown committed in Parliament
and not there punished could legitimately be punished in another court.165
The other was the notion of guilt which the crown had striven to communi-
cate to the judges in this case. Here the government's conspiracy theory
acquired vital legal significance as a description of events. The actions of Eliot
and the rest represented a conspiracy by individuals which was unparliamen-
tary and offensive to the crown. The application of these two principles
together would confirm the union of government and justice under the
Caroline regime.
160 161 162 163
Ibid., col. 3 0 4 . Ibid. Ibid., col. 3 0 5 ; SP16/142/36. ST, iii, col. 3 0 5 .
164
For the full judgements see ibid., cols. 3 0 5 - 9 .
165
This involved the overturning of any view that Strode's case (1513) established a general
principle of privilege beyond the privacy of the act of 4 Hen. 8; ibid., col. 3 0 9 .
Government and justice 153
The judges all concurred that the offences were punishable in the Court of
King's Bench.166 This ruling was made and this precedent established in the
name of justice, and of the government of the country. In Judge Croke's
words, 'all manner of offences which are against the crown are examinable in
this court'.167 Jones said that such offences against the state should not remain
unpunished. He confessed that although the case was new, the issue had been
in his mind for eighteen years.168 Whitelocke's opinion was the most revealing
as to the significance of the decision. It was also one of a series of pronounce-
ments he had made on the question of sovereignty since the previous reign,
pronouncements which had increasingly favoured the royal power: 169
But though it be not capital, yet it is criminal, for it is sowing of sedition to the destruc-
tion of the commonwealth. The question now is not between us that are judges of this
court, and the Parliament, or between the king and the Parliament, but between some
private members of the House of Commons and the king himself: for here the king
himself questions them for those offences, as well he may. In every commonwealth
there is one super-eminent power that is not subject to be questioned by any other, and
that is the king in this commonwealth... no other within the realm hath this privilege.
It is true, that that which is done in Parliament by consent of all the house, shall not
be questioned elsewhere; but if any private members [no longer act as befits judges but
enter into sedition] is there such sanctimony in the place, that they may not be
questioned for it elsewhere?170
Whitelocke's was a fair conclusion on a difficult constitutional issue, an
issue which would remain open to debate. The point of the ruling was that the
exercise of the royal authority in government was, ipso facto, just. The crown
had found the defendants' words and actions unacceptable. They, however,
believed that they had behaved properly and were therefore innocent. The
appeal to privilege was essentially a legal device forced upon them by the
political nature of the issue. The ruling upon jurisdiction was the legal
expression of the crown's desire to punish them for behaviour which it would
not tolerate. The understanding of a conspiracy by private members was vital
to the crown's case and enabled it to avoid the arguable immunity provided
by the resolutions of the House of Commons. Yet it begged, and evaded, the
question of what could be the unacceptable behaviour of a whole house,
involving as it did an essential judgement of proper parliamentary practice.
Three days had been allotted for the hearing on jurisdiction but the judges
cut short the arguments on the second day -(27 January) and overrode the
defence by giving their ruling. It could now be required of the defendants that
they answer the information as charged. Failure to enter a satisfactory plea
would render them liable to condemnation upon a nihil dicit, tacit confession
166 167 168
Ibid., cols. 305ff. Ibid., col. 309. Ibid., col. 306.
169
S. R. Gardiner (ed.), Parliamentary debates in 1610 (Camden Society, London, 1862),
pp. 103-4; LD1628, pp. 219-20, 224,226; Russell, Parliaments, p. 364.
170
ST, iii, col. 308 (material in brackets my translation from the Latin)
154 Charles I and the road to personal rule
under the common law. In being required to plead further, thereby acknowl-
edging the jurisdiction of the Court and enabling trial of their words and
actions per se, the prisoners were warned that the alternative was to be judged
guilty by the ordinary process of law, given the ruling against them on the
jurisdiction of King's Bench.171 They were at the end of the road by which
they had sought to extend and evade the crown's efforts to publicize their
arbitrary guilt of political offence and hence the justice of their imprisonment.
The only option remaining was to seek to prevaricate and delay the
inevitable.
The prisoners tried to formulate a plea defending privilege yet satisfactory
to the Court. The legal position was hopeless, however, and their counsel were
dispirited and afraid. Time was also running out. On 1 February the Court
gave the prisoners two days to enter their pleas. They could confer with
counsel but it was, as Eliot wrote, 'a time more proper to devotion than for
law'. 172 On Monday, 2 February, a reprieve was obtained until the following
Thursday, the last day of term. There was too little time, however, and
nothing could be done. On Thursday, counsel pressed for a deferment until
next term but to no avail.173 Jones gave the judgement. He said that the
defendants had admitted the matter of the information to be true, 'and we
think their plea to the jurisdiction insufficient...' The liberties of Parliament
were not in question, 'but [rather] in this case there was a conspiracy . . . to
slander the state, and to raise sedition and discord between the king, his peers,
and people; and this was not a parliamentary course'. Jones invoked the
resolution of all the judges the previous year, that such an offence against the
crown in Parliament could be punished in another court. 174 The judgement
was a foregone conclusion with the prisoners' failure to alter their pleas,
already decidedly insufficient to the judges. The sentencing marked the goal
of the crown's intentions since the arrests a year earlier. Eliot, Holies and
Valentine were to be imprisoned at the king's pleasure, and not released with-
out giving security for their good behaviour and making submission and
acknowledgement of their offence. They were also heavily fined. Eliot's
financial penalty was £2,000. 175 Thus the prisoners' guilt was legally
recorded.
171
Ibid., cols. 3 0 5 - 6 ; Birch, ii, p. 56; Grosart, Letter book of Sir John Eliot, p. 89.
172
Grosart, Letter book of Sir John Eliot, p. 9 1 .
173
This account of proceedings between 2 6 January and 5 February is based principally upon
that of Eliot, a first-hand source, in preference to that of Birch. See Grosart, Letter book of
Sir John Eliot, pp. 8 9 - 9 5 ; ST, iii, cols. 3 0 5 - 9 ; Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 132;
Hulme, Life of Sir John Eliot, pp. 3 3 5 - 6 ; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 119. See also Birch, ii,
pp. 56—7.
174
ST, iii, cols. 309-10.
175
Holies was fined 1,000 marks and Valentine (being of less ability t o pay) £ 5 0 0 ; ibid.,
col. 310.
Government and justice 155
The judges of King's Bench had not specifically prejudiced the law but they
had favoured the crown in its proceedings. Their insistence upon judgement
of bail and the requirements of trial created obstacles for the government
which was forced to achieve its ends under the law and in the gaze of the
public eye. Yet the judges' perception of the prisoners' criminality, together
with pressure from the crown, confirmed them in the notions of guilt and
jurisdiction which rendered their judgement possible and ultimately made
them accessories to the fusion of government and justice or arbitrary rule.
The ruling on jurisdiction was the legal and constitutional key. It involved a
conception of royal government as being rightly unprejudiced by indepen-
dent dissent in policy, or criminal law as construed by the king's courts. It also
involved a progressive commitment by the King's Bench judges which,
despite their final unanimity, must have been difficult.176
In context the case presented a paradox. The issue of arbitrary imprison-
ment had led to the Petition of Right and its requirement of an answerable
cause being shown upon writ of habeas corpus. In forcing the crown to pro-
ceed according to law, Eliot and his companions found that their sole resort
was to avoid direct answers to the charges levelled against them which had in
fact been truly indicated by the cause shown. In arguing the legitimacy of their
actions in pleading against jurisdiction, they also came to argue for par-
liamentary rights, for the legal protection of loyal political activity as indi-
vidual members understood it. In forcing the prisoners to use privilege as a
defence, the crown had furthered its development as an ideal in itself. It was
an objection to the predisposition and the nature of Charles's government,
specifically represented in the predisposition of the Court to rule upon its
jurisdiction. In arguing that they should rightly answer in Parliament, Eliot
and the others were also arguing against their guilt. But the final judgement
of the Court was against them. It had in truth been pre-determined, and that
by the crown, forced to abide by the law, and insisting upon the justice of its
government.
What was the fate of the prisoners and the subsequent history of the case?
The Long Parliament condemned the entire proceedings (which featured
extensively in the Grand Remonstrance) as illegal and against the privilege of
Parliament, awarding compensation, and in 1667 both houses upheld these
resolutions, the Lords reversing the decision in the case upon writ of error. 177
Eliot died in prison in 1632, still refusing to submit to the king and admit his
guilt. What happened to Holies after the judgement is unclear. He was
176
H o w far the remainder of the judiciary subscribed to the ruling in this case it is difficult to
know. The complexity of the privilege question, with that of the evidence, suggests that the
judiciary would at least have remained divided on the matter in early 1630.
177
ST, iii, cols. 2 9 3 , 3 1 0 - 1 5 ; Maitland, Constitutional history, pp. 2 4 2 , 3 2 1 ; Gardiner,
Constitutional documents, pp. 209-10.
156 Charles I and the road to personal rule
apparently still in prison in 1631. He was seeking to petition the king for
release at that time. He lived in the West Country during most of the 1630s,
presumably being bound for good behaviour, and finally paid his fine. He
resented his prosecution, an experience which encouraged his militancy in the
Long Parliament. Valentine and Strode remained in prison until they were
released in 1640, on the eve of the Short Parliament. Strode and Holies were
two of the 'five members' whom Charles sought to arrest for treason in 1642.
Hobart gave security and was freed in 1631, at a time of plague. Selden was
freed in May 1631, at the instance of Arundel and Pembroke, who wanted his
assistance at law, and was bound on security for appearance in court once a
term. He abjectly petitioned the king in 1635 and was unconditionally dis-
charged. Walter Long was fined and imprisoned by Star Chamber on the very
same day that Eliot, Holies and Valentine were found guilty. He was still in
prison in 1632 but his later fate is unclear. He also sat in the Long Parlia-
ment.178 Neither the prisoners' resolve nor the king's implacability were
exhausted by the crown's pyrrhic victory in the political battle of 1629 and
1630.
In the midst of the trial, Weston wrote to Cardinal Richelieu that Charles
was making good progress in reducing 'the puritans' to reason. 179 His use of
this word echoed Charles's statement to Chateauneuf several months earlier.
Weston and Dorchester were concerned that political dissent should not
impair the international standing of the government. After the judgement in
the case Dorchester wrote to England's envoy in Switzerland, reporting the
proceedings and estimating their significance for the regime:
time hath bred no small alteration, but (thanks be to God) all to the better, by the
settling of the disquiet of men's minds after the disorders of the last Parliament. And
that is done more ways than one, but chiefly by sentences in the chief judicial court
against such as were the chief authors of those disorders. Three of which are fined and
imprisoned by the King's Bench upon the point of refusing to answer to their
accusations. Whereby the world sees that Parliament men must be responsible for
their words and actions in other courts, and so they will be more moderate and
circumspect hereafter.180
For Dorchester the point of the sentences was not only the prisoners' guilt
but the effect of its public demonstration. The point was that obedience
should be compelled by the popular knowledge that the king's authority was
178
N o t long before Eliot's death he maintained that he was not the king's prisoner but the
judges', PRO, C 1 1 5 , M 3 5 , 8 3 8 9 , Pory to Slego, 3 1 Dec. 1 6 3 1 . See also Birch, ii, pp. 55-6,
59, 61-2, 64, 66, 83, 96, 103, 161-2; Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 249; NUL, Ne.C,
15,404, pp. 232-3; Grosart, Letter book of Sir John Eliot, pp. 217-18; ST, iii, cols. 233-6;
Fletcher, Outbreak of the English civil war, pp. 257,340; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 226—7;
Hulme, Life of Sir John Eliot, p. 391; DNB, s.v. Selden, Hobart, Holies, Valentine and
Strode; Crawford, Denzil Holies, pp. 25-6.
179 18
A M R E , CPA, 4 3 , fol. 3 3 8 r - v . ° SP16/162/18.
Government and justice 157
just. Dorchester's view contradicted Eliot's idea of the central and high place
of parliamentary privilege. He believed that Parliament should not provide
exemption from the universal authority of the crown. But Dorchester's view
also reflected his belief in the parliamentary process. The judgement, he
concluded, meant that 'the king, when he finds good, may meet with his
people with so much the more assurance, that they will never transgress in the
point of due respect and obedience'.181 This conclusion represented the more
moderate interpretation of a reform in government, an interpretation which
Charles would completely reject. Dorchester's constitutionalist view had
come to accommodate the drift to prerogative rule, a phase which the Sec-
retary saw as temporary in the history of the reign. He reported the recovery
of trade and the dying down of disputes over the customs. The king, more-
over, had begun to fine those who, while eligible, had failed to take up knight-
hood - 'So as by this and other lawful (though extraordinary) ways some
good sums are likely to be raised, till his majesty shall see [in] his own time
to help himself again by the usual course of subsidies.'182 The events of the last
parliamentary session had prompted a general policy for the government of
the kingdom, not least out of financial necessity. It was characterized by the
rejection of privilege and its claim for the place of Parliament, by objection to
the consistent dissent of leading members of the political nation—within both
houses and beyond, by the extraordinary use of the law in the courts and the
country, by a developing financial dependence on customs revenues, and by
a distinct spirit of reform.
Dorchester's report was an explicit conclusion on a critical point in the
development of the personal rule. Here the emergence of the style of govern-
ment which characterized those years can be detected. That beginning grew
out of the collapse of the Parliament and the battle in the courts, as well as out
of the desire for political improvement which surrounded Buckingham's
death. It was as much the inadvertent result of recent events as of any design.
It was, moreover, inextricably related, as will be seen, to the opening of
Anglo-Spanish talks in Madrid during the winter of 1629-30. Yet this
peculiarly Caroline style of government had an overriding and unifying
quality. In proceeding against the members of Parliament and in resorting to
unparliamentary taxation, Charles's government had acted in arbitrary
fashion and provoked very serious conflict. It had invoked the royal preroga-
tive to imply that the king's discretion should be unimpeachable, not subject
to any legal or public review.183 Such was the depth of the crisis that even
181 182
Ibid. Ibid.
183
Such an approach was anticipated by the forced loan, but Dorchester's commentary marks
a very significant turning point. The political crisis had become immeasurably graver since
the mid-1620s: the national policy the Secretary described was definitely new and it led to
an era of real personal rule. Eliot believed that England was inexorably becoming absolutist
after 1629; Sommerville, Politics and ideology, p. 158.
158 Charles I and the road to personal rule
The tract was a form of advice to the king of England to 'secure your state
and to bridle the impertinency of Parliament'.185 It held that the basis of
government should be force and necessity, and that authority should be solely
in the hands of the prince. It advocated a regal power to legislate without
Parliament, considering that Parliament, as the highest court, should be sub-
ject to the king. It pointed to the danger of parliamentary usurpation of royal
power and held up the example of Louis XI of France who suppressed such a
development. The tract advocated many unparliamentary and novel taxes
and the fortification of the country to keep the people in subjection. Heath
held this to be a libel of the crown, supposedly implying Charles's intention
to do such things. He argued that the document would generate disorder
in England by encouraging fears of constitutional innovation. Charles,
according to Heath, had upheld the kingdom's ancient and fundamental
laws. The alleged crime of the defendants was to have considered publishing
the tract, failing to bring it to the knowledge of the government.186 What use
Cotton sought to make of the document, and how far his intention to answer
it was malicious, or out of desire for genuine debate, is difficult to know. It is
very likely that he considered it relevant to current developments and desired
the opinion of like-minded associates. Circulation of the tract could only
encourage discussion of the form of government in England.
It has been argued that the prosecution of Cotton and his associates is
evidence of conflict between court factions, and that the arrests represented
a counter-attack on Buckingham's enemies by the remnants of his fol-
lowers.187 There would certainly appear to be truth in this. Cotton believed he
had sore enemies at court in Bishops Laud and Neile. There remained a
residual division in political circles between those who had risen under
Buckingham and those who had not.188 Yet congruent with these elements of
faction and personality, there is a wider political and ideological significance
to the Cotton case as an historical event. Contemporary observers believed it
was very much bound up with the revolt in King's Bench. The two cases were
clearly linked in the public mind. 189 Chateauneuf reported the two pros-
ecutions as one. He understood that the Cotton arrests could be construed as
185
SP16/151/fo. 134r.
186
SP16/151/36. On seditious libel see Holdsworth, History of English law, v, pp. 2 0 8 - 1 2 .
187
K. M. Sharpe, Sir Robert Cotton, 1586-1631 (Oxford, 1979), pp. 1 4 5 , 2 1 3 - 1 5 . 1 am grate-
ful to Kevin Sharpe for helpful discussions of this period.
188
Dorchester, a leading Buckingham client, played a prominent role in the proceedings against
Cotton; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 182. The Venetian ambassador reported a rumour
that the Dudley tract had been found in Buckingham's papers; CSPV1629-32, pp. 2 4 1 - 2 .
See also Green, Diary of John Rous, pp. 3 4 , 46; Halliwell, Autobiography of Sir Simonds
D'Ewes, ii, p. 4 1 ; SP16/139/19.
189
BL, Add. M s 2 2 9 5 9 , fo. 37; SP16/153/23; PRO, C 1 1 5 , M 3 0 , 8066, 8142, M 3 1 , 8119,
Flower to Scudamore, 7 and 13 N o v . 1629, 3 0 Jan. 1630.
160 Charles I and the road to personal rule
190 191
PRO 31/3/66/fos. 195v-196r, 209r. CSPV1629-32, p. 233.
192
APC1629-30, 3 and 13 Nov. 1629; SP16/151/36/fos. 134r, 137v-138r; CSPV 1629-32,
pp. 2 4 1 - 2 ; SP78/85/fo. 122v; PRO, C115, M30, 8066, Flower to Scudamore, 13 Nov.
1629.
193
N U L , N e . C , 15,404, p. 2 3 3 , Clare to his son, Lord Haughton, 7 Oct. 1629. Clare particu-
larly resented the proceedings against him since they were conducted in a prerogative court;
ibid., p. 234.
Government and justice 161
Bench, since the time of the Five Knights' case. 194 Cotton himself had advised
the Council against maintaining a hard-line attitude against Parliament in
1628. He was also closely associated with leading activists in the Commons.
Eliot was an intimate friend of both Cotton and Richard James. He made use
of Cotton's library in writing speeches against the government. Cotton also
supplied manuscripts cited by Littleton in defending Selden in King's Bench.
Eliot and Cotton both believed that Parliament deserved a major conciliar
role in the king's government.195 They corresponded in February 1629 about
plans for a parliamentary campaign against the Arminian bishops. Cotton
wanted resolutions in the Commons in favour of true doctrine as established
in Parliament in the time of Elizabeth, to 'prevent the plot... of those bishops
that have fancied a way to introduce innovations by a convocation
power . . . ' 196 Yet the concern was not only about spiritual innovation.
Richard James wrote to Eliot in prison in September 1629, telling him to read
Lipsius, the neo-Stoic propagator of authoritarian political ideas. Such ideas,
James believed, had a suspicious echo in Charles's urge to abandon the Dutch
in favour of Spain, the paradigm of tyranny and oppression.197
With their pedigree of political opposition under Charles, and their
obvious concern with innovation, the circulation of Dudley's pamphlet by
Cotton and his friends had clear relevance to public affairs in 1629. Cotton's
interest in making some form of comment upon arbitrary regimes indicates
that he and others were unwilling to allow their suspicion of innovation to
remain private. Clare and the rest understood that their prosecution was
related to their dissent. Neither did they fail to recognize the fear which
Dudley's tract had inspired within the regime.
The government's reaction underlines the real significance of the Cotton
episode. The case certainly involved personal animosities, and the pros-
ecution offered Charles a financial incentive with the prospect of a sentencing
of wealthy men.198 The overriding reason for the proceedings, however, was
the Council's and particularly the king's sense of a threat. Charles told the
Council that the tract reflected upon the justice and sincerity of his govern-
ment. He believed that it proceeded from a pernicious design against himself
and against the state.199 The Cotton case arose just as the battle in King's
194
Gregg, King Charles I, pp. 2 9 8 - 9 ; CSPCoL 1574-1660, p. 123.
195
DNB, s.v. Cotton, Sir Robert; ST, iii, cols. 2 5 6 - 7 ; Grosart, Letter book of Sir John Eliot,
pp. 29-30, 35-8, 66-7,137-8; Sharpe, Sir Robert Cotton, pp. 142,182-3, 213.
196
Grosart, Letter book of Sir John Eliot, pp. 3 5 - 8 .
197
Ibid., pp. 66—7. On the influence of Lipsius during this period see J. H. Elliott, 'Yet another
crisis?', in P. Clark (ed.), The European crisis of the 1590s (London, 1985), pp. 3 0 6 , 310.
198
NUL, Ne.C, 15,404, p. 233; CSPV1629-32, p. 242.
199
SP16/151/70, declaration of the king to Council, 15 N o v . 1629. For examples of conciliar
thinking along the same lines see SP16/167/44 (Dorchester); SP16/151/24, SP16/151/80
(Harsnet).
162 Charles I and the road to personal rule
200 C S P V 1 6 2 9 - 3 2 , p. 2 7 0 .
201
N U L , N e . C , 15,404, p. 2 3 3 . There is circumstantial evidence that the case was popularly
understood as a general proceeding against the critics of Charles's government, especially
those among the nobility. It was reported in London that the case would extend to Abbot,
Essex, Warwick, Bishop Williams and others; PRO, C 1 1 5 , M 2 4 , 7 7 5 7 , Moore to
Scudamore, 7 N o v . 1629. See also PRO, C 1 1 5 , M 3 1 , 8 1 1 9 , Flower to Scudamore of same
date.
202
N U L , N e . C , 15,404, p. 2 3 3 ; Rushworth, Historical collections, ii, pp. 5 1 - 3 ; ST, iii,
cols. 3 9 8 - 4 0 0 ; PRO 31/3/66/fo. 206v; CSPV 2 6 2 9 - 3 2 , pp. 2 4 1 - 2 ; SP16/151/24,
S P 1 6 / 1 5 1 / 8 0 - 1 , SP16/167/44; SP78/85/fos. 97r, 122v.
203
Rushworth, Historical collections, ii, pp. 5 1 - 3 ; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 140.
Government and justice 163
207
Chambers was sentenced to make acknowledgement before the Council. The Long Parlia-
ment decided to compensate him for his sufferings, but the money voted was appropriated
for the war. See ST, iii, cols. 373-84; Birch, i, pp. 416-17,420,432, 440, and ii, pp. 4 0 - 1 ,
53; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 84-6,114-15; DNB, s.v. Chambers, Richard.
Government and justice 165
Provinces and was clearly influenced by the model of the republic, as well as
by the traditions of radical presbyterianism. He had described the English
Parliament as the 'states representative' who should rescue the king from
error. Heath condemned Sion's plea as subversive of the discipline of the
Church and as a brief for 'popular government'. He called for the suppression
of the recent practice of printing submissions to Parliament.208 Leighton fell
foul of the fullest severity of the Court. It held publication of the book to be a
scandal against the king and queen, the peers and especially the bishops. The
two Chief Justices believed that the offence warranted indictment and trial
for treason. Leighton was sentenced to imprisonment at the pleasure of the
king, a fine of £10,000 which he could never hope to pay, degradation from
ecclesiastical orders and vicious corporal punishment. He was to lose his ears,
be branded on the cheeks and whipped at the pillory at Cheapside. The
government attempted unsuccessfully to discover the names of those who had
approved of his appeal to Parliament.209
The Chambers and Leighton cases underline the Caroline attitude to
dissent. The offences were eligible for punishment under any political circum-
stances. Charles's government was defensive and rigorous, however, and
concerned to make examples. This approach came naturally to men such as
Wentworth and Heath.210 But it was also encouraged by Charles himself. His
instructions to Wentworth as Lord President of the North in June 1629 used
the strongest language in ordering the suppression of sedition and offences
against the state. More and more there were
devised, spread abroad, reported and published many false and seditious tales, news,
sayings, writings, books, letters and libels which amongst the people have wrought
and hereafter may work great mischief... 211
Those responsible should be apprehended and all means used to trace the
originators. Such offenders were to be openly punished by fine and imprison-
ment. Those who endangered the king and state should be referred to the king
and Council.212 Wentworth was required to use severity against notable
offenders,
so as the opinion or report of severity may work that by force which is and hath been
long seen will not be obtained by favours and gentleness.213
208
Heath, significantly, styled Star Chamber 'an epitome of a Parliament'. Gardiner, Speech of
Sir Robert Heath, p . 9.
209
Leighton lost only one ear since only half the punishment was inflicted; Gardiner, History,
vii, p. 151 and n. On Leighton's case see Gardiner, Speech of Sir Robert Heath, pp. i—xii,
1-10; ST, iii, cols. 3 8 3 - 8 ; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 1 4 3 - 5 2 .
210
Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 233, 236; Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice'.
211
Bodl. Lib., Rawl. Ms C197, fo. 12v.
212 213
Ibid., fos. 12v-13r. Ibid., fo. 26v.
166 Charles I and the road to personal rule
214
Hirst, Authority and conflict, pp. 1 7 2 - 3 .
215
SP81/37/fos. l l O r - l l l r ; SP77/20/fos. 150r-151r; Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice';
Sharpe, 'Personal rule of Charles F, pp. 5 7 - 8 .
216
Lismore papers, ed. A. B. Grosart (10 vols., London, 1886-8), 2nd ser., iii, p. 176.
217
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 84.
218
I.e. during the years covered by this study.
219
Gardiner believed it had lapsed for more than a century; History, vii, p. 167. It was unheard
of during the Elizabethan period; H. H. Leonard, 'Distraint of knighthood: the last phase,
1 6 2 5 - 1 6 4 1 ' , History, lxiii (1978), p. 23.
220
CSPD Addenda 1625-44, p. 79.
221
Russell, Crisis of Parliaments, p. 318; Thomas, 'Financial and administrative developments',
p. 119.
Government and justice 167
fines. The financial return was slow until the Court of Exchequer ruled that
the exercise was legal in a series of decisions between August and the follow-
ing February. As a revenue-raising effort this could not be repeated but it was
relatively successful. The device raised a sum in the vicinity of £170,000, the
equivalent of approximately three parliamentary subsidies.222
The collection of the fines relied upon the co-operation of the gentry in each
locality.223 This did not necessarily signify universal or even widespread
approval of the levy. Given the legality of the commission, no objection could
be made to it in principle, only special pleading in the individual case. As
Dorchester wrote in March,
the business of the knights goeth roundly forward, no man disputing the legality of it
in general, nor alleging other than particular excuses which are admitted or rejected
by his majesty's courts according to their merit.224
The evidence suggests that there was significant opposition, on this basis, to
the levying of the fines. It was reported in London in February 1632 that
twenty-five peers had refused to pay. 225 The earl of Essex and other members
of the nobility, having become refusers, appeared before Council. Essex
protested that he had carried Charles's sword at the coronation and had then
been ready to receive any honour from the king. 226
Resentment of non-parliamentary revenue-raising could be tacit as well as
explicit. Clarendon, in retrospect, emphasized the creeping unpopularity
which arbitrary fiscalism brought upon Charles and his government. Of the
knighthood fines he wrote, 'though it had a foundation in right, yet, in the
circumstances of proceedings, was very grievous, and no less unjust'.227 This
sense of injustice tended to merge, in principle and in the public mind, with
resentment of rigorous policing of civil and moral order by the prerogative
courts. The propertied classes were chagrined at their eligibility for punish-
ment. Sir Arthur Haselrig described these years as a time when two or three
gentlemen could not go out without being liable to be charged with riot. 228
Tracing the growth of such government Clarendon continued:
222
Thomas, 'Financial and administrative developments', p. 1 1 9 ; Sharpe, 'Personal rule of
Charles P, p. 6 8 ; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 167; Russell, Parliaments, p. 3 9 9 ; Larkin, Stuart
royal proclamations, ii, pp. 2 7 9 - 8 0 ; Searle, Barrington family letters, p p . 1 8 9 - 9 0 ;
Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer, pp. 1 6 2 - 3 .
223
Sharpe, 'Personal rule of Charles P, pp. 6 6 - 7 .
224 225
SP16/162/18. Birch, ii, pp. 1 7 0 - 1 .
226
Ibid., p. 163. See also ibid., pp. 9 6 , 1 0 2 ; H M C 7th report, Appx, p. 5 4 5 ; Knowler, Strafford
letters, i, p. 56. Even the recalcitrant Clare admitted the legality of the fines; N U L , N e . C ,
15,405, pp. 178-9.
227
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 8 5 .
228
Cliffe, Puritan gentry, p. 194. See also Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 86; Reeve, 'Viscount
Dorchester', pp. 205—6; Birch, ii, pp. 7 9 , 1 6 8 .
168 Charles I and the road to personal rule
those foundations of right by which men valued their security, to the apprehension
and understanding of wise men, [were] never more in danger to be destroyed.229
This was the critical legacy of prerogative rule.
Economic conditions were also the subject of conciliar decree. Between
1629 and 1631 England was vulnerable to the slump in the international
cloth trade. When combined with bad harvests this produced, as we have
seen, a serious shortage of grain - particularly in the cloth-working districts
of East Anglia. The government's Book of Orders, issued in January 1631,
contained a package of measures designed to stabilize the grain market,
relieve the poor and maintain social order. It relied extensively upon royal
prerogative powers.230 The Orders reflected the government's fear of unrest
and incipient revolt. This fear had been activated in 1629 by the coincidence
of political instability with economic hardship. On a general level, the Book
of Orders, with the official explanation of dearth as the work of evil men,
expressed the desire of all the landed classes that order be maintained. It is
reasonable to link efforts towards social pacification with an increasing
desire, particularly on Charles's part, to avoid any popular demand for
another Parliament.231 The Orders reflected the king's obsession with order
and interest in reform, as well as his desire to keep the gentry in their
localities.232 His objection to the gathering of the governing classes in London
was probably related to his knowledge that he had enemies among them.
Finally, the Orders illustrate two important aspects of prerogative govern-
ment. That government was not necessarily original in conception nor
successful in execution. The notion of collective social measures in this form
was arguably novel, but the provisions concerning dearth and poverty had
their Tudor antecedents.233 They exemplified, moreover, the band-aid
strategy of early Stuart economic policy, which alleviated the effects of crisis
without tackling its causes. A defensive strategy, lacking the initiative and
administrative tools for reorganization, it failed to adjust the economy to pre-
vent distress and dislocation.234 This was a failure of the era, not only of the
229
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. 1, p. 86.
230
B. W. Quintrell, 'The making of Charles I's Book of Orders', EHR, xcv (July 1980); P. Slack,
'Books of orders: the making of English social policy, 1 5 7 7 - 1 6 3 1 ' , TRHS, 5th ser., x x x
(1980); Supple, Commercial crisis, pp. 1 0 8 - 1 1 , 1 1 6 - 1 9 , 2 3 7 - 8 , 2 4 4 - 6 ; Clay, Economic
expansion and social change, ii, p. 246; Walter, 'Grain riots and popular attitudes', in
Brewer and Styles (eds.), An ungovernable people; Laud, Works, iii, p. 212; Birch, ii, p. 99.
231
D. G. C. Allan, 'The rising in the west, 1 6 2 8 - 1 6 3 1 ' , EcHR, v (1952); Cliffe, Puritan gentry,
pp. 1 2 0 - 1 ; Supple, Commerical crisis, pp. 244, 2 5 1 ; Birch, ii, pp. 8 6 - 7 , 104—5; Hutton,
William Laud, pp. 6 7 - 8 ; J. Walter and K. Wrightson, 'Dearth and the social order in early
modern England', P&P, lxxi (May 1976).
232
Sharpe, 'The personal rule of Charles I', pp. 59ff.; Bodl. Lib., Rawl. Ms C.197, fo. 22r-v;
Larkin, Stuart royal proclamations, ii, pp. 350—3.
233
Slack, 'Books of orders', pp. 1—5.
234
Supple, Commercial crisis and change, pp. 2 3 3 , 252—3.
Government and justice 169
240
As Clarendon concluded; ibid., pp. 89-90.
Government and justice 171
The new counsels issue was also further developed. As with the religious
issue, there was a growing conservative reaction against Charles's resolve to
base royal policy upon a marginal extreme of tradition and, in this instance,
to stretch the royal prerogative beyond its limits. Eliot and Selden were forced
into promoting a radicalized notion of privilege linked to their use of the
Petition of Right against arbitrary imprisonment. There was the awareness of
a general constitutional issue, articulated from the bench by Whitelocke,
whose judgement signalled the legal expression of broader conflict. 241 Public
opinion and popular unrest, galvanized by war, dearth and dramatic par-
liamentary events, could not be dissociated from the conflict in the courts.
Neither could the new general policy for the government of the kingdom be
divorced from that conflict and the disorder surrounding it. The new political
developments, interlocking and deeply consequential as they were,
amounted to a change in the context of national politics. Those politics
would never work successfully again until a general solution to the failure
they reflected could be found. Until then, the habits of the new Caroline era
would promote instability in national political life.
241
The issue had of course underlain the parliamentary debates of 1628. See Reeve, 'Legal status
of the Petition of Right', p. 276, and chapter 2, above.
1& Q <&
The emerging character of the Caroline regime, of its policies in Church and
state, was definitely discernible by 1630. That character was very much the
product of Charles's personality, of his views, and of the efforts of those in
government who shared them. The king was the guiding spirit, not by virtue
of charisma, but because he was the legally rightful ruler of his people.
Charles's title to the kingdom did not, however, mean that he shared in the
necessary qualities of kingship. It is appropriate to dwell here on the character
of Charles Stuart the man, before examining the circles in which he chose to
move. The highly emotive circumstances of Charles's eventual death, and the
dignified bearing which, amid them, he achieved, have often overshadowed
the shortcomings of his rule and their role in creating the tragedies of his
reign. Above all, there is a complexity - and inscrutability - about Charles
which has hampered our historical understanding. These elements were
reflected in the ambivalence with which those who had served him, even for
years, summed up his character. Laud saw Charles as a mild and gracious
prince who knew not how to be or be made great.1 Sir Philip Warwick
regretted the way in which the king, admittedly in the latter days of the civil
war, could be temperamental and uncommunicative in Council.2 Clarendon,
at pains to point out Charles's merits as man and king, was forced to conclude
unhappily: 'His kingly virtues had some mixture and allay that hindered them
from shining in full lustre, and from producing those fruits which they should
have been attended with.'3 The historian continued:
if he was not the best king, if he was without some parts and qualities which have made
some kings great and happy, no other prince was ever unhappy who was possessed of
half his virtues and endowments, and so much without any kind of vice.
Clarendon, in trying to exonerate Charles, appealed to the notion that divine
1 2
Hutton, William Laud, p. 130. Carlton, Charles I, p. 277.
3 4
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. iv, p. 490. Ibid., p. 492.
172
The king, his court and its enemies 173
providence had been visited upon England and that the king had fallen foul
of the conspiracies of men.5
Charles was indeed possessed of significant virtues. High-minded,
religiously devout and devoid of any form of carnal vice, he was a loving
husband, father and friend.6 His civilization was reflected in his love and
connoisseurship of the visual arts.7 Yet the ambiguity of his character could
not and cannot be denied. A highly cultivated man, his education and intellec-
tual leanings had neither the depth nor the breadth of his father's and he
lacked imagination. He exhibited all the bearing and qualities of a gentleman
but could not be trusted to keep his word as others understood it. Outwardly
reasonable, his mind was often fixed and closed.8 He was humane save in
believing that men should die for what he considered the justice of his causes. 9
A man of peace, he hardly hesitated to take up arms to defend his damaged
honour. The clue to this ambiguity may be the confusing psychological nature
of his family background. Charles was the child of an unhappy marriage and
apparently had not received maternal confidence. He admired a father of
whom he also disapproved for the lewd and worldly nature of his court. He
grew up in the shadow of an able and popular older brother whom he also lost
at an early age.10 He married an innocent girl almost ten years his junior and
suffered what was for some years an unhappy marriage. Perhaps it is not
surprising that as an adult Charles consistently exhibited insecurity, lack of
confidence and weakness. Undoubtedly he grew personally stronger as he
grew older, as is clear in his bearing under trial and sentence of death. Age,
personal experience of war in the 1640s and the simplicity of the principles he
believed himself to be defending made him somewhat more imposing in later
life. Yet he was always fundamentally unsuited to the task of kingship. How,
specifically, was this the case?
Four characteristics, above all, underpinned Charles's rule. Except perhaps
in the last months of his life, he was never entirely sure of himself, of his
abilities or of his standing in the minds of others. Secondly, he was moralistic
and judgemental. Thirdly, he was not, by inclination or equipment, a political
man. As a younger son, he was not raised from childhood to be king and, in
stark contrast to his father, came to the English throne with very little politi-
cal experience. Those things upon which Charles placed the greatest value -
order, peace,11 domesticity, spirituality and aesthetics - are things to which
5 6
See, for example, ibid., pp. 491-2. Ibid., p. 492.
7
G. Parry, The golden age restor'd (Manchester, 1981), pp. 266-7; Collinson, Religion of
Protestants, p. 7.
8
AMRE, CPA, 42, fo. 375r; R. Ollard, The image of the king: Charles I and Charles II (New
York, 1979), pp. 27ff.
9
This point was made by J. P. Cooper (Tall of the Stuart monarchy', p. 559).
10
Carlton, Charles I, passim, especially chapters 1—5; Laud, Works, vii, p. 14.
11
PRO31/3/66/fo. 136v.
174 Charles I and the road to personal rule
12
See p. 39, n. 146, above; see also Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. 446.
13
Derek Hirst {Authority and conflict, p. 55) has made the point about Renaissance principles.
To a significant extent the difference between James and Charles was one of generations, but
Charles was definitely not conservative and embraced the new.
14
See p. 64, n. 35, above; Collinson, 'The Jacobean religious settlement', p. 51; Fincham and
Lake, 'Ecclesiastical policy of King James V, p. 184.
15
The question of James's attitude towards Arminianism is a difficult one. He clearly professed
a moderate form of Calvinism around which was built what was in the English context a
theologically comprehensive Church. While James apparently considered theological dis-
putes over the basis of salvation matters indifferent, he leaned increasingly towards the
Arminian party in the last years of his life. His initial inspiration was political in his desire
to keep peace in Europe. There is, however, no evidence to suggest that he had not become
attracted to Arminian theology. Indeed, he approved of Appello caesarem, and his Euro-
pean policy and view was well served by the Arminian attitude to Spain and Rome. See
Fincham and Lake, 'Ecclesiastical policy of King James I', pp. 183, 187, 189-90, 201-6;
Collinson, 'The Jacobean religious settlement', pp. 28, 49-50; Tyacke, 'Puritanism,
Arminianism', pp. 123-4; Lake, 'Calvinism and the English Church', pp. 49, 51, 60, 70-2.
16
D. Mathew, Scotland under Charles I (London, 1955), p. 26.
The king, his court and its enemies 175
the removal of Buckingham and the passing of his own briefly rebellious
youth.17 In the context of Charles's character, such susceptibility to others'
views can be considered a weakness as much as a sign of independent
admiration for those ideas.
The king's lack of confidence had other, multifarious, manifestations. He
was authoritarian and paranoid about loyalty, insisting that recalcitrants
such as Eliot publicly yield to him. He was fearful of opposition and con-
spiracy. He was defensive, externalizing his failures by totally blaming others,
such as subversive elements in Parliament. He was unaccommodating,
inclined to reject or suppress what he did not understand or wish to accept.
His basic deafness to desperate anti-Arminianism is a case in point. This
allergy to compromise was linked to a desire to impose his will upon (or
escape) reality, as well as to his tendency to retreat to a closed personal world
of order. Difficult to counsel against his preferences and disliking (with the
exception of Buckingham) more confident and more politically able men such
as Wentworth, he warmed to advice which was congruent with his own
inclinations, and which was therefore distinctly limited and often bad. He
had an antipathy to realistic assessments (such as his nephew Rupert's that
the civil war could not be won) when these contradicted his own optimistic
and sanguine attitudes.18 He disliked and was unable to make decisions and
consequently, as has often been observed, he frequently obtained the worst of
all possible worlds.19 Once decided, he tended to be obsessive and inflexible.
He was not spontaneously generous, whether to express affection, inspire
loyalty or reward service: no way to encourage such qualities among his
subjects. He lacked a commanding presence and tended to keep men at a
distance.20 He was almost certainly devoid of a sense of humour. His lack of
confidence caused him to be secretive and devious, and he had a supreme
capacity to rationalize his frequent betrayal of others. There is a long list of
those, including members of his own family, who placed their trust in Charles
and were eventually cut adrift: the Huguenots, Christian of Denmark, the
Palatines, the Dutch, the Parliament of 1628-9 which obtained his assent to
the Petition of Right, and Wentworth, not to mention the various parties to
the civil wars. By 1630 Charles had acquired an international reputation as a
17
Blair Worden makes a similar point in TLS, 13 June 1986, p. 636.
18
Hirst, Authority and conflict, p. 161; Mathew, Age of Charles I, p. 38; C. V. Wedgwood,
T h e Elector Palatine and the civil war', History Today, iv (Jan. 1954), p. 8.
19
A Spanish agent in London once described Charles as 'flaco y inconstante'; AGS, E2519,
exp. 6.
20
Charles's reliance upon formal royal audiences supports this notion. Mathew, Scotland
under Charles I, p. 29; AMRE, CPA, 42, fo. 375r; Archivo del Duque del Infantado, Palafox
Mss, legajo 94, fo. 136v. I am grateful to John Elliott for this reference.
176 Charles I and the road to personal rule
man who could not be trusted.21 Inherently weak of character, he was always
the potential precipitator of political disaster.
Charles's lack of a political sense was an obvious disadvantage in govern-
ment. He had no conception of the art of the possible and was unreceptive
and ill at ease in the world of affairs. Consistently imperceptive, he failed to
learn from his own experience,22 never seeing, for example, the damage he did
to perceptions of the monarchy or acknowledging the need to abandon
Buckingham to re-enlist support for himself. Charles, in a fundamental sense,
did not understand the use of power. Uncomfortable with decisions, he was
ill-equipped to weigh policy options23 and tended to make passive choices. A
classic example, as will be seen, was the way in which he withdrew from the
European war. He was insensitive to opposition and ideological anxiety and,
most fatally, took the domestic political peace of the 1630s at face value. He
did not realize the importance of communication with his subjects24 or see the
need to achieve real public understanding of his rule. He seems to have had a
rather superficial conception of the loyalty and approval necessary for
successful government. His public statements were in a real sense irrespective
of those to whom they were addressed and consequently, as with the
proclamation of March 1629 concerning Parliament, could do more harm
than good.25 Charles was not politically creative as king. He did not actively
endeavour to enlist support, devise compromise or maintain consensus as his
father had done.26 He tended to intervene like a foreign object in the
mechanics of the political process and he was unskilled at oiling the works.
Although he sought to be diligent, he lacked interest in the everyday tasks of
government: a handicap in an age of monarchical rule. The most notable and
(for a time) the most successful administrative initiative which he sanctioned,
Ship Money, was the brainchild of Attorney-General Noy.27 It aroused
Charles's interest as a function of foreign policy. He considered diplomacy a
fitting occupation for kings.28 Increasingly preoccupied with the arts,29
21
In the Spanish Council of State, the count of la Puebla referred to Charles as cunning and
always meriting suspicion; AGS, E2562, consulta of 11 May 1630 (n.s.). On Charles's
secretive nature see ibid., E2517, fo. 105. 23
22
I am grateful to Gerald Aylmer for this point. Carlton, Charles I, p. 109.
24
J. Richards, * "His nowe Majestic" and the English monarchy: the kingship of Charles I
before 1640', P&P, cxiii (1986). I am grateful to Judith Richards for allowing me to read this
article before publication.
25
The proclamation encouraged a fear that Charles had done with Parliaments. Clarendon,
Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 5, 84, and see chapter 4, above.
26
See, for example, James's handling of the religious issue; Fincham and Lake, 'Ecclesiastical
policy of King James P, especially pp. 2 0 6 - 7 .
27
Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice', n. 49. See also Sharpe, 'Personal rule of Charles P,
pp. 59-62, 64-5.
28
Sharpe, 'Personal rule of Charles P, pp. 6 4 , 69; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?',
29
pp. 84-5,100. See below, p. 197.
The king, his court and its enemies 177
domesticity and the social life of the court, he was effectively insulated from
the pulse of the political nation and the international scene.
The king's moralistic disposition did not assist his political fortunes.
He was always fundamentally dogmatic, opinionated and self-righteous:
qualities antithetical to the art of compromise. His sense of his monarchical
station and divinely ordained mission caused him to believe that he was
answerable only to God. This reinforced his authoritarian instincts and
served both to inspire and to rationalize his unscrupulousness. Charles does
not seem to have been conscious of his dishonesty or of the fact that he could
not be trusted to abide by the law or the basis of a contract or treaty. High-
minded persons are frequently unconcerned with detail30 or others' per-
ceptions of their designs. Charles's rectitude prompted him to view criticism
or opposition as persecution, insubordination or subversion. This of course
handicapped his ability to look objectively at the political state of play. The
fixity and depth of his principles encouraged his inhuman streak and
compounded his lack of social ability. Since his deep sense of honour was
unaccompanied by the ability to defend it, his behaviour was significantly
affected by injured pride. The record of the 1620s was one of spectacular
failure at home and abroad: the failure of the Spanish match, the failure of the
French marriage alliance, ideological conflict, constitutional breakdown and
largely ineffective attempts to wage war. The failures of his youth reinforced
Charles's difficult qualities, inviting a continuing cycle to lessen the likeli-
hood of future success.
Charles's deep attraction to Renaissance and avant-garde principles was
encouraged by his continental experience with which it was inextricably
bound up. He was the first English monarch since Henry VIII to leave
England,31 and he visited France and Spain at the impressionable age of
twenty-three. Spain in particular, through the medium of great art, had a deep
effect upon him. The splendid royal collections confirmed his devotion to
Venetian painting. Philip IV and Olivares gave Charles a number of works
including a Titian.32 As king of England he promoted the assimilation of
Renaissance values and greatly modernized native taste. 33 In constitutional
practice Charles was also susceptible to new continental models. His bent
towards arbitrary government had a French inspiration of which his wife and
30
As Ollard points out; Image of the king, p. 47.
31
Excluding of course James I's life in Scotland; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 2 3 .
32
Huxley, Endymion Porter, pp. 9 7 - 8 , 1 1 1 , 1 8 1 . Philip shared Charles's avid connoisseurship
of painting; J. Brown and J. H. Elliott, A palace for a king (New Haven and London, 1980),
p. viii and passim.
33
Carlton, Charles I, pp. 143ff.
178 Charles I and the road to personal rule
her brother, Louis XIII, were perpetual reminders for him. 34 Charles's open-
ness to Tridentine Catholic and modernist influences - in government and
diplomacy, art and religion - with his aspiration to such ideals in the English
context,35 had quite mortal political consequences. It made him an author of
innovation against the basic instincts and particular beliefs of his subjects.
And it fed his desire for order and simplicity as against the complexity of
politics and the world. Charles often preferred the image to the reality.36 A
vignette of late 1631 captures this element of his character beautifully. At the
height of the German crisis, when the Swedish tide of victory held out the
prospect of a Palatine restoration and all the auguries were for action,
Dorchester sought out Charles to pursue the latest negotiations. He found the
king in the picture gallery, arranging his busts of the Roman emperors (with
whom he seems to have identified) in chronological order.37 It is difficult not
to see this scene as symbolic. Charles, as we shall see, failed to seize the unique
opportunity. At that time, the gulf between aesthetic order and the necessary
kingly role could not have been much greater.
Charles's nature had, above all, three important consequences for his rule.
Weak, disliking uncertainty and compromise, pious and obsessed with the
purity of structures, Charles always sought to define the point at issue. The
best and the most crucial example of this habit is his destruction of the
delicate Jacobean religious consensus by the effective outlawing of pre-
destinarian Calvinism. Likewise, the working of the English constitution
depended upon avoiding the activation of the various potential conflicts con-
tained within it.38 Charles, moreover, would allow no distinction, spoken or
unspoken, between theory and practice. In this way the notion of monarchi-
cal divine right became a dangerous political force and Laudianism made no
concessions, as James had done in religion, to political practicality.39 These
were the instincts of a man very sure of his convictions but unsure of himself,
34
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p p . 1 6 - 1 8 , 2 2 9 ; CSPV 1626-28, p. 5 0 8 ; P R O 31/3/66/
fo. 123v; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 9 1 ; Russell, 'Arguments for religious unity',
p. 2 2 2 ; D . Mathew, The social structure of Caroline England (Oxford, 1948), p. 3 2 . See also
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 6 8 .
35
It is of course necessary to take care in seeking so t o generalize about predilections in dif-
ferent spheres of human activity. Blair Worden, citing Charles's brother's love of Italian art
and apparent hatred of Italian religion, has recently posited that 'The mental world where
power and imagination meet remains elusive' (TLS, 13 June 1 9 8 6 , p. 635). Yet individuals
remain human units and it is sometimes possible t o perceive very illuminating links in cases
such as that of Charles.
36
OUard, Image of the king, pp. 3 3 - 4 , 3 6 .
37
SP81/37/fos. 1 6 7 r - 1 6 8 r ; see also Carlton, Charles I, p. 1 4 6 .
38
I am grateful to Sir Geoffrey Elton for discussion of this question. See also Daly, Cosmic
harmony, pp. 2 8 , 3 0 .
39
Charles's role in the Five Knights' case is a g o o d example of the consequences of divine right
thinking; Guy, 'Origins of the Petition of Right reconsidered', p. 3 0 0 and passim. T w o
important examples of James's political astuteness and flexibility in religion are his decision
The king, his court and its enemies 179
not at home like his father in the realms of ideas40 and of affairs. Finally,
Charles had a politically fatal inability to operate on a basis of trust, either to
inspire it or to offer it to others. Such mutual understanding was alien to him.
The lack of this dimension made him suspect to his contemporaries and has
often rendered him inscrutable to historians. In sum, therefore, he made mis-
understanding and conflict infinitely more likely in an age of what has been
rightly termed 'sustained ideological instability'.41 Charles, by his very
nature, was a consistent agent for national and for international political
destruction.
Charles's personality, with its concomitant style of kingship, was the
principal determining influence upon his court. The Caroline court, in turn,
was critical in the history of this period. It was also politically novel, and it is
important to grasp the nature of that novelty. The Tudor court, we know, had
possessed a marked political and ideological pluralism. It was there that com-
peting interests and differing policies found support and where the political
battles of the day were usually fought out. 42 'Faction' was, as we know, a
derogatory term denoting division, self-interest and disloyalty.43 Yet the ideal
of political harmony gave way in practice to the necessary fact of personal
and factional strife. An understanding of the earlier period throws the land-
scape of early Stuart politics into clearer relief. The pre-civil war era saw court
faction become more exclusive and monopolistic of power. The unfortunate
consequence was that conflict tended to be forced out into the public and the
parliamentary arena.44 This occurred by stages. The Buckingham era,
spanning the reigns of the first two Stuarts, can be seen as a transitional
period during which opposition to the duke's monopoly of power gained
momentum in Parliament. A distinction must be drawn, however, between
the Jacobean and Caroline eras and simultaneously between court politics
before and after Buckingham's death. Despite the complete and rather
grotesque control of patronage which the duke increasingly came to exercise,
to withdraw his initial approval of Dutch Arminianism, and his promotion of English
Arminianism largely in the interests of a pacific foreign policy. Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester',
p. 4; Fincham and Lake, 'Ecclesiastical policy of King James F, pp. 201ff. See also Collinson,
T h e Jacobean religious settlement', pp. 5 0 - 1 .
40
Thus Charles could share Laud's dislike of religious disputation; Trevor-Roper, Archbishop
Laud, pp. 67—8.
41
Collinson, Religion of Protestants, p. 3 .
42
G. R. Elton, 'Tudor government: the points of contact, iii, the court', TRHS, 5th ser., xxvi
(1976), pp. 227—8. Simon Adams has pointed out h o w , despite the customary disputes and
religious differences, the Elizabethan court from the early 1570s displayed a certain political
homogeneity; S. L. Adams, 'Eliza enthroned? The court and its polities', in C. Haigh (ed.),
The reign of Elizabeth (London, 1985), pp. 67ff.
43
L. L. Peck,' "For a king not to be bountiful were a fault": perspectives on court patronage
in early Stuart England', JBS, x x v (1986), p. 57n; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 2 0 0 .
44
Elton, 'Tudor government. . . the court', pp. 2 2 7 - 8 ; Hirst, 'Court, country and polities',
pp. 1 1 1 - 1 2 , 1 1 5 - 1 6 ; Hirst, Authority and conflict, pp. 3 1 , 1 4 2 .
180 Charles I and the road to personal rule
disillusion took their toll among those who disagreed. While attitudes within
the court, the upper reaches of government and the foreign service remained
divided, a large and highly important section of opinion was progressively
eclipsed within the personal councils and society about the king. In short, it
was that basically orthodox approach to politics which espoused the Dutch
alliance, war with Spain, the Protestant cause, the sitting of Parliament and
the established Calvinism of the English Church. The political court came
into its own in 1630 when the Spanish war was ended and the birth of Prince
Charles indisputably weakened the Palatine claim to the English throne. The
internal development of the court was accompanied by a limited shifting of
Protestant attention in England away from foreign and towards domestic
affairs as Charles appeared to be abandoning his sister's cause.49 The absence
of a Parliament meant the lack of a national forum for criticism of innovatory
government policy. This compounded the polarizing effect of the regime
upon political life. The emerging ideological gulf was not one between the
court (in the customary or general sense) and the country. The complex and
enduring connections between the centre and the localities are well known. 50
Rather, there was an increasingly precise division between the inner court and
the wider national leadership such that informed and astute observers could
not but recognize it. Dorchester, struggling to keep faith in the king despite
Charles's leanings to Spain, by 1631 could write of
his majesty's having so good knowledge and experience of both these countries
[England and the Dutch republic] and constitution of our people and affairs, which
keeps not pace with the quick and variable apprehensions of those he now lives with
and whom he doth humour in their erroneous opinions.51
By 1632 Sir Thomas Roe, excluded from government service for too fervently
supporting the Protestant cause, could write with irony: 'We cannot say there
is any faction in England. All goes one way and I know not the wit of it.'52
Who were these men whom Charles allowed to cluster so provocatively
around him? How did they think and exactly how far did they mirror his
views and attitude to the world? Charles's political court was never large.
Essentially it was that group which contemporaries labelled the 'Spanish
faction'.53 A favourable attitude towards Spain and what it stood for, or at
least a desire for peace with the Habsburgs, was the ideological adhesive
which bound the group together. The circle seems to have had seven front-
49
As Simon Adams has pointed out; Adams, T h e Protestant cause', pp. 4 2 1 - 4 , Conclusion.
See also Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 9 1 .
50
Hirst, 'Court, country and polities', p. 115 and passim.
51
SP78/89/fo. 343r, Dorchester to Sir Isaac Wake, 17 July 1631.
52
Quoted in Gardiner, History, vii, p. 200.
53
NUL, N e . C , 15,404, p. 227; AGS, E2043, exp. 172; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes,
p. 264; A. J. Loomie, 'The Spanish faction at the court of Charles 1,1630-38', BIHR, lix, 139
(1986). I am grateful to Albert Loomie for allowing me to read this article before publication.
182 Charles I and the road to personal rule
54
Loomie, 'Spanish faction'; AGS, E 2 5 6 2 , consulta of 2 5 Jan. 1 6 3 1 (n.s.) and see the Spanish
list of English courtiers, ibid. Windebank w a s knighted in 1 6 3 2 .
55
DNB, s.v. Cottington, Francis, Lord. Cottington w a s conscious of the need t o cultivate
Wentworth to obtain a political alliance as security against Weston's death; M a t h e w , Age of
Charles I, pp. 9 0 - 1 . O n Laud and Windebank see Laud, Works, iii, p. 2 1 1 , and vii, pp. 3 6 ,
4 2 ; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 2 0 0 ; DNB, s.v. Windebank, Sir Francis.
56
Vane w a s Comptroller of the king's household. O n Vane see DNB, s.v. Vane, Sir Henry, the
elder; Birch, ii, pp. 1 6 , 2 5 , 4 4 , 1 0 1 ; SP84/139/fo. 1 1 4 ; CSPD 1629-31,p. 3 0 6 ; Mathew, Age
of Charles I, p. 7 1 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 2 7 2 n , 3 3 1 . See also Loomie, 'Spanish
faction'.
57
This indirect link with the deceased royal favourite may have reinforced the like-mindedness
of the group. Cottington, despite falling out with the duke when his scepticism about the
journey to Spain was vindicated, shared Charles's views to such an extent that this proved
no handicap in later years. DNB, s.v. Cottington; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War,
iii, p. 4 9 6 ; AGS, E 2 5 1 7 , fo. 4 7 ; Huxley, Endymion Porter, pp. 63ff.
58
Huxley, Endymion Porter, p. 4 1 .
The king, his court and its enemies 183
59
While Spain w a s seriously vulnerable during the late 1 6 2 0 s and early 1630s, the myth of
inevitable Spanish decline has been laid t o rest. Elliott, Richelieu and Olivares, p. 5 ; Israel,
Dutch republic, pp. 4 3 7 - 9 .
60
Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1 6 2 1 and 1624', p. 1 4 1 ; Trevor-Roper,
'Spain and Europe', pp. 2 7 0 - 1 ; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 2 3 7 ; Russell, 'Arguments for
religious unity', pp. 2 2 0 , 2 2 2 and n.
61
The exceptions were Wentworth and Windebank. See DNB, s.v. Weston, Sir Richard and
Cottington, Francis, Lord; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 34—5; Huxley, Endymion Porter,
pp. 18ff.; M . F. S. Hervey, The life, correspondence and collections of Thomas Howard, earl
of Arundel (Cambridge, 1921), chs. 6 and 7.
62
SP80/6/fos. 207-8.
63
Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 2 5 3 ; M a t h e w , Age of Charles I, p. 5 2 ; see also p. 5 5 , n. 2 2 3 , above.
64
A statement which C o l o m a reported t o Olivares, AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 7 1 .
65
Olivares had emerged as Philip IV's first minister during Charles's visit to Madrid; Elliott,
Richelieu and Olivares, p. 4 0 .
66
Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', pp. 8 9 - 9 0 .
184 Charles I and the road to personal rule
in the squabbles over his marriage contract and in the failure of Richelieu to
join an anti-Habsburg alliance. Charles was soon toying with the idea of an
offensive alliance with Spain against France. His view of French duplicity
seems to have encouraged his belief that the Spaniards could be trusted.67
Charles's Francophobia did not affect, nor was it affected by, his increasing
devotion to his wife. The relationship was one of domestic harmony upon
which political questions scarcely impinged. Charles was careful nonetheless.
Coloma reported an audience at the end of 1630 when the king stated clearly
his preference for Spain over France; Charles tactfully lowered his voice
seeing Henrietta approaching, the queen asking what went on between the
two men.68 This anomaly in Charles's position was partly resolved after
1631, when the enemies of Richelieu, including Henrietta's mother - Marie
de' Medici, aligned themselves with Spain.69
Antipathy to the Dutch went naturally with an attraction to Spain. In
Charles it was also fuelled by his fear of Dutch power and by the obstacle this
presented to his own commercial and naval ambitions. After the Hispano-
Dutch truce of 1609, England was vulnerable to the uninhibited force of
Dutch competition. English opinion was divided, and Charles sided with
those who saw the republic more as an economic rival than a Protestant ally.
He imbibed the Spanish view of an international Protestant conspiracy led by
the Dutch. This was linked to his fear of a puritan (and even republican)
attempt to subvert his authority in England. Here lies the national and inter-
national logic of his opposition to the idea of an English West India
company. Charles's view could be defended in strategic terms but was
unacceptable to the parliamentary war lobby. During the 1630s, he indulged
his desire to command sovereignty of the seas in the context of undeclared
alliance with Spain.70 The pro-Spanish and anti-Dutch foreign policy of the
personal rule expressed Charles's Hispanophilia. But it was an expression
also seasoned by self-interest and encouraged by his experience of failure in
war.
67
Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 3 0 6 , 3 1 6 , 3 3 3 - 5 , 3 4 2 - 7 ; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?',
pp. 8 9 - 9 0 ; AMRE, CPA, 4 4 , fo. 351v; SRO, Hamilton Mss, no. 160; Reade, Sidelights on
the Thirty Years War, iii, p. 447.
68
AGS,E2519,exp. 114.
69
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 3 0 5 - 6 .
70
PRO 31/3/66/fo. 239r-v; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 3 3 3 - 5 , 3 4 2 - 5 ; Loomie, 'Spanish fac-
tion', p. 4 0 ; Archivo del Duque del Infantado, Palafox Mss, leg. 94, fo. 136v (I am grateful
to John Elliott for this reference); AGS, E2519, exp. 1 1 4 , 1 3 9 , E2562, consultas of 8 Mar.
1630 (n.s.), Apr.(?) 1630, 31 Dec. 1630(?) (n.s.), 20 N o v . 1631 (n.s.), letter of Coloma to
Olivares 13 Dec. 1630 (n.s.), voto of Olivares N o v . 1631; The poems of Thomas Carew, ed.
R. Dunlap (Oxford, 1949), p. 75; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. 447,
4 6 8 ; Birch, i, p. 3 8 1 ; J. H. Elliott, 'A question of reputation? Spanish foreign policy in the
seventeenth century', rev. a r t . , / M H , lv (1983), p. 4 8 2 ; Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud,
p. 3 0 1 ; Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 194; K. R. Andrews, Trade, plunder and settle-
ment (Cambridge, 1984), pp. 3 6 3 - 4 ; and see chapter 3, above.
The king, his court and its enemies 185
71
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 286, 319; Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 211;
Wedgwood, Strafford: a revaluation, p. 68; AGS, E2043, letter of Spanish agent in London,
15 June 1629, E2519, exp. 8 and 26; Archivo del Duque del Infantado, Madrid, Palafox
Mss, leg. 94, fo. 136v (I am grateful to John Elliott for this reference).
72
The count-duke had decided, by 1637, that Cottington was utterly self-interested. Archivo
del Duque del Infantado, Madrid, Palafox Mss, leg. 94, fo. 136v; Loomie, 'Spanish faction',
pp. 39, 47; AGS, E2519, exp. 2 5 - 6 and 109, and E2562, consultas 26 July, 29 Dec. 1630
(n.s.), 'prima conferencia' 14 Feb. 1630 (n.s.), summary of letters of Scaglia to Olivares
c. spring 1632; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 3 4 2 - 7 ; Avenel, Lettres de Richelieu, iii,
pp. 4 2 0 - 1 ; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. xxvii, 496; DNB, s.v. Vane,
Sir Henry, the elder; Birch, ii, p. 103; Mathew, Age of Charles I, p. 90; Reeve, 'Viscount
Dorchester', pp. 286,319; Zagorin, 'Sir Edward Stanhope's advice', p. 316; CSPV1629-32,
p. 267.
73
Huxley, Endymion Porter, pp. 18ff., 163; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 105; AGS, E2517,
fos. 4 9 and 98; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 3 1 9 ; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares,
p. 206.
74
Loomie, 'Spanish faction', pp. 4 0 , 4 2 ; Russell, Parliaments, p. 7 9 ; Hibbard, Popish plot,
pp. 1 3 1 , 1 3 4 ; Wedgwood, Strafford: a revaluation, p. 68; J. H. Elliott, 'The year of the three
ambassadors', in H. Lloyd-Jones, V. Pearl and B. Worden (eds.), History and imagination:
essays in honour of H. R.Trevor-Roper (London, 1981), p. 170; Loomie, 'Canon Henry
Taylor', p. 2 2 7 .
75
The earl of Dorset was also named by Coloma as a friend of Spain; Archivo del Duque del
Infantado, Madrid, Palafox Mss, leg. 9 4 , fo. 136v (I am grateful to John Elliott for this
reference); Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 3 4 - 5 ; Hervey, Life . . . of Thomas Howard, earl of
Arundel, p. 3 9 6 ; Sharpe, 'Earl of Arundel', p. 2 1 3 ; AGS, E2043, exp. 172, and E2519,
exp. 8.
186 Charles I and the road to personal rule
had little alternative but to support the Hispanophile policy. His association
with the Spanish faction helped to expose him to the charge of popery levelled
by the Long Parliament.
These men, with Charles, allowed England to become a satellite of Spain
during the 1630s and acquired a definite personal stake in the maintenance of
peace. For Weston and Cottington the pro-Spanish policy became indis-
tinguishable from their own personal interest and political survival.76 There
was also the attraction of possible pecuniary rewards. Spanish pensions had
commonly been granted to leading English political figures during the
previous reign.77 In 1628 it was suspected in parliamentary circles that this
practice was continuing.78 Large lump sums were certainly distributed to key
persons for services rendered to Spain. Weston and Cottington each received
£2500 sterling in Spanish silver, on the conclusion of the Treaty of Madrid. 79
There is evidence that both men considered such a sum insufficient reward for
the risks they had run. Despite their leaning towards Spain, such expectation
of 'danger money', for service in a hostile political environment, is entirely
logical.80 It was also the general practice for Spanish agents at Charles's court
to hand out gifts and sums of money. These were intended as inducements to
service or as rewards. During the delicate diplomatic manoeuvres in 1628,
one apparently covert agent said he had made presentations to the six gentle-
men always at Charles's side.81 It is difficult to be precise about the dis-
tribution of such lesser bribes which were certainly not given exclusively to
76
Zagorin, 'Sir Edward Stanhope's advice', p. 304; CSPV 1629-32, p. 178; AGS, E2562,
Coloma to Infanta, 5 Dec. 1630; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 3 2 4 - 6 , 352. Laud appeared
to dally with the idea of an anti-Spanish policy after French entry into the war in 1635, but
this was for political reasons, i.e. to obtain the support of the queen's party; Loomie,
'Spanish faction', pp. 4 3 - 5 . There is also the fact of Laud's patronage of Windebank; see
p. 182, n. 55, above.
77
G. Mattingley, Renaissance diplomacy (London, 1955), pp. 259ff.; Birch, ii, p. 104; Huxley,
Endymion Porter, p. 101.
78
79
CD1628,iv,p. 152.
Necolalde gave Weston his sum on arrival in London in June 1631. Cottington received his
before leaving Spain where he had negotiated the treaty; Loomie, 'Spanish faction'. In late
1630, Coloma had written from London requesting 10,000 ducats (c. £2,500) for disburse-
ment among those w h o had facilitated the treaty and well-disposed persons. The junta in
Madrid decided to send 20,000 ducats. AGS, E2562, consulta of 4 Nov. 1630 (n.s.); Loomie,
'Spanish faction', p. 38. See also Gardiner, History, vii, p. 2 0 1 .
80
In the light of their Catholicism particularly (see below), it is unlikely that Weston and
Cottington were purely mercenary. Loomie, 'Spanish faction', p. 39; Gardiner, History, vii,
p. 215.
81
These almost certainly included Weston and Porter. AGS, E2517, fo. 78. See also ibid.,
E2517, fo. 98, E2519, exp. 109, E2562, consultas of 6 May, 4 Nov. 1630 (n.s.) and 20 Nov.
1631 (n.s.); Birch, ii, p. 103; Loomie, 'Spanish faction'; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years
War, iii, pp. xliv-xlv.
The king, his court and its enemies 187
Catholics.82 What is certain is that Spanish service, more than any other,
always held out the prospect of material reward.
The Hispanophile complexion of the king's personal circle was closely
linked to its crypto-Catholicism. With the exceptions of Wentworth and
Laud and most notably of the king, the denizens of the political court had a
positive preference for the Church of Rome. They retained, in varying
degrees, a facade of conformity in England to escape loss of office or political
retribution. Unconstrained by constitutional interest, or emotional commit-
ment (such as that felt by Charles) to the English Church, they transcended
the religious nationalism espoused by Laud and the king. Catholic courtiers
were in one sense spiritual aliens in England; in another they shared in the
catholic ideals of Laudianism: ideas which paralleled the piety of the
Counter-Reformation.83 Likewise Charles's patience of their private religious
views is very significant. While sensitive to the integrity of the English Church
and the royal supremacy, he was clearly not uncomfortable with the atmos-
phere of continental Catholicism, an atmosphere which reflected his spiritual
tastes.84 The crypto-Catholicism of Weston, Cottington, Windebank and
Porter and the virtual commitment to Rome of the earl of Arundel were one
refraction of the religious character of the Caroline regime.85 The public
association of the Catholics at court with Laudianism and the fear they
shared with Laud of the religious prejudices of Parliament were on one level
purely pragmatic. On another, these facts reflected the real affinity between
the court and its international cultural sphere.
The constitutional view prevailing at court dovetailed naturally with these
approaches to foreign policy and religion. Laudianism and pro-Spanish
neutrality could only hope to flourish in the absence of a Parliament. In any
case, Charles's antipathy to Parliament left little room for manoeuvre. The
king had imbibed his father's dislike of republicanism and parliamentary
and popular power.86 Others at court shared this prejudice in favour of high
monarchy. Laud, as we have seen, exhibited it strongly. Cottington's ill-
disposition towards the Dutch and the English Parliament also reflects this
82
AGS, E2562, consulta of 4 Nov. 1630 (n.s.).
83
G. L. Mosse, 'Changes in religious thought', in NCMH, iv, pp. 182ff.
84
Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 2 2 , 4 4 ; see also chapter 3, above.
85
Hirst, Authority and conflict, p. 161; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 286; Hibbard, Popish
plot, pp. 3 4 - 6 , 4 0 , 55; SP16/529/15; Birch, i, p. 4 0 9 , and ii, p. 107; Alexander, Charles I's
Lord Treasurer, p. 2 1 8 ; Huxley, Endymion Porter, pp. 2 5 - 6 ; Archivo del Duque del
Infantado, Madrid, Palafox Mss, leg. 94, fo. 137 (I am grateful to John Elliott for this
reference); DNB, s.v. Cottington, Francis, Lord, and Windebank, Sir Francis; Sharpe, 'Earl
of Arundel', p. 238.
86
Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', pp. 8 8 - 9 ; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 2 3 4 , 2 3 7 ; PRO
31/3/66/fo. 132r; Russell, 'Arguments for religious unity', pp. 2 2 0 , 2 2 2 and n; see also
chapter 2, above.
188 Charles I and the road to personal rule
87
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 286; NUL, N e . C , 15,404, p. 257; Hirst, Authority and
conflict, pp. 8 7 , 1 8 2 , 2 0 1 ; Elliott, 'Yet another crisis?', pp. 3 0 9 - 1 0 ; DNB, s.v. Cottington,
Francis, Lord; Elliott, 'Year of the three ambassadors'; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 34; see also
p. 13, n. 2 1 , above.
88
On Cottington's fears at the time of the Long Parliament see DNB, s.v. Cottington, Francis,
Lord; Fletcher, Outbreak of the English civil war, p. 89.
89
Elliott, 'Year of the three ambassadors'; Hibbard, Popish plot, chs. 5 - 8 .
The king, his court and its enemies 189
favour. His death in April 1630 deprived the king of a close friend and adviser
and the Protestant party at court of its most distinguished spokesman.90
Dorchester of course represented a definite view of European affairs: strongly
pro-Palatine,91 pro-Dutch and anti-Spanish. As diplomats he and Roe had
been professional agitators for Protestant war, considering any policy of
peace with Spain a dangerous appeasement of Habsburg aggression. Their
Calvinism had caused them to sympathize with the Commons' attack on
Laudianism in 1629. 92 Dorchester was a bridge between the more radical
views of Roe and the moderate anti-Habsburg position. 93 In an atmosphere
increasingly hostile to his principles he continued, with considerable skill, to
resist innovatory policies. His efforts were not confined to working for a
Parliament and war. In alliance with the earl of Cork he promoted, from
England, vigorously anti-Catholic policies in Ireland during the interval
between Falkland's and Wentworth's administrations. Dorchester and Cork
favoured planter and Protestant interests and abolished the public practice of
the Roman religion. When Dorchester died, the two men were working for
the enforcement of recusancy fines: a project soon scuttled by Wentworth
who favoured, for tactical reasons, a policy of limited concessions to
Catholics. Dorchester's approach to Irish affairs was part of a wider view of
a Europe divided. That approach was made more aggressive by his despair at
the rise of English Arminianism and Charles's development of negotiations
with Spain. Dorchester's policy in Ireland echoed the fears of the Irish voiced
in the debate on the remonstrance in the Commons in 1628. 94
The views of Pembroke and Dorchester largely coincided with those of the
earl of Holland. The earl was pro-French and anti-Spanish and to a degree
shared the puritan sentiments of his brother Warwick. But his politics were
not strongly ideological. He lacked firm religious conviction, which removed
a potential obstacle to the favour of a Catholic queen. He also had a limited
financial interest in peace with Spain. As Exchanger of the Mint he received
a profit on foreign bullion struck as coin in England. Yet his general political
orientation, with his rivalry with Weston and Wentworth, put him at odds
with those whose advice the king preferred. With his desire for Weston's
impeachment, for a Parliament and for war, he was quickly estranged from
the Spanish and Laudian party. Holland stayed at court during the 1630s,
90
PRO 31/3/66/fo. 208r; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p p . 8 7 , 9 1 - 2 ; Adams,
'Protestant cause', p. 4 1 9 ; Tyacke, Anti-Cahinists, p. 188.
91
Elizabeth and Frederick considered Dorchester their main representative in England; Reeve,
'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 6 - 7 .
92
Ibid., ch. 1 and pp. 8 9 - 9 0 , 9 4 , 2 8 6 , 3 4 2 ; Reeve, 'Sir Thomas Roe's prophecy', p. 120; AGS,
E2519,exp.5.
93
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 3 0 3 .
94
Ibid., ch. 5 and pp. 2 4 - 5 , 2 8 2 ; Birch, ii, p. 69; CD1628, iv, p. 147; see also chapter 2, above.
190 Charles I and the road to personal rule
unable to abandon his personal quest for power. He came to occupy a politi-
cal no man's land between those who made policy and their enemies outside
the court. His decision to join the parliamentary camp in 1642 reflected the
fact that he had never been qualified to rise to power under Charles. Despite
his moderation and considerable self-interest, he could never ultimately pass
the ideological tests for admission to what was, inter alia, an ideological
regime.95 Manchester and Coventry were soon in much the same position,
perennially on the fringes of power. Both were constitutional moderates of
puritan (or in Coventry's case, at least anti-Spanish) hue who remained,
despite their misgivings about Caroline policy, fellow-travellers during the
personal rule. With Holland they supported Laud's abortive coup against
Weston in 1634. During the 1630s they failed to make any real impression on
domestic or foreign policy.96
Other identifiably Protestant figures were present at court in these years.
Abbot, appointed archbishop of Canterbury by James I in 1611, was an
orthodox and militant Calvinist. A strong supporter of the Palatines and of
war in the Protestant cause, he opposed alliance with any Catholic power. An
opponent of Dutch and of English Arminianism, he could not halt the
Laudian revolution sanctioned by Charles. After Laud was promoted to
London in 1628, Abbot was little more than a cipher in the making of policy.
His relief from disgrace and readmission to the court were intended as a sop
to the Parliament of 1628-9. Abbot remained, however, a significant figure.
At Lambeth he held court for the disaffected: a magnet for malcontents in
Church and state. The Arminian triumph could never be fully complete until
his death (in 1633) and Laud's succession to Canterbury. It was then that
Arminianism was exported to the parishes with the campaign for the placing
of communion tables at the east ends of churches, in the manner of altars.
Abbot, nevertheless, had been the first major political casualty of the per-
sonal rule.97 Sir John Coke, the ageing Secretary of State, was a Calvinist,
95
The countess of Holland was pro-parliamentary and anti-Catholic. Hibbard, Popish plot,
p. 146; see also ibid., pp. 32, 131, 163, 227; Beatty, Warwick and Holland, pp. 1 1 0 - 1 5 ,
1 2 4 - 7 , 2 3 2 - 5 , 2 4 2 ^ ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 148; PRO 31/3/66/fo. 208r; Smuts,
'Puritan followers of Henrietta Maria'; Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 161; Donagan, 'A
courtier's progress'; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 3 1 2 - 1 4 ; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 218;
Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists, pp. 1 6 8 - 9 .
96
Alexander, Charles Vs Lord Treasurer, pp. 1 9 1 - 2 ; DNB, s.v. Coventry, Sir Thomas, and
Manchester, Henry, first earl of.
97
SP105/95, letter book of Sir Dudley Carlton 1 6 1 6 - 1 8 , passim; Bodl. Lib., Tanner M s
71/fo. 142r; Laud, Works, vii, pp. 2 3 - 4 ; CSPD 1628-9, pp. 5 1 6 - 1 7 ; N . Tyacke,
'Arminianism in England: religion and politics 1604—1640' (Oxford University D.Phil,
thesis, 1968), p. 2 4 8 (I am grateful to Nicholas Tyacke for allowing me to cite his
thesis); Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists, pp. 199ff.; Tyacke, 'Puritanism, Arminianism', pp. 137—8;
Collinson, 'England and international Calvinism', p. 2 1 9 ; Collinson, Religion of
Protestants, p. 82; Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 3 5 7 - 8 ; Welsby, George Abbot, pp. 1 3 6 - 4 0 ,
145.
The king, his court and its enemies 191
anti-Spanish and the brother of a Calvinist bishop. Coke was never a particu-
larly influential figure. He lacked the social advantage of a peerage and was
more of a bureaucrat than a policy-maker. He seems to have toed the
Buckingham line in the 1620s and during the thirties was suspicious of the
merits of war.98 Attorney-General Heath was a rather anomalous figure in
the upper reaches of Caroline government. A legal careerist appointed to the
bench in 1631, he enthusiastically supported a strong royal prerogative. He
was also an anti-Arminian: a survivor of Buckingham's 'puritan' phase of the
mid-1620s. The example of Heath makes clear how it was possible to reject
the Arminian position and prefer prerogative rule. Given Heath's largely
ideological approach to politics, the rise of Arminianism landed him in real
trouble. Estranged from the Laudian clerics and the pro-Laudian party at
court, he was summarily dismissed from the bench in 1634 after blocking a
suit brought by Richard Montagu, the Arminian bishop of Chichester. Laud
had brought Montagu's complaint to the ear of the king. Heath's career
suffered a serious reverse because he was trapped between Charles's political
court, at whose mercy he was, and his own religious views. Buckingham had
used the full spectrum of opinion to serve his own political ends. With the
duke now dead, Heath found himself in a new and more deadly era."
Sir Thomas Roe received a cool reception at court on returning from the
Baltic in 1630. Despite the friendship of Dorchester and hopes of favour from
Holland, he was thoroughly excluded and retired, most unwillingly, to the
country. He saw clearly the way in which Weston and Laud were seizing the
helm. These were not times, he wrote, for him and his rules. He sent Holland
an eloquent lament for English foreign policy and almost despaired at the
difficulties of changing its course: 'we are not right: and to strive against a
throng, or to turn a channel, is a work o f . . . labour and peril'.100 On hearing
of Dorchester's death in early 1632 he wrote,
as he walked rightly in his life, died manly, and Christianly, and rejoiced in and recom-
mended the king of Sweden; and so like a swan sang his own funeral. We dare not
guess at his successor... 101
Roe was the war party's candidate for the vacant Secretaryship of State. The
prize went to Windebank, leaving Roe in the political wilderness. 102 Roe's
98
M. B. Young, Servility and service: the life and work of Sir John Coke (Royal Historical
Society, London, 1986); Russell, Parliaments, pp. 3 0 , 2 6 2 .
99
Heath had been a religious opponent of Montagu since 1625. His career revived after seven
years when he was appointed to King's Bench in 1641. Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice';
CD1629, p. 2 5 0 ; Knowler, Strafford letters, i, p. 58; CSPD 1631-33, p. 358. See also
Sommerville, Politics and ideology, pp. 4 5 - 6 , 2 2 4 .
100
SP16/173/49, Roe to Holland, 2 0 Sept. 1630. See also SP16/174/101, SP16/533/46.
101
SP16/211/74, Roe to John Dyneley, 23 Feb. 1632.
102
SP16/533/96; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 200.
192 Charles I and the road to personal rule
style differed from Dorchester's. He spoke his mind plainly and was ill-
equipped to negotiate the hazards of a hostile administration. His uncompro-
mising views, however, were the root cause of his dismissal.103 His approach
to the European conflict was strictly confessional. He refused, like Abbot, to
sanction alliance with any Roman Catholic power:
I am constantly persuaded by the observation of twenty years that all leagues and trust
with any papist-blinded state are Egyptian reeds, and that all their inward counsels are
directed to root out our religion and to replant their ecclesiastical tyranny . . . 1 0 4
This attitude placed Roe on the radical wing of English Protestant opinion,
more so than many members of the Providence Island Company who were
patient of the notion of a French alliance.105 Roe had the devoted friendship
of Elizabeth of Bohemia and the high regard of Gustavus Adolphus. He was
significantly involved in the organization of the Protestant international.
There were no better qualifications for exclusion from the government of
Charles I after 1632. 106
The English advocates of a Protestant policy, those who were fast-falling or
whose influence was fading during this period, were all, not surprisingly, part
of the pro-parliamentary interest. Pembroke, Holland and Dorchester
favoured the resummoning of Parliament in 1629. 107 The Protestant rear-
guard had links with those more seriously alienated and standing outside the
court. Dorchester was connected to the Barringtons and through them to the
earl of Warwick. The Secretary was related to Sir Thomas Barrington by
marriage.108 He was also a contact for the Holies family at court, as was the
earl of Holland. 109 Holland was impeccably qualified to be perceived as a
fellow-traveller for opposition. The first Governor of the Providence Island
Company, he was its sole courtier of note, and the brother of Warwick who
seems to have been its moving force. Holland gave the Company respect-
ability and could be a suitor for its official needs. Carefully distancing himself
from its activities (which undoubtedly included planning for the reform of
Church and state), he was happy to share in any dividends, act as its official
103
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 2 8 2 , 3 3 1 - 2 ; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 2 0 0 .
104
SP16/174/101, Roe to Sir Robert Anstruther, 2 9 Oct. 1630.
105
SP16/174/101; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 3 1 - 2 ; Mathew, Age of Charles I, p. 7 2 ; Trevor-
Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 3 0 0 . On the Providence Island Company, see pp. 2 1 0 - 1 3 ,
below.
106
Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 3 1 , 8 1 ; H M C , 4th report, pp. xi, 1 5 9 - 6 2 , 5 8 8 , 5 9 2 ; Mathew, Age
of Charles I, p. 7 5 ; SP95/3/fo. 93r.
107
PRO31/3/66/fo.208r.
108
Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 1 0 , 1 5 1 , 2 1 7 - 1 8 ; SP16/29/12; Hirst, 'Court, country,
and polities', p . 125; Beatty, Warwick and Holland, pp. 65—6. I am grateful t o Conrad
Russell for drawing this connection to my attention.
109
NUL, Ne.C, 15,404, pp. 257,268, and 15,405, p. 64.
The king, his court and its enemies 193
leader and, characteristically, have a foot in both camps after 1629. 110 The
sympathy of Dorchester and Roe for the strategy of war against Spain in the
Caribbean, with their militant Calvinism, made them potential supporters of
the Providence Island group.111 The links possessed by Pembroke, Sir John
Coke and Sir Robert Heath would similarly have rendered them suspect to
the political court.112
A major complicating factor in English Protestant politics during this
period was the idea of the French alliance. There was a temptation, for
strategic and historical reasons, for Englishmen to look upon the French
almost as honorary Protestants. The potential power of an Anglo-French
alliance might well be sufficient to counter the Spanish Habsburgs. During
the Elizabethan period, Spain replaced France as the national enemy of
England in the popular mind. Spain continued to be identified as the leader of
the Counter-Reformation by European Protestants. James's decision in
favour of a French marriage, Buckingham's efforts to build a military alliance
upon it and the natural tendency for anti-Spanish and vaguely puritan
elements to congregate about Henrietta Maria, as well as Richelieu's rivalry
with the papacy, all contributed to a certain English optimism about France.
Godly gentry like Sir Thomas Barrington considered France a less dangerous
enemy than Spain and consequently were ambivalent towards French
fortunes. The development of French participation in the European war, with
the contest between Richelieu and Olivares, ensured that a section of English
opinion considered a French alliance an option for England throughout the
1630s. Richelieu's tendency to woo the disaffected within rival spheres of
influence led to an understated alliance between successive French ambassa-
dors and the English parliamentary interest.
The obstacles to an Anglo-French alliance were very considerable. They
included English Protestant sympathy for the Huguenots, the confessional
devot party at the French court (critical of Richelieu, opposed to Protestant
powers and pro-Spanish) and Richelieu's commitment to French rather than
110
Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 32; CSPCoL 1574-1660, pp. 121-5; AGS, E2519, exp. 6; Newton,
Colonising activities, pp. 58 and passim; Russell, Crisis of Parliaments, p. 321; Beatty,
Warwick and Holland, ch. 3 and pp. 232—5,242-4; Smuts, 'Puritan followers of Henrietta
Maria'; Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 118.
111
SP94/34/fo. 191v; SP81/35/fo. 157r-v; CSPV1629-32, pp. 516, 518-19 (I am grateful to
Christopher Thompson for this reference); Newton, Colonising activities, pp. 236ff.
112
Lord Brooke was a patron of Sir John Coke. Pembroke was associated with the Protestant
cause but also with an alienated figure such as Clare. Rudyerd, Pembroke's chief spokesman
in the Commons, was a member of the Providence Island Company. Heath was linked to
Clare in a proposed business venture of 1632. The connection between Holland and Roe
after the latter's exclusion has been mentioned. Cust, The forced loan, p. 33; NUL, N e . C ,
15,405, p. 56; CSPD 1631-33, p. 358; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', pp. 87, 91-2;
SP16/173/49,SP16/533/46; CSPCoL 1574-1660,?. 123.
194 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Protestant interests in Germany. There were also naval and colonial rivalry,
the problem of a France divided between Richelieu and his opponents and the
cardinal's reluctance to enter open war against Spain. The conflict between
confessional politics and policy based on reason of state was a theme not only
of English and of French politics during this period (and of the rivalry
between the two nations) but of the Thirty Years War as a whole. The
radicalism of men such as Roe was largely inspired by these difficulties.
Nevertheless, Dorchester, Holland and lesser figures about the queen became
warm advocates of the French alliance and actively pursued it. These men had
been Buckingham's recruits in the 1620s and were prepared to moderate
religious objectives in the interests of reason of state. On the question of the
French alliance they stood apart from uncompromising Protestants such as
Abbot, Roe and Elizabeth of Bohemia.113 The latter group were survivors of
the strictly anti-Catholic circle of Charles's late brother Henry. Pembroke,
who had been greatly respected by Henry, sat between the two groups; in the
1620s he was suitably ambivalent about the French alliance.114 The fact
remains that Charles and his political court increasingly ignored, excluded
and alienated the full spectrum of English Protestant opinion. The loss of
talent to his government which this involved was very considerable.
How did Charles's court operate as a social institution? How did that court
society relate to the process of policy-making and government? The social life
of the court, like the formation of the political clique, was above all the work
of Charles's personality. It was an introverted world, controlled and essen-
tially artificial, in which he could indulge his idiosyncrasies and interests.
Court life became a haven for all Charles accepted and the antithesis of all he
rejected. It was an illusory creation which could never banish the external
reality of dissenting values. At the same time it played an important role in
encouraging Charles's attitudes and the antipathy of his opponents. Charles's
court was far more a social and (among its elite) an artistic than a political
centre.115 In this way it expressed his personality. The fact that he was not
113
Dorchester became suspicious of the self-interest of France's German policy after 1630;
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 11, 303, 331, 342-3. See also Hibbard, Popish plot,
pp. 25, 31—2; Mathew, Age of Charles I, pp. 71, 78; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?',
p. 98; Russell, Parliaments, pp. xvii, 13, 264-7, 280-1, 294-5; HMC, 7th report, Appx,
pp. 544—5, 547—8; Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 148, 238, 244; Smuts, 'Puritan
followers of Henrietta Maria'; SP16/174/101; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii,
pp. 468-9; Elliott, Richelieu and Olivares, p. 100; PRO 31/3/63/fos. 5-6, 8, 31/3/66/
fo. 125v; SP78/87/fo. 535r; AMRE, CPA, 42, fo. 280r; Breslow, Mirror of England,
pp. 103ff. See also chapter 7, below.
114
DNB, s.v. Elizabeth, queen of Bohemia. See also ibid., s.v. Abbot, George; Adams, 'Foreign
policy and the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624', p. 159n; Russell, Parliaments, p. 13; Parry,
The golden age restor'd, pp. 69, 82-3; Mathew, Age of Charles I, p. 72.
115
On the political importance of the Tudor court see D. Starkey, 'Court and government', in
C. Coleman and D. Starkey (eds.), Revolution reassessed (Oxford, 1986).
The king, his court and its enemies 195
116
SP16/182/31. Charles's continued patience with Arundel, an enemy of Buckingham, was
doubtless encouraged by the earl's position as a representative of the ancient nobility, as well
as by his artistic interests. AGS, E2562, consulta of 25 Jan. 1631 (n.s.); Sharpe, 'The earl of
Arundel'; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 118.
117
SP16/204/72, Murray to Vane, 18 Dec. 1631. See also Mathew, Scotland under Charles I,
pp. 233-4; Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. iv, pp. 489-90; Cliffe, Puritan gentry, p. 151; Laud,
Works, vii, p. 14; CSPD 1631-33, p. 182; Sharpe, 'Crown, Parliament and locality', p. 343;
Sharpe, 'Personal rule of Charles I', pp. 59-61.
118
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. iv, p. 490; SP78/89/fo. 343r.
196 Charles I and the road to personal rule
from county society.119 Charles also withdrew from the public domain to a
degree unprecedented for generations. Severe restrictions were placed upon
public proximity to the court and the traditional monarchical functions such
as receiving petitions, touching for the king's evil, 120 and simply being seen by
the subject.121 For the well- and low-born, the king and his court were
increasingly private rather than public property.
The private and apolitical life which Charles preferred was epitomized in
the person of Endymion Porter, by the early 1630s one of his most trusted
personal companions. Fascinated by the arts and accomplished in the graces
of the gentleman-courtier, Porter had no real interest in government. 122 To a
lesser extent, both Arundel and Cottington reflected this style. Weston
despaired of Cottington's taste for hawking ahead of administration. The
Chancellor was quite at home on Charles's progresses, more like hunting
trips, on which political news rarely featured in day to day life. 123 Porter's
presence in Charles's inner circle was not incongruous. Unlike the king, he
was free to avoid political duties and gave expression to a critical aspect of the
king's personality.124 He also contributed to the ideological atmosphere
which produced the religious and foreign policies of the personal rule.
Charles's Scottish kinsman Lennox was one of his closest confidants, a man
with no discernible political interests. The marquis of Hamilton, soldier and
adventurer, also fits this pattern to a large extent. This apoliticism goes far
towards explaining how Charles could override the pro-French attitude of
these Scottish relatives, as he did that of the queen, with virtual impunity.
Those with whom Charles chose to spend the greater part of his time were not
instinctively political creatures.125 Wentworth, by contrast, with his ambition
and passion for matters of state, was a man whom Charles never liked. In
119
Larkin, Stuart royal proclamations, ii, pp. 350-3; Hirst, 'Court, country and polities',
p. 123.
120 m
Scrofula. Richards,'"HisnoweMajestic"'.
122
Huxley, Endymion Porter, pp. 63ff., 1 0 6 , 1 1 8 , 1 6 5 , 1 6 7 .
123
Richards, '"His n o w e Majestic"'; Knowler, Strafford letters, i, p. 5 9 ; CSPV 1629-32,
p. 4 6 3 ; CSPV 1636-39, pp. 4 4 - 6 ; SP16/123/3; Melbourne Hall, Coke Mss, bundle 37,
newsletter of 5 June 1629. On Arundel see Sharpe, 'Earl of Arundel', pp. 237ff.; CSPV
1629-32, pp. 581,596, 601-2, 605, 637, 641.
124
Porter was sent on a brief mission to Spain in 1628, but Cottington followed to pursue
negotiations proper and Porter asked his wife to intercede for his o w n return, CSPV 1628-9,
p. 378.
125
The Spanish government understood the important place held by Lennox in Charles's world.
AGS, E2562, consulta of Olivares, 2 2 Dec. 1631 (n.s.), report on despatch for England of
same date; Mathew, Scotland under Charles I, p. 2 3 7 . See also ibid., pp. 2 6 - 9 , 2 3 4 - 6 ;
Green, Diary of John Rous, p. 5 4 ; Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer, p. 177; Birch, ii,
p. 102; Ollard, Image of the king, pp. 4 5 - 6 ; Melbourne Hall, Coke Mss, bundle 37, news-
letter of 5 June 1629; CSPV 1629-32, p. 5 9 2 ; AMRE, CPA, 4 3 , fo. 294r.
The king, his court and its enemies 197
Ireland throughout the years of personal rule, his influence upon the court
was never direct.126
Charles's commitment to kingship as he saw it has disguised the fact that
it was not a task which he could ever (or probably would ever) have embraced
by choice. His real interests and abilities lay elsewhere and centred on the
visual arts. Charles was unquestionably a great collector and a great
connoisseur. He assembled one of the very finest collections of Renaissance
works which has ever existed. Connoisseurship accounted for more of his
time and attention in the 1630s than any other single activity. He was never
happier than when spending hours discussing painting with Rubens or Van
Dyck, both of whom he knighted. There is thus a positive sense in which
Charles was not a political man. The arts had a certain political relevance
within his court. Specific works did make obvious points. Rubens' execution
of the Banqueting House ceiling at Whitehall celebrated the cult of peace. The
general Mediterranean and Tridentine taste of the court was significant in
terms of Charles's policies. Yet his appreciation of the arts was in no way
limited by political or ideological considerations. His enthusiasm for Titian,
Raphael, Correggio and Mantegna was based upon his expert knowledge of
their aesthetic excellence. There was, however, one way in which the arts
played a vital political role under his regime. For practical reasons, they
severely restricted the range of his friends.127 Very few individuals had the
interest, knowledge and necessary financial resources to indulge in collecting.
Since Charles liked to surround himself with fellow enthusiasts, the visual
arts became a kind of freemasonry among the senior members of the court.
Porter, Arundel, Lennox, Hamilton, Wentworth and Laud all shared
Charles's artistic interests. Dorchester's knowledge of antiquities and
Venetian painting (he had made acquisitions for Charles abroad)
undoubtedly assisted his ability to keep his place at court.128 The arts thus
served to render Charles's social world (and the political circle with which it
merged) more exclusive. In this way they contributed to its ideological same-
ness. They also promoted its lack of political vitality.
During the early 1630s, when the threat of another Parliament had
receded, a struggle for power emerged within the regime. Weston was
126 127
See p. 175, n. 18, above. Parry, The golden age restored, p. 267.
128
Huxley, Endymion Porter, pp. 97-8, 111, 179, 181, 310; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester',
pp. 7-8, 24,213; OUard, Image of the king, pp. 37-8; Mathew, Scotland under Charles I,
p. 236; Carlton, Charles I, pp. 143ff.; Sharpe, 'Earl of Arundel', pp. 239ff.; Gregg, King
Charles I, pp. 166ff.; Russell, Crisis of Parliaments, p. 311; Hibbard, Popish plot, ch. 2;
NUL, N e . C , 15,404, p. 220; R. M. Smuts, The culture of absolutism at the court of Charles I
(Princeton University PhD thesis, 1976; published Ann Arbor, 1985), chs. 1, 3, 4, 6 and 7;
Fletcher, Outbreak of the English civil war, p. 407; O. Millar, 'Strafford and Van Dyck', in
OUard and Tudor-Craig (eds.), For Veronica Wedgwood; D. Howarth, Lord Arundel and
his circle (London, 1985); SRO, Hamilton Mss nos. 158, 353.
198 Charles I and the road to personal rule
increasingly disliked at court for his influence upon the king, his tight control
of royal finances (combined with his own enrichment) and, by some, for his
policies. It was Laud, supported by Wentworth in absentia, who came to lead
the attack on Weston and Cottington. To a certain extent this was a division
between crypto-Catholics and official Protestants, even between Hispano-
phile materialists and nationalistic moralists. Yet such contrasts were not
sufficient to light the fuse. The battle between Weston and Laud was a
struggle for power. This was no factional fight in the traditional sense. It was
an intramural contest, no less deadly for that, between men who both sat at
the summit of influence, with vested interests in the same national policies,
who had united to have Charles dissolve the Parliament of 1628-9. It was a
contest made possible by the establishment of non-parliamentary rule. Its
outcome would little alter the shape of the regime. Laud enlisted the support
of Coventry, Manchester and Holland, and in the spring of 1634 went before
Charles to accuse the Treasurer of corruption. The attack failed when the
Treasurer had Lennox, the queen and the duchess of Buckingham intercede
for him. (Weston had secured an alliance with the Lennoxes by his son's
marriage three years earlier.)129 Weston stood at the intersection of the politi-
cal court and the king's social circle. His survival in Charles's confidence
pointed to the power of that nexus over conciliar dissent.
In the making of high policy, the political court eclipsed the Council under
Charles. This had been anticipated during the Jacobean and Buckingham eras
when the Council's traditional policy-making role was circumvented.130 The
Caroline situation was new, however, in the ascendancy of a clique as
opposed to a favourite, and likewise in the ideological nature of that clique.
The dissolution of Parliament in 1629 was a milestone which marked a most
critical political victory over the Council. This event was repeated (as we shall
see) at equally vital points in 1630 and 1631-2. 131 Crucial diplomatic
129
Weston and Cottington had favoured Wentworth's appointment t o Ireland t o remove him
from the English political scene, where he seems t o have had designs upon the Lord
Treasurership. Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 62—4,67; Laud, Works, iii, pp. 214—15, and
vii, pp. 3 9 ^ 4 0 ; Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer, p. 161 and ch. 1 1 ; BL. Harl. M s 7 0 0 0 ,
fos. 4 7 2 r - 4 7 3 v ; Knowler, Strafford letters, i, pp. 5 7 - 8 , 7 9 - 8 0 ; Trevor-Roper, Archbishop
Laud, p p . 2 1 1 - 1 3 ; Gardiner, History, vii, p p . 2 3 4 - 5 ; Zagorin, 'Sir Edward Stanhope's
advice', pp. 3 0 1 ^ 4 , 3 1 0 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 2 5 3 .
130
G. R. Elton, 'Tudor government: the points of contact, ii, the Council', TRHS, 5th ser., x x v
(1975), pp. 1 9 7 , 2 0 7 , 2 1 1 ; Sharpe, 'Crown, Parliament and locality', pp. 3 3 7 , 3 3 9 .
131
See chapters 7 and 8, below. The supremacy of Charles's political court w a s surely
encouraged by the deficiencies of Council government during the 1620s. Hirst, 'Court,
country and polities', p. 127. In September 1 6 3 1 the earl of Clare stated his belief that king
and Council were making policy as w a s customary. Clare, however, had no direct knowledge
of the inner workings of the government in which the king w a s increasingly at odds with a
majority in Council whose views did not prevail. Clare's assumption, in part wishful think-
ing, was predicated o n the fact of Buckingham's death; N U L , N e . C , 1 5 , 4 0 4 , p. 2 2 6 .
The king, his court and its enemies 199
initiatives, such as the opening of peace talks with Spain, were conducted
without reference to the Council. Charles rarely attended Privy Council meet-
ings. Of the ninety-nine meetings during the year ending on 31 May 1630 he
was present at only nine.132 In November 1630 new orders were promulgated
for the conduct of meetings. They required that proceedings be secret with as
little debate as possible. No clerks were to be present when the king attended
discussion of matters of state. These orders reflected Charles's defensive style
of government as well as his impatience of debate and dissent. Charles would
not tolerate conciliar opposition in matters upon which he had staked his
honour. During his rare appearances he addressed the board curtly and
inflexibly and was difficult to advise.133 He took counsel elsewhere from men
who offered no threat to the way in which he saw the world.
The eclipse of the Council by Charles's political court was linked to
Charles's lack of interest in government per se. Effectively he rejected the
formal advisory body in favour of individuals in whom he placed his trust.
Kingly lack of interest in government, as well as kingly inadequacy, had been
the source of Buckingham's power. Charles's decision in 1628 to govern
independently did not demand, of necessity, any high level of involvement in
political activity. With the death of the duke his influence passed to a collec-
tion of individuals, who could, as they chose, relieve Charles of political
duties. Their response ran the gamut from the diligence of Weston and Laud
to the aristocratic idleness of Porter. In this situation Charles was vulnerable
to manipulation, not least by the withholding of information. Those to whom
he gave great power, however, very much shared his views. 134 Charles was
freer to indulge this disinclination in the absence of a Parliament and war.
Whilst he had acquired an objection to Parliaments in constitutional prin-
ciple,135 they also sat ill with his dislike of politics. Charles's developed
aversion to the English constitutional process was in large part an aversion to
political processes in general. The fact that he made no attempt to change the
structure of government in England, despite his grave difficulties with Parlia-
ment and his absolutist pretensions, is strong evidence for the fact that his
132
J. P. Kenyon (ed.), The Stuart constitution (2nd edn, Cambridge, 1 9 8 6 ) , pp. 4 2 9 - 3 0 . Here I
am in agreement with Professor Kenyon's view that the political (i.e. the policy-making)
authority of the Council w a s waning. This does not necessarily run counter t o D r Sharpe's
view of a revival of conciliar government; Sharpe, 'Personal rule of Charles F, pp. 6 4 - 5 . The
Grand Remonstrance complained of nominal Councillors without power to alter the policies
of an exclusive regime; Gardiner, Constitutional documents, p. 2 1 5 .
133
CSPD 1629-31, pp. 373, 376; Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council and the forced loan',
pp. 213-14,225,234.
134
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 2 5 ; CSPV1629-32, p. 4 5 ; Carlton, Charles I, pp. 1 0 7 - 8 ;
SP81/37/fos. 167r-168r; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 300-301; see also AGS, E2562,
summary of letter of Cottington to Olivares c. Feb./Mar. 1632.
135
CSPV 1629-32, p. 204; Hirst, Authority and conflict, pp. 158-9; AGS, E2562, consulta of
2 Apr. 1630 (n.s.). See also chapter 2, above.
200 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Scotland under Charles I, p. 30; SP16/101/43; AGS, E2519, exp. 1 2 8 - 3 0 ; Birch, i, p. 417,
and ii, p. 4 1 ; NUL, N e . C , 15,404, pp. 35, 2 6 1 , and 15,405, p. 166; AMRE, CPA, 44,
fo. lOOr; Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 448; Smuts, 'Puritan followers of Henrietta Maria'.
140
Coloma referred to 'los dos mayores ministros'. This can only mean Weston and Cottington.
Archivo del Duque del Infantado, Madrid, Palafox Mss, leg. 94, fo. 137 (I am grateful to
John Elliott for this reference). See also ibid., fo. 136v; Hirst, Authority and conflict, pp. 142,
162; Hibbard, Popish plot, ch. 2 and pp. 9 5 - 6 , 1 4 3 ; Huxley, Endymion Porter, pp. 106,
165, 167, 2 3 5 - 7 ; Smuts, 'Culture of absolutism'; Mathew, Social structure, p. 129; Birch,
i, p. 4 4 0 , and ii, pp. 24—5; G. E. Aylmer, The king's servants: the civil service of Charles I,
1625-1642 (London and N e w York, 1961), p. 357; Sharpe, 'Crown, Parliament and
locality', p. 3 4 3 ; Sharpe, 'Image of virtue', p. 227. Simancas documents suggest that Olivares
was interested in the Scottish Catholics; AGS, E2517, fos. 3 1 , 34, 3 8 - 9 , 4 0 - 1 , 4 3 and
E2562, undated consulta.
141
J. R. Jones, Britain and Europe during the seventeenth century (London, 1966), p. 24;
Gardiner, History, vii, p. 346; DNB, s.v. Gerbier, Balthazar; AGS, E2043, exp. 172; Reeve,
'Viscount Dorchester', p. 272n; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 1 3 7 , 1 9 6 ; Lockyer, Buckingham,
p. 336; Howarth, LordArundel, pp. 1 9 4 - 5 , 1 9 9 . Scaglia fell out with Buckingham in 1627
when the abbe countenanced the rescue, for no apparent reason, of Lady Purbeck, the duke's
sister-in-law, condemned to imprisonment and penance for adultery, when she was abducted
by several of Scaglia's attendants; Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 408.
142
I am grateful to Simon Adams for this point.
202 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Protestantism, when combined with the unbridled material greed of men such
as Carlisle, Holland and Weston, made the court particularly offensive to
those whose religion, morality and national identity caused them to see it as
popish and corrupt and, if not beyond redemption, in need of radical
reform.143
The Laudian Church was of course an inextricable part of the Caroline
regime. The personal bond between Charles and Laud, which grew up during
these years, was a critical feature in the landscape of court life. Charles's
unwavering confidence in his bishop and their effective working relationship
were founded upon a strong rapport between the two men. Neither had any
real interest in the world of ideas or concern with the intricacies of theological
doctrine. Rejecting the spiritual energy and militancy of puritanism, both
Charles and Laud valued an eirenic and aesthetic spirituality: the 'beauty of
holiness'. They shared a belief, as we have seen, that Calvinism was
religiously and politically subversive - too dangerous a force with which to
compromise to any degree. Laud was similar to Charles in his authoritarian
personality, the single-mindedness and insensitivity of his purpose. He rarely
considered the powerful animosity which his policies generated against him.
Like Charles he had little conception of the political art of the possible: a
blindness epitomized by their design to unify the religious life of the British
Isles under Laudianism. Laud, nonetheless, was an ambitious clerical
administrator, seeking power to attempt the implementation of his schemes.
In this he differed from his spiritual kinsmen, Hooker and Andrewes, who
found in scholarship the expression of their dissatisfaction with Calvinism.144
Laud's bureaucratic diligence complemented Charles's lack of interest in such
labour; the king gave official sanction to the Laudian revolution. Laud's
understanding with Charles gave him influence outside the Church. His
proteges Windebank and Juxon achieved high office in the 1630s. 145
143
N U L , N e . C , 15,404, p. 2 2 0 ; Smuts, 'Culture of absolutism', Conclusion; Mathew, Age of
Charles I, p. 2 8 8 ; Hirst, Authority and conflict, pp. 3 0 - 1 , 144, 1 5 0 - 1 ; Donagan, 'A
courtier's progress'; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 338n; Birch, ii, pp. 8 9 - 9 0 ; Clarendon,
Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 6 2 - 4 ; BL, Harl. M s 7 0 0 0 , fo. 2 7 3 r - v ; Laud, Works, vi (1), p. 2 7 5 ;
Beatty, Warwick and Holland, pp. 4 8 - 9 , 104ff., 117, 130. Carlisle is a classic example of
sheer pragmatism without principle. AMRE, CPA, 4 2 , fo. 379r; AGS, E2042, unfol.
decipher of relation by Gerbier; SP16/123/3; CSPD 1628-9, p. 4 6 9 ; Melbourne Hall, Coke
Mss, bundle 37, newsletter of 5 June 1629; Mathew, Age of Charles I, pp. 59ff.; Schreiber,
The first Carlisle, pp. 1 - 2 ; Archivo del Duque del Infantado, Madrid, Palafox Mss, leg. 9 4 ,
fo. 136v (I am grateful to John Elliott for this reference).
144
I am grateful t o Ian Breward for this point. See also Tyacke, 'Puritanism, Arminianism',
pp. 1 2 5 , 1 3 0 ; CSPV1636-9, p. 125; Hutton, William Laud, pp. 3 1 , 4 6 - 7 ; Trevor-Roper,
Archbishop Laud, pp. 6 7 - 8 ; Haller, Rise of puritanism, p. 2 2 8 ; Mathew, Age of Charles I,
p. 3 8 ; Hirst, Authority and conflict, p. 167; Cross, Church andpeople, p. 176; Charles's and
Laud's design for British religious unity has been pointed out by Conrad Russell, 'The British
problem and the English civil war'.
145
Juxon (bishop of London) succeeded Weston as Lord Treasurer in 1636.
The king, his court and its enemies 203
146
N e i l e w a s translated from Winchester t o York in 1 6 3 2 . See also chapter 3 , above.
147
Cliffe, Puritan gentry, p. 1 7 1 .
148
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 1 0 1 - 2 .
149
Laud w a s jealous of the influence of the c o m m o n law in the life of the Church; Laud, Works,
150
T h e episcopal injunctions of 1 6 2 9 constituted a revision of the Elizabethan injunctions
issued at the beginning of the queen's reign. Dorchester tried to cast doubt on their authority
(seeing Laud's purposes) but Charles fully supported the project. Reeve, 'Viscount
Dorchester', pp. 207-8; Welsby, George Abbot, pp. 136-7; Laud, Works, vii, pp. 23-A.
151
The right to keep a resident chaplain was restricted to the episcopate, the peerage, the
judiciary, Knights of the Garter and senior officials of the crown; Cliffe, Puritan gentry,
pp. 158,162ff. See also Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 104ff., 113-16.
152
Laud to archdeacon of London, 4 Jan. 1 6 3 0 . Laud, Works, vi (1), pp. 2 6 8 - 9 .
153
Gardiner, History, vii, p. 2 4 1 ; Laud, Works, vii, p. 2 6 ; Bodl. Lib., Tanner M s 7 1 , fo. 128r;
Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 1 3 2 and n, 2 4 5 ; Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists, pp. 188ff.,
2 2 4 . O n the problem of the enforcement of Laudianism elsewhere see A. H u g h e s , 'Thomas
D u g a r d and his circle in the 1 6 3 0 s - a "Parliamentary-puritan" connexion?', HJ, x x i x , 4
(1986), pp. 783-4.
154
Cliffe, Puritan gentry, pp. 1 5 6 - 7 .
204 Charles I and the road to personal rule
155
White, 'The rise of Arminianism reconsidered', p. 5 3 . Clarendon was critical by implication
of Charles's policy of publicly rejecting orthodox Calvinism; Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i,
p. 124.
156
CSPD 1628-9, pp. 516-17.
157
Ibid<aWelsby, George Abbot, p. 136; PRO 31/3/66/fo. 132r; Bodl. Lib., Tanner M s 7 1 ,
fo. 142r.
158
Supple, Commercial crisis, pp. 7 - 1 0 , 1 2 - 1 4 .
159
During this period the Dutch increasingly monopolized the European carrying trade, the
Baltic timber and grain trades and the Indonesian spice trade, and made inroads into the
traditionally English herring fisheries. Their finished cloth was underselling the unfinished
English white cloth in northern Europe and this, with disputes over English cloth exports to
the republic, was a major threat to England's economy. D . C. Coleman, The economy of
England 1450-1750 (Oxford, 1977), pp. 6 7 - 8 , 1 8 5 ; Clay, Economic expansion and social
change, ii, pp. 119-20, 184ff., 222; Supple, Commercial crisis, pp. 115-16, 118-19. On
The king, his court and its enemies 205
essentially two avenues open to English policy after 1629. One was to join the
Dutch in making war on the Hispanic empire, principally seeking to plunder
Spanish treasure from, and possessions in, the New World. Such godly profit,
it was argued, might also elicit Habsburg concessions in Germany. This
policy could conceivably be linked to the formation of a northern league,
advocated by Roe, to protect the Baltic trades and nourish the power of the
Dutch, Denmark and Sweden in the interests of Protestantism. This general
approach, whilst ideologically satisfying to the war lobby, had (as will be
seen) its economic drawbacks. The other policy was to end the war with
Spain, to prosper from Iberian and Mediterranean trade and to counter-
balance Dutch economic power.
Charles took his financial advice solely from Weston. The Treasurer's
influence largely derived from his ability to preserve financial stability and
with it the peace and limited independence valued by Charles.160 The personal
rule saw no fundamental reform of the English fiscal structure. Of the four
principal sources of royal revenue during this period, parliamentary subsidies
were traditionally voted for war, and the royal lands were a distinctly limited
asset; most of them had been alienated by the early 1630s to liquidate debt.
It was only the customs, the largest individual source of revenue, which, com-
bined with borrowing, could enable Charles to pursue unpopular policies for
any length of time.161 His commitment to Laudianism and interest in a
negotiated settlement with Spain, when combined with the essential depen-
dence of the crown upon international trade, made the pro-Spanish neutrality
of the personal rule a virtual necessity. The yield of the customs (which varied
with the volume of trade and the efficiency of collection) was impressive
during the 1630s. During the first half of the decade the overall sum was
between £300,000 and £400,000 per annum. This seems to have risen to
about £500,000 per annum during the later years. The customs thus
furnished almost two-thirds of the crown's annual revenue during the
personal rule.162 It is difficult to calculate the national financial position
during the early modern period, but something approaching solvency had
economic warfare between Spain and the Dutch see Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 204ff., and
passim; G. Parker, Spain and the Netherlands 1559-1659 (London, 1979), pp. 7 7 - 8 1 ;
Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 9 5 - 6 .
160
According to Clarendon, Charles twice paid Weston's enormous debts; Clarendon,
Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 62—3.
161
Hirst, Authority and conflict, p. 149; Thomas, 'Financial and administrative developments',
p. 119; Clay, Economic expansion and social change, ii, p. 2 6 3 ; Coleman, Economy of
England, pp. 188—90; Cooper, Tall of the Stuart monarchy', p. 5 6 1 .
162
Cooper, Tall of the Stuart monarchy', p. 5 6 1 ; Clay, Economic expansion and social change,
ii, pp. 2 5 2 , 256; Hirst, Authority and conflict, p. 174; Coleman, Economy of England,
p. 190; Thomas, 'Financial and administrative developments', p. 120. All the proceeds from
Ship Money went to increasing the size of the navy; ibid., p. 121.
206 Charles I and the road to personal rule
clearly been achieved by the mid-1630s. The royal debt at that point was just
over a million pounds: not far in excess of a single year's income. While future
crown revenues were still being anticipated at the end of the decade, the situ-
ation of imminent royal bankruptcy had certainly been vanquished when
Weston died in 1635. This was his principal achievement.163
Charles's dependence upon the customs meant, in effect, dependence upon
the customs farmers, those who rented the right to collect the duties. The
great farm of the customs, initiated in 1628, was the most sought-after of all
the royal concessions. During the 1630s it was held by a syndicate dominated
by powerful magnates such as Sir John Wolstenholme the younger and Sir
Paul Pindar. Weston became closely allied with the customs farmers. The
Treasurer's political survival was inseparable from the customers' enormous
financial investment in the regime. Arundel, who was granted the farm of the
duties on currants, was also part of this connection. The customs farmers had
a vested interest in satisfying the king's need for credit. By accepting loans
Charles doubled his dependence upon these men. He made no effort to
preserve his credit in the City where it markedly declined. While the wider
business community profited from the years of peace and trade, they were
alienated from the court concessionaries and would not lend to a king who
remained a risk. When the Scottish crisis broke Charles found himself in
financial as well as political isolation. The narrow financial basis of his
government reflected the unpopularity of his rule. The customs farmers
shared in that unpopularity. Inter alia, they had been responsible for collect-
ing tonnage and poundage without parliamentary consent after 1629.
Having lent enormous sums to the king in 1640, they were condemned and
crushingly fined by the Long Parliament and fell with the regime.164
What was the strategic context, and the material basis, of an economic
policy designed to attract customs revenues? The conflict with Spain had
severely hampered English trade to both northern and southern Europe. The
Dunkirk privateers had continually harassed the nation's shipping and
caused the virtual suspension of its Mediterranean commerce. Spain also
needed freedom from English attacks at sea and was desperate for the reopen-
ing of trade. In 1629 and 1630 her government encouraged the ending of hos-
tilities by granting passports to English merchants for unmolested passage.
163
Hirst, Authority and conflict, p. 174; Coleman, Economy of England, p. 185; F. C. Dietz,
English public finance, 1558-1641 (London, 1932), pp. 257ff.; Alexander, Charles I's Lord
Treasurer, pp. 133—4,158; Thomas, 'Financial and administrative developments', p. 121.
164
Ashton, Crown and the money market; Ashton, City and the court, pp. 32,129,135,147-8,
150—1, 202-3; Alexander, Charles Vs Lord Treasurer, pp. 164—5; Zagorin, Court and the
country, pp. 134ff.; Supple, Commercial crisis, pp. 105-8; Thomas, 'Financial and
administrative developments', pp. 121-2; CSPV 1628-29, p. 358; Hirst, Authority and
conflict,^. 187,214.
The king, his court and its enemies 207
The bilateral conflict was terminated by the Treaty of Madrid but the wider
climate remained one of European war. 165 During the 1630s neutral England
engaged in wholesale war profiteering. Dover became an international
entrepot for commerce with the great powers involved in the European con-
flict. English merchants traded eagerly in armaments, foodstuffs and military
and naval supplies. In particular, Charles became an active participant in the
Spanish war economy. English customs rates were generally lower on Spanish
(as opposed to French, German and Dutch) re-exported merchandise. With
the land routes to Flanders blocked by Protestant forces after 1631, the sea
route or 'English road' became critical for Spain. Spanish troops and bullion
- to pay the army of Flanders - often went up the Channel in neutral English
hulks and could count on the protection of English ports. Charles's navy
never actually went into action to protect Spanish shipping, but it connived
in preserving the safety of supplies for Flanders and was occasionally
deployed to ward off likely French and Dutch attacks. Large amounts of
Spanish silver were coined at the English mint (a most valuable injection of
specie) in return for bills of exchange. 166 Such pro-Spanish neutrality dove-
tailed well with the growth of English trade to Spain and Portugal, the
Mediterranean and Africa. The new lighter English cloth was sent to the
south and ships returned with luxuries, colonial products and even Spanish
wool. With the Dutch excluded, England obtained a near-monopoly of
Iberian trade. The flourishing of Anglo-Spanish commerce did not involve
any lessening of English trade with the north, the traditional market for heavy
English cloth. During the 1630s, English overseas trade reached unpre-
cedented heights of prosperity.167
The alternative for England, a war policy, had of necessity to be based upon
sea power and to address itself to a conflict which was economic as well as
military and political. It was also inevitably associated with some form of
commitment to the aims of the Protestant world. The classical strategy of war
165
Supple, Commercial crisis, pp. 104, 110, 226-7; CSPV 1628-9, p. 358; CSPV 1629-32,
pp. 16,45,57,70,251,267,280,290,332-3,405-6; AGS, E2517, fo. 108; Birch, i, p. 453;
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 284; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. 494;
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 49.
166
Parker, Army of Flanders, pp. 7 3 - 4 , 7 7 , 155; Birch, ii, p. 110; Alcala-Zamora, Espana,
Flandes, pp. 352—3; Clay, Economic expansion and social change, ii, pp. 1 6 5 , 1 8 7 ; Supple,
Commercial crisis, pp. 125, 226—7; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 3 1 8 - 2 1 ; H . Taylor,
'Trade, neutrality and the "English Road" 1 6 3 0 - 1 6 4 8 ' and J. S. Kepler, 'Fiscal aspects of the
English carrying trade during the Thirty Years War', EcHR, ser. 2, xxv (1972); Israel, Dutch
republic, pp. 2 8 3 - 5 ; Loomie, 'Spanish faction'; Grosart, Letter book of Sir John Eliot,
p. 197; SP16/203/108.
167
Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 58-9, 88, 90-2, 144, 204-6, 208-9, 213, 283-5, 288-91;
Coleman, Economy of England, p. 64; Supple, Commercial crisis, pp. 7,20; Clay, Economic
expansion and social change, ii, pp. 121, 127, 131-3, 140, 162, 187, 222; Clarendon,
Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 95,122.
208 Charles I and the road to personal rule
by diversion was, as we have seen, the preferred solution here. In 1629 this
required an end to the war with France and to the crippling royal subsidies to
Denmark. Roe's conception of a northern Protestant league overlapped with
that of war by diversion. Both strategies revolved around alliance with the
Dutch against Spain. While Roe supported the idea of war with Spain in the
Caribbean, Dorchester, a leading official advocate of war by diversion,
assisted Roe.168 Roe's commitment was to international Calvinism and the
liberty of Germany. But while his inspiration was strongly ideological, his
grasp of economic warfare was sound. The defence of the Baltic was vital to
the anti-Habsburg and Protestant powers. Prussia and Poland were the
principal sources of Europe's surplus grain and fed England and the Dutch in
time of dearth. The timber, tar, flax and hemp of the region were essential for
shipbuilding. The Habsburg defeat of Denmark at the end of the 1620s was
a threat to Protestant domination of Baltic trade. The Hanse towns, as well
as the Danish guns guarding the Sound, fell into the Spanish sphere of influ-
ence. The Baltic was, above all, the mainstay of the Dutch republic, increas-
ingly the most powerful enemy of Spain. Northern commerce, as well as being
the source of Dutch prosperity, was also its Achilles' heel. Roe saw the signifi-
cance of Olivares' design for Spanish naval supremacy in the Baltic. He was
also aware of the potential power of Sweden to sway the German war. 169
While Roe became instrumental in bringing Sweden into the war, his wider
scheme had its flaws. One was implied by the growing importance of reason
of state at the expense of confessional politics in Europe. The emerging
struggle between Richelieu and Olivares, and Richelieu's policy of subsidiz-
ing anti-Habsburg powers (particularly the Dutch and Sweden) without
ideological tests, were critical in this development. 170 The Dutch refusal to
fight the Emperor was also significant. Roe's idea that Charles would lead a
northern league ran up against the growth of Dutch power and the fact of
Dutch self-interest. War with Spain had a tendency to make England a mili-
tary satellite of the republic.171 The sustained support of a land war in
Germany could stretch English resources and would at least involve royal
168
SP81/35/fo. 157r-v; SP94/34/fo. 191v; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 1 0 1 , 276ff., 3 2 2 ;
Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 8 3 ; N e w t o n , Colonising activities, pp. 236ff.
169
SP75/10/fos. 164r-165r; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 332ff., 3 6 0 - 1 ; Israel, Dutch
republic, pp. 2 0 7 , 2 1 2 ; Alcala-Zamora, Espana3 Flandes, p. 5 2 6 ; Clay, Economic expansion
and social change, ii, pp. 1 1 7 , 2 2 1 - 2 ; Parker, Army of Flanders, p. 2 5 5 ; Supple, Commercial
crisis, pp. 1 8 - 1 9 , 102; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 1 9 9 - 2 0 0 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester',
pp. 94—5,101,274,276ff., 3 2 2 ; J. I. Israel, 'The politics of international trade rivalry during
the Thirty Years War: Gabriel de Roy and Olivares' mercantilist projects, 1 6 2 1 - 1 6 4 5 ' ,
International History Review, viii, 4 (Nov. 1986).
170
Elliott, Richelieu and Olivares, p. 116; Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 219ff.
171
Andrews, Trade, plunder and settlement, p. 3 0 2 ; M. Howard, War in European history (Ox-
ford, 1976), p. 45.
The king, his court and its enemies 209
172
On the problem of English war finance see chapter 7, below.
173
O n the plan during the Long Parliament for a West India company and war with Spain
see Kepler, 'English carrying trade', pp. 2 7 1 - 2 ; Gardiner, Constitutional documents,
pp. 208—9, 253—4; Fletcher, Outbreak of the English civil war, p. 64. On the disruption of
trade by war and the merchants' desire for peace, see p. 2 0 7 , n. 165, above.
174
Coleman, Economy of England, pp. 6 7 - 8 ; Clay, Economic expansion and social change, ii,
pp. 1 8 5 , 1 8 7 , 2 2 2 ; Supple, Commercial crisis, pp. 18-19ff.
175
See Thomas Bourchier's lengthy lament to Lady Joan Barrington after the collapse of the
Parliament; Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 60—1.
210 Charles I and the road to personal rule
176
Cross, Church and people, p. 194; H M C , 7th report, Appx, p. 5 4 7 ; Sprunger, 'Archbishop
Laud's campaign against puritanism at the Hague', p. 3 1 9 ; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 2 3 7 - 8 .
177
Cliffe, Puritan gentry, p. 2 0 5 ; Coleman, Economy of England, pp. 5 7 - 8 ; Andrews, Trade,
plunder and settlement, pp. 3 1 9 , 3 3 8 - 9 . There was of course no puritan monopoly o n
emigration. Maryland was founded as a Catholic refuge and chartered in 1632; ibid.,
pp. 337-8.
178
SP81/36/fo. 113v; see also Collinson, Religion of Protestants, p. 2 8 3 ; SP81/35/fo. 160r-v.
179
Russell, 'Career of John Pym', p. 164. See also Hughes, 'Thomas Dugard', p. 787.
180
Cliffe, Puritan gentry, pp. 2 0 4 - 5 .
181
W . R. Scott, The constitution and finance of English, Scottish and Irish joint-stock
companies to 1720 (3 vols., Cambridge, 1910-12), ii, pp. 328-9.
The king, his court and its enemies 211
Knightley. The members usually met at Brooke House, at the corner of Gray's
Inn Lane and Holborn. Other venues included Warwick House and Pym's
lodgings, both nearby. The Company continued the tradition of an anti-
Spanish strategy in the Caribbean, encouraged by the formation of the Dutch
West India Company in 1621. Association with this strategy during the
1620s and 1630s is a good test of opposition, or of developing opposition, to
Charles's rule. Hostility to Spain, hatred of Laudianism and belief in the
religious mission of colonization formed an underlying ideological
framework which fused the political and colonial activities of the Providence
Island Company into a fully coherent whole. 182 In commercial terms, the
enterprise was a failure. The policy of plantation had failed by 1635, sub-
scriptions soon fell into arrears and there was no return on the invested
capital of £120,000. In serious financial difficulties, the Company proposed
the sale of the island to the Dutch West India Company in 1637, which
Charles refused to allow. 183 Spanish forces took Providence Island in 1641
and the entire investment was lost. The bankrupt Company dissolved itself in
1650. 184
It is difficult to measure precisely the Company's success in political terms.
There can be no doubt, however, of its critical role. Although publicly
chartered, it was clearly a vehicle (as contemporaries perceived) for covert
opposition activities, for the organization and encouragement, on a personal
level, of dissent. Given the necessary caution involved in such doings, and the
likely loss of documents through deliberate destruction and confiscation, the
thrust of the group's political activity must largely be reconstructed from
external evidence.185 The Company's records do demonstrate that Pym
devoted enormous amounts of time and attention to its interests during the
1630s. 186 This fact alone - the value he placed upon the communal aspir-
182
CSPCoL 1574-1660, pp. 123, 125; Beatty, Warwick and Holland, pp. 90, 94; Newton,
Colonising activities, pp. 1 - 1 2 , 58ff., 8 6 and passim; Birch, ii, p. 10; Searle, Barrington
family letters, p. 148 and n; Cliffe, Puritan gentry, pp. 203ff.; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 3 2 ;
Thompson, 'Origins of the politics of the parliamentary middle-group'; Collinson, 'England
and international Calvinism', pp. 208—10; Andrews, Trade, plunder and settlement,
pp. 3 0 2 , 3 5 6 - 7 ; Howard, War in European history, p. 4 3 ; Israel, Dutch republic, p. 123;
DNB, s.v. Rich, Robert, second earl of Warwick; Gardiner, Constitutional documents,
p. 2 0 8 ; Fletcher, Outbreak of the English civil war, p. 64.
183
Charles's refusal almost certainly derived from his dislike of the Dutch. It may also have been
connected, as N e w t o n believed, to the momentary anti-Spanish m o o d of the court in 1637
and the possible value of the island as a base. N e w t o n , Colonising activities, pp. 236ff., 2 9 0 ,
307; Beatty, Warwick and Holland, pp. 88, 9 3 - 4 ; Cliffe, Puritan gentry, p. 117.
184
The members assumed responsibility for the corporate debts; Newton, Colonising activities,
ch. 14.
185
Ibid., p. 6 1 ; CSPV 1636-9, p. 125; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 89; Zagorin, Court and the
country, p. 100; Hughes, 'Thomas Dugard', pp. 7 7 3 - 4 , 7 8 4 , 787.
186
Although he still gave time to his duties as Receiver of Crown Lands; Newton, Colonising
activities, pp. 7 1 , 74—5.
212 Charles I and the road to personal rule
ations of the group - is telling. It was largely men who would form the Provi-
dence Island Company, Pym and Rich, Sherland and Knightley, who had led
the way in the 1628 remonstrance debate.187 Likewise Pym, St John and Saye,
with Bedford (with whom Pym and St John were connected), would provide
leadership in the Long Parliament. Warwick was a powerful patron of
religious radicals during the personal rule and an opponent of innovation in
government. His role in gaining the navy for Parliament was critical in the
outcome of the civil war. St John was counsel to Hampden in the Ship Money
case and Saye opposed the tax in principle. Gregory Gawsell, a Providence
man, became treasurer of the Eastern Association during the civil war. John
Gurdon, likewise, would be one of the king's judges.188 The intimate nature
of the alliances, often strengthened by blood and marriage, within the
Company and the circles connected with it was clearly vital in preserving like-
mindedness and political impetus.189 With their noble and gentry status (and
consequent social influence),190 fast access to news 191 and considerable
financial resources, this network of dissidents constituted a powerful
battalion.
Charles came to recognize the importance of the Providence Island
Company. In 1630 it would probably have appeared a respectable if not an
innocuous group. It was recommended by the patronage of the earl of
Holland, a favourite of the queen. It was granted a royal charter, like numer-
ous other bodies, not least because Charles apparently considered incorpor-
ation orderly.192 Yet his lively paranoia and fear of conspiracy, with the fact
that these men had opposed him (and Buckingham) in the last Parliament,
seems to have registered a warning signal. By 1633 the government was spy-
ing on members of the Company, and after the Scottish revolt broke out there
were raids on its headquarters, doubtless in an effort to find evidence of
collusion with the rebels.193 Senior Providence men were in fact in touch with
187
As Conrad Russell has pointed out; Parliaments, p. 4 2 4 .
188
Oliver St John was a member of the Providence Island Company and its legal advisor.
CSPCol. 1574-1660, p. 123; Newton, Colonising activities, pp. 7 7 - 8 . See also CSPV
1636-9, pp. 1 2 4 - 5 ; Beatty, Warwick and Holland, pp. 7 9 , 9 7 , 2 3 9 - 4 0 , 2 4 6 ; Russell, Crisis
of Parliaments, p. 3 2 1 ; Tyacke, Anti-Calvinists, pp. 1 6 8 - 9 , 189; Hirst, Authority and
conflict, pp. 7 7 - 8 , 1 6 7 , 1 9 3 ^ .
189
Hirst, Authority and conflict, pp. 77, 193; Newton, Colonising activities, pp. 60ff.; Cliffe,
Puritan gentry, p. 45; Russell, Crisis of Parliaments, p. 3 2 1 .
190
Warwick's great power in Essex is a classic example; Beatty, Warwick and Holland,
pp. 7 8 - 9 ; Hirst, Authority and conflict, p. 56.
191
Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 2 4 . »
192
G. E. Aylmer, Rebellion or revolution? England 1640-1660 (Oxford, 1986), p. 5. It was also
government policy t o favour chartered companies to keep bullion in the country; Clay,
Economic expansion and social change, ii, p. 2 0 8 .
193
N e w t o n , Colonising activities, p. 58n; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 8 9 , 2 8 0 , n. 3 6 ; Reeve, 'Sir
Robert Heath's advice'.
The king, his court and its enemies 213
the Scots soon after the National Covenant was signed.194 There was,
however, no pretext or specific reason to arrest these men during the 1630s.
Far from committing any offence they continued to serve, some of them, in
office under the crown. Warwick, with the gravest misgivings, even came to
co-operate in the collection of Ship Money in Essex. 195 Unlike the attitude of
Eliot, who had precipitately destroyed a Parliament and himself, the Provi-
dence Island Company style was more sophisticated, more informed, and
ultimately, in terms of its goals, more effective. It addressed itself to deeper
and wider issues: financial solvency under the traditional constitution,
religious policy and England's international role. It had a programme for
settlement and reform. It was premised upon less naivety about Charles and
those he gathered around him. It saw the need to eclipse a whole exclusive fac-
tion about the king and to obtain power over him, if necessary, as a substitute
for trust. It involved an influential political network, deep understanding of
public opinion (and of the appeal of the religious issue) and long-term plan-
ning for the use of a Parliament to achieve reform.196 It sought settlement
before confrontation and did not, save in the last resort, descend to demagogy
and dramatic effects. Above all, it kept a low profile until the arrival of its
chance, and stayed within the law. The relocation of political influence from
the Eliot to the Providence Island connection was a critical development in
pre-war Caroline politics.
While the Providence Island Company was a key focus of opposition, it was
not the only group alienated by the government of Charles I and engaged in
divergent activities and dissent. There was a network of such groups, inter-
related in purposes and overlapping in membership, which constituted a sig-
nificant, and potentially very powerful, political front. The other chartered
colonial and Caribbean companies were involved not only in searching for
profit but in promoting Protestant interests, particularly in the Americas. The
East India, Massachusetts Bay, Virginia, Bermuda (or Somers Island) and
Saybrook Companies were dominated by wealthy puritans including a
number of Providence Island men. Warwick was an important link between
these interests, which came to identify with parliamentary critics of Charles's
government from the late 1620s onwards.197
194
Cliffe, Puritan gentry, p. 2 0 5 . See also Hughes, T h o m a s Dugard', p. 788.
195
Russell, Parliaments, p. 4 2 4 ; Hirst, Authority and conflict, p. 56; Beatty, Warwick and
Holland, p. 79; CSPV1636-9, pp. 124-5.
196
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 341n; CSPV1636-9,p. 125 ;Hirst, Authority and conflict,
pp. 1 9 3 - 4 , 1 9 6 , 1 9 8 , 2 0 1 ; Russell, 'Career of John Pym'; Russell, 'Parliament and the king's
finances', pp. 106—7; Mathew, Age of Charles I, pp. 1 2 2 - 3 ; H M C , 7th report, Appx, p. 5 4 4 ;
Cust, 'News and polities', pp. 82, 8 5 - 6 , 89.
197
Warwick was a key investor in the East India, Massachusetts Bay, Somers Island and
Virginia Companies. Beatty, Warwick and Holland, ch. 3; Newton, Colonising activities,
pp. 58ff.; Howard, War in European history, pp. 5 1 - 2 ; Hirst, 'Court, country and polities',
214 Charles I and the road to personal rule
p. 113; Zagorin, Court and the country, pp. 99ff., 1 4 1 - 3 ; Ashton, City and the court,
pp. 121ff., 1 5 6 , 1 6 0 - 1 , 202; Andrews, Trade, plunder and settlement, pp. 3 0 3 , 3 3 3 ; DNB,
s.v. Rich, Robert, second earl of Warwick.
198
The Court of Exchequer found the Feoffees to be an unlawful body and not properly incor-
porated. The Feoffees were linked to the Providence Island Company through Harwood and
Sherland. Newton, Colonising activities, pp. 6 9 - 7 0 ; Yule, Puritans in politics, p. 86; I. M.
Calder, The activities of the puritan faction of the Church of England (London, 1957),
pp. xii-xiii, xxff.; Hill, Economic problems of the Church, pp. 146-7, 245ff., 260ff., 307,
317ff.; Cross, Church and people, pp. 1 8 3 - 5 ; Zagorin, Court and the country, pp. 1 7 9 - 8 1 ;
Gardiner, History, vii, p. 258; Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 1 0 7 - 9 ; Searle,
Barrington family letters, p. 244.
199
Clearly the religious radicals consciously desired to bring down Laud during the decade
before the Long Parliament. Sprunger, 'Archbishop Laud's campaign against puritanism at
the Hague', p. 319; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 128; Green, Diary of John Rous, pp. 6 9 - 7 0 ;
NUL, N e . C , 15,404, p. 223; Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 194 and n, 195;
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 124; Cross, Church and people, p. 195; Hirst, Authority and
conflict, p. 167; A. Fletcher, 'Factionalism in town and countryside: the significance of
puritanism and Arminianism', Studies in Church History, xvi (1979); Morrill, 'Religious
context'; Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 103; Yule, Puritans in politics, pp. 8 3 , 8 8 , 9 1 ;
Mathew, Age of Charles I, pp. 1 1 7 , 2 9 8 - 9 ; Hill, Economic problems of the Church, p. 332.
200
Both Sir Francis and Sir Thomas Barrington were electoral clients of Warwick, who was
related to Sir Francis by marriage. Warwick and Nathaniel Rich acted as intermediaries in
the Barrington-St John marriage negotiations in 1630. The following year Warwick was
short of cash and Sir Thomas Barrington went surety for him. Searle, Barrington family
The king, his court and its enemies 215
and aspirations. Their common denominator (save in the case of France) was
international Calvinism.203 Woven together by this ideological rapport and
by personal interconnections, they formed an extended fabric of dissent
permeating the English upper classes. While doubtless a numerical minority
and an inner circle',204 this network could be activated to effect by resolute
leadership when circumstances were seen to require it. 205 Such leadership
came increasingly from members of the Providence Island Company and their
associates such as Bedford: a critical concentration of individuals with a high
level of political awareness and commitment.
What made this kind of conspiratorial dissent significantly new? Firstly,
the court was no longer the undivided centre of national politics. Pym and
others were concerned with the evil influences about the king. Yet the
existence of a group such as the Providence Island Company makes clear that
the court no longer had a monopoly on political ability, commitment, activity
and influence at a national level. As the belief in malicious counsel and
corruption in government grew stronger, external political activity could
appear even more creditable: the greater the desire for reform, the less the
hope that the initiative would come from court. Eventually, by the autumn of
1640, Charles's circle was utterly friendless and the political initiative had
passed to his opponents.206 The emerging polarization of high politics was, by
definition, marked by ideological conflict, mutual fear and deep mistrust. The
stakes were high, the game was deadly and the aim became the enemy's
eclipse and destruction. The situation was blurred and the problem inten-
sified, as we have seen, by the development of conspiracy theory. This was
particularly prevalent amongst the government's opponents, where lack of
exact and confidential knowledge, when combined with the introspection
and moral intensity of puritanism, produced what were ultimately over-
whelming fears.207
Secondly, opposition was new in the way it became truly subversive in
rejecting the entire basis and orientation of the regime, and in so doing
203
Richelieu's government was uninterested in the religious aspirations of international
Calvinism in anything other than a mercenary way.
204
Collinson, "England and international Calvinism', p. 210 and passim.
205
The various collections for the Palatinate and the management of the Long Parliament are
cases in point. Ibid., pp. 208ff.; Hirst, Authority and conflict, p. 193; Hughes, 'Thomas
Dugard', pp. 784—7, 793 and passim.
206
Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 227. Belief in the merit of objectives pursued outside government
did not of course imply any design to alter the constitutional infrastructure. It did, however,
look forward to a Parliament which would reverse a perceived imbalance in favour of
undesirable court advisors. See p. 219, n. 214, below.
207
Gerald Aylmer and Conrad Russell have pointed to the importance of vocal and dynamic
minorities in English politics during this period; Russell, Parliaments, pp. 4 2 9 - 3 0 (citing
Aylmer). See also Yule, Puritans in politics, p. 88; Mathew, Social structure, p. 34; Parker,
Thirty Years War, p. 220.
The king, his court and its enemies 217
208
Nicholas Tyacke has pointed to this process in relation to the religious issue; Tyacke,
'Puritanism, Arminianism', p. 143. See also Morrill, 'Religious context', pp. 162, 170—1;
Reeve, 'Legal status of the Petition of Right', pp. 2 7 6 - 7 . 1 am grateful to Michael Bennett for
discussion of these matters.
209
Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 2 2 7 - 3 8 ; Russell, Parliaments, p. 432.
210
Russell, Parliaments, p. 380; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 2 1 3 - 1 6 , 2 2 7 ; Reeve, 'Legal status of
the Petition of Right', pp. 2 7 5 - 7 .
211
Daly, Cosmic harmony, pp. 10—11,15—17. This is distinct from the strictly legal maxim that
the king could do no wrong. ST, iii, col. 1201; Sommerville, Politics and ideology,
pp. 1 0 1 - 2 . Eliot's attachment to the classical view of evil counsel is clear (see chapter 3 ,
above). While his activities and those of his associates prefigured and initiated the subversive
dissent of these years, he remained in this sense traditional.
218 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Changing views of Charles encouraged anxiety about the need for reform.
They also promoted a sense of the importance of Parliament. Parliament
came to be seen not only as a means to such reform, but also as a proper
avenue of good counsel. Belief in the traditional principle that England was
governed with representation and by consent, when combined with the sense
of urgency created by Charles's rule, underlined the symbolic role of the
institution, despite its physical absence, during the 1630s. It was belief in the
place of Parliament which underlay the contemporary perception of the
personal rule as a constitutional aberration: a perception which was - given
Charles's eventual resolve not to call Parliament — essentially correct.214 On
a more practical level, the Providence Island Company and similar connec-
tions provided a vehicle for association and communication which would
otherwise have taken place in, or in closer relation to, Parliament.215
There were a number of important and distinctly traditional elements inter-
woven with the novel political developments of these years. One was the
abiding and vital role of ruling-class politics. The network of dissident group-
ings which grew up in Caroline England enjoyed, directly or indirectly, aris-
tocratic patronage and sanction. Such support and leadership, moreover,
were frequently provided for reasons which were essentially unideological.
Noblemen such as the earl of Essex, connected to the late Prince Henry but
excluded from Charles's court, were jealous of power as well as seeking
reform in 1640. 216 Laudianism - in the raising of bishops to high office and
the punishments meted out by High Commission - was socially offensive to
the aristocracy and encouraged the reaction against episcopacy. 217 The
debasement of titles with money transactions since the Jacobean period could
only undermine the loyalty of the old nobility.218 Charles's invasion of
214
Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 2 1 1 ; CD1629, pp. 1 3 2 , 1 7 8 ; CSPV1636-9, pp. 1 2 4 - 6 ;
Green, Diary of John Rous, pp. 5 4 and n, 55; Hirst, Authority and conflict, pp. 1 5 3 , 1 9 8 ;
Cust and Lake, 'Sir Richard Grosvenor', pp. 4 7 - 8 ; Russell, Parliaments, p. 3 9 0 ; Hibbard,
Popish plot, pp. 2 1 5 - 1 6 ; Reeve, 'Legal status of the Petition of Right', pp. 2 7 5 - 6 ; E. Cope,
'Public images of Parliament during its absence', Legislative Studies Quarterly, vii, 2 ( 1 9 8 2 ) .
215
Pym is clearly a case in point; N e w t o n , Colonising activities, pp. 7 1 , 74—5.
216
Essex w a s connected to the 'constitutional' opposition of the 1620s: Eliot, Selden,
Littleton and Strode. See V. F. Snow, 'Essex and the aristocratic opposition to the early
Stuarts', JMH, xxxii (1962); Manning, 'The aristocracy and the downfall of Charles I';
Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice'.
217
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, p. 1 2 5 ; Yule, Puritans in politics, p. 8 7 ; Mathew, Age of
Charles I, p. 3 0 0 ; Hill, Economic problems of the Church, p. 3 4 0 .
218
This is a consistent theme in Clare's correspondence. In 1631 he wrote that if his estate had
been better by some thousands, 'the court had befriended m e more, and my acquaintance
with prisons had been less . . . ' ; Clare to his son's father-in-law Sir Francis Ashley, 12 Sept.
1631. NUL, Ne.C, 15,405, p. 215. See also ibid., 15,404, p. 260, and 15,405, p. 244; Peck,
' "For a king not to be bountiful were a fault": perspectives on court patronage in early Stuart
England', pp. 32-3, 35.
220 Charles I and the road to personal rule
hereditary feudal rights by such means as extending the forest law were
opposed by magnates such as Warwick with a stake in the old regime.219
Warwick and others also had a financial interest, as we have seen, in war with
Spain, and therefore in an ecclesiastical policy consistent with it. 220 Broadly
personal and social considerations, as well as financial ones, played their
part in the aristocratic reaction. The vast majority of Charles's critics were,
moreover, conservative and law-abiding men made oppositionist and ideo-
logically aggressive by an innovatory regime. In this struggle there were
echoes of traditional dynastic politics. There was the need for, and (as will be
seen) an interest in an alternative line of succession. Correspondence and later
co-operation with rebel forces in the king's dominions was, likewise, nothing
new. Neither was inept kingship, the perennial problem of monarchy, a novel
obstacle. It did not require the radicalization of attitudes to monarchy. Such
attitudes, when under pressure, could have been appeased at almost any point
with concessions by Charles which were significant and sincere. Pym and
others wanted to serve, to co-operate, to counsel and to tutor. Their problem
was Charles's ideological provocation. It was this, with the poor political
quality of his kingship, which rendered that kingship, in their eyes, increas-
ingly irredeemable. Despite the traditional political themes which, on the
whole, preserved order and assisted stability, Charles's government remained
inherently unstable. It was an inextricable part of the new political context
which, in concert with international influences, it had served to create in
England.
The European war, from the time of its outbreak, intensified English ideo-
logical positions. It was thus a critical factor in English politics. Charles's
accession and the dislocating effects of his rule affected an atmosphere
already considerably enlivened as the Parliament of 1624 had shown 221 - an
atmosphere which could well become highly charged. The polarization of
English politics by 1629-30 can be seen as one aspect of the polarization of
international politics under the pressure of war. 222 The growth of the English
news industry was closely connected to the progress of the war and continu-
ally stimulated the national political consciousness. In a Europe divided
between Spain and her enemies, English public opinion was definitely anti-
219
One of the royal fiscal initiatives of the personal rule was the fining of landowners for
supposedly encroaching on the defunct boundaries of the medieval royal forests. Hirst,
Authority and conflict, pp. 173-4; Beatty, Warwick and Holland, pp. 35-6,238-42; DNB,
s.v. Rich, Robert, second earl of Warwick.
220
Warwick was in financial difficulties after 1 6 3 1 , and while he never had to alienate assets he
was in debt to the Providence Island Company; Beatty, Warwick and Holland, pp. 8 9 - 9 0 ,
100.
221
Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624', pp. 1 6 9 , 1 7 1 .
222
Parker, Spain and the Netherlands, pp. 76, 226.
The king, his court and its enemies 221
223
Zagorin, Court and the country, pp. 106£f.; CSPV1629-32, pp. 1 8 3 - 4 ; Andrews, Trade,
plunder and settlement, p. 363; AMRE, CPA, 4 2 , fo. 280r.
224
Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 8 2 - 3 , 1 9 5 , 2 0 3 , 2 1 4 , 2 3 5 - 6 , and passim.
225
Ibid., pp. 8 2 - 3 ; Breslow, Mirror of England, ch. 3.
226
Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 2 2 7 , 2 3 8 , 2 4 4 ; NUL, N e . C , 15,404, pp. 2 1 7 - 1 8 , 2 2 2 ,
2 3 1 ; Gardiner, Constitutional documents, pp. 208—9; Gardiner, Speech of Sir Robert Heath,
p. 8; Green, Diary of John Rous, p. 38; Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621
and 1624', p. 147n; Breslow, Mirror of England, p. 42.
227
Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 228, 237, 253n; PRO 31/3/66/fo. 132r; Newton, Colonising
activities, p. 58 and n.
228
Newton, Colonising activities, pp. 236ff.; AGS, E2562, consulta of (Apr.?) 1630; AMRE,
CPA, 42, fo. 274r; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 342—5; Howard, War in European history,
p. 45; Cliffe, Puritan gentry, p. 117; Sprunger, *Archbishop Laud's campaign against
puritanism at the Hague'; Collinson, 'England and international Calvinism', pp. 2 0 8 - 9 ;
Zagorin, Court and the country, pp. 1 7 8 - 9 ; Yule, Puritans in politics, p. 96; Beatty,
Warwick and Holland, p. 89.
229
Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands ?', p. 91. The Dutch republic awarded the exiled Frederick
a monthly allowance on condition that he also obtained aid from England. He and Elizabeth
were receiving over £20,000 per annum from Charles by the early 1630s. Their circum-
stances were, however, very straitened. Parker, Thirty Years War, p. 63; Alexander,
Charles Vs Lord Treasurer, pp. 1 6 0 , 2 4 7 .
222 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Henry (of whom she was fond) and by Frederick, she always remained com-
mitted to the Protestant cause.230 With Henry's premature death, much of the
loyalty and Protestant expectation he had generated in England was pro-
jected on to Elizabeth and her family. During the 1620s the Palatine and
Protestant causes became virtually inseparable in the English mind. 231 This,
combined with Elizabeth's attractive personality and her arguably tragic
circumstances, created a powerful emotional following for the family in
England. The image of Elizabeth and Frederick contrasted sharply with the
courts of Charles and Henrietta Maria - havens for Catholicism - as well as
with the rise of Arminianism.232 The Palatines had important connections
among the English puritan gentry and the war lobby in Parliament. They
associated these groups with the international 'front' which their own Prot-
estant servants were seeking to create.233
By 1628 there were definite hopes among puritan elements that Elizabeth's
line would succeed to the English throne. Their popularity could only
increase as disillusionment with Charles set in. It is possible to see in the
strength of the Palatine interest something of a barometer of Charles's public
standing. From the 1620s onwards it was possible that Parliament, in its
discontent, might appeal to the Palatines' influence in England and seek to
promote it, even developing a vested interest in the succession of one of their
line.234 The idea of deposing Charles in favour of his nephew, Charles Lewis,
was raised by some of Pym's following in 1641. 235 Charles's efforts to
re-establish the Palatines in their own hereditary dominions surely derived in
part from fear of this reversionary claim to his throne. 236 He was afraid of his
230
Elizabeth had been considered as a bride for Gustavus Adolphus; Hibbard, Popish plot,
p. 2 5 3 . She seems to have remained consistently Protestant in sentiment throughout her life.
DNB, s.v. Elizabeth, queen of Bohemia; Mathew, Age of Charles I, pp. 55, 7 1 ; see also
SP84/139/fos. 2 7 r - 2 8 r .
231
Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624', p. 147; Hibbard, Popish
plot, pp. 2 5 - 6 . This perception was essentially accurate by the end of the decade; Parker,
Thirty Years War, p. 8 1 .
232
AGS, E 2 0 4 3 , exp. 5 4 ; CSPV1629-32, p. 2 9 5 ; Green, Diary of John Rous, pp. 1 9 , 3 8 ; N U L ,
N e . C . , 1 5 , 4 0 5 , p. 66; Collinson, 'England and international Calvinism', pp. 207—8; Russell,
'Arguments for religious unity', p. 2 1 7 ; see also Cliffe, Puritan gentry, p. 2 0 5 .
233
Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 3 2 , 8 0 , 2 5 5 , 2 8 9 ; Parker, Spain and the Netherlands, pp. 7 6 , 2 6 6 ;
Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 6 3 - 4 ; N U L , N e . C , 1 5 , 4 0 4 , pp. 2 4 3 - 4 , and 1 5 , 4 0 5 , pp. 6 0 - 1 ;
Birch, i, p. 4 4 0 ; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 9 1 ; SP81/35/fo. 1 5 7 r - v ; see also
p. 2 1 5 , n. 2 0 1 , above.
234
In 1628 it was rumoured in England that Christian of Denmark and Elizabeth of Bohemia
had caused Charles to agree to the Petition of Right. Green, Diary of John Rous, p. 18;
Breslow, Mirror of England, pp. 37-^40; see also CSPV 1629-32, pp. 6 7 , 7 0 , 7 5 , 2 9 5 ; Laud,
Works, i, pp. 185ff.; SP77/19/fo. 3 5 5 r - v ; Russell, 'The nature of a Parliament', p. 4 1 0 .
235
W e d g w o o d , 'The Elector Palatine and the civil war', p. 6; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 1 5 1 ,
167,177,207-8.
236
CSPV 1629—32, p. 4 3 1 . The cost of subsidizing the Palatines would also have been an
incentive; see p. 2 2 1 , n. 2 2 9 , above.
The king, his court and its enemies 223
sister's coming to England and wished to prevent it, as he told Sir Henry
Vane, because of the risk of discord: her influence could stir up opposition
against him.237 Charles's insecurity vis-a-vis the Palatines may have been
compounded by the fact that Elizabeth had been particularly close to Henry,
in whose shadow Charles had lived all his life. Charles's fear of Elizabeth's
influence was shared by Weston and Laud who sought to stand well with
her.238 In May 1629 Henrietta Maria miscarried of a son, but the following
year gave birth to the prince of Wales. The event created considerable
unhappiness in strongly Protestant circles in England. Laud was overjoyed.239
That Charles failed to make the occasion a matter of public rejoicing suggests
his estrangement from, even fear of, his own people. 240 At the court of Spain,
the news of the prince's birth was cause for celebration. A Palatine succession
in England would mean re-escalation of the Anglo-Spanish war, a war which
was damaging to Spain at sea. Olivares wanted an alliance with England
against the Dutch and had an increasing stake in the survival of the Caroline
regime.241 Charles's willingness to make peace with Spain on the basis of
undertakings, rather than real concessions, in favour of the Palatines was
probably influenced by the recent assurance afforded by the birth of an heir.
The Treaty of Madrid was a bitter blow to the Palatines and further alienated
Charles's critics in England.242 The king's anxiety about his line was eased but
not ended by the prince's birth. The Palatines continued to be a political
presence and a potential dynastic threat.
Elizabeth's attitude to the notion of her family's succession in England is
difficult to discern. Charles and his sister had a real affection for one another.
Elizabeth was deeply grieved by her brother's eventual death. During the
237
SP81/36/fo. 142r, Vane's notes of conference with Charles, c. May/June 1630(?); see also
CSPV1629-32, p. 3 4 9 . James had refused to allow Elizabeth to reside in England in 1 6 2 1 .
Charles sought to keep Charles Lewis out of England in 1639. Adams, 'Spain or the Nether-
lands?', p. 9 1 ; Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 1 3 2 - 3 . Charles invited Elizabeth to England after
Frederick died in 1 6 3 2 , but this was probably a gesture he could not avoid and by then he
was assured of the succession. H e may also have suspected that Elizabeth would refuse, as
indeed she did. She had little to gain, and could lose what independence she had, by leaving
the Hague. Mathew, Age of Charles I, p. 8 2 ; Laud, Works, iii, p . 216 and n. Charles's fear
of the Palatines was probably compounded by the fact that some of their supporters were
(just conceivably) potential republicans. Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 2 0 8 ; Reeve, 'Viscount
Dorchester', p. 142n.
238
Laud, Works, iii, p. 2 1 1 , vii, pp. 4 0 - 1 ; A M R E , CPA, 4 3 , fo. 338r; Hibbard, Popish plot,
p. 87; Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer, p. 2 4 7 .
239
CSPV 1629-32, pp. 3 3 1 , 3 4 9 - 5 0 ; Birch, i, pp. 3 5 5 - 6 ; Laud, Works, iii, p. 103; Larkin,
Stuart royal proclamations, ii, pp. 2 7 3 - 4 ; Green, Diary of John Rous, pp. 53—4; Newdigate
(ed.), Poems ofBenJonson, p. 1 7 4 .
240
SP94/34/fo. 239r; CSPV 1629-32, p. 3 4 9 .
241
AGS, E 2 0 4 3 , exp. 5 4 ; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 3 6 4 , 4 0 4 ; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years
War, iii, p. 4 3 0 ; Larkin, Stuart royal proclamations, ii, p. 2 7 3 . See also chapter 7, below.
242
SP84/141/fo. 3 0 7 v ; SP81/35/fos. 172r, 1 7 4 - 5 ; Gardiner, Constitutional documents,
pp. 208-9.
224 Charles I and the road to personal rule
1620s, however, jealousies were said to have arisen between them over the
English succession.243 Elizabeth's first priority was the restoration of her
husband to his patrimony in Germany. After Frederick's death, she was
interested in a marriage between her son, Charles Lewis, and Charles's
daughter Mary,244 apparently as a means of obtaining English support for the
family in Germany. Yet she seems to have been interested as well in the
general prospects for her children in England. She would not have counten-
anced her brother's deposition and disavowed her son when he dallied with
Parliament in the 1640s. 245 Whatever her aims, it was not in her interests to
discourage her own and her family's popularity in England. She could there-
fore never release her brother from the residual pressure this placed upon him.
What can be termed the 'Palatine factor' was critical in English politics during
this era. Charles's relationship to his sister was another dimension of his
alienation from large sections of the English people.
As the personal rule took shape, a regime reliant upon pro-Spanish
neutrality, trade and war profiteering came to protect an English Church
whose Laudian innovations were essentially a new departure from Jacobean
orthodoxy. This protection was proffered against the danger of a fourth
Caroline Parliament. The fusion of interests involved-religious and cultural,
financial246 and (largely as a consequence) constitutional - w a s innovatory in
each part, and as a whole. This coalescence was intolerable to a more
traditional alignment of forces whose thinking (among its leadership) had
become dangerously stimulated, thus taking the 'new counsels' issue to new
extremes. Despite the penchant for the pax Hispanica within Charles's
political court, his government can legitimately be characterized as national-
istic. Europe was at war, and those who wanted war rather than isolation
desired the more intense involvement with the European scene. The conflict
between these nationalist and internationalist hopes was one about the basic
orientation of the state. The conspiracy theories which in England tradition-
ally served to explain political disagreement, and which were also rife in
Europe during this period, had disturbing realities behind them. 247
The dislocation of English politics did not of necessity involve a timetable
for collapse. The inclination of Warwick and his colleagues to go to the New
World in 1638 might signal to the speculative historian an alternative future
243
CSPV 1623-5, p. 163; CSPV 1629-32, p. 4 3 1 ; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 132; DNB, s.v.
Elizabeth, queen of Bohemia. See also Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 24.
244
Mary was eventually married to William, prince of Orange, the two reigning jointly in
England 1689-94.
245
Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 32, 176-7, 253n; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 75, 349, 4 3 1 ; DNB, s.v.
Elizabeth, queen of Bohemia.
246
On the novelty of the Caroline balance of forces in the City and the alliance between govern-
ment, concessionaires and customs farmers see Ashton, City and the court, p. 149.
247
Reeve, 'Sir Robert Heath's advice'; Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 4 7 - 8 , 220.
The king, his court and its enemies 225
and a Caroline survival. Yet the advent of the Scottish prayer book crisis in
1637-8, which led eventually to the summoning of the Long Parliament, was
more than simple caprice. There was an inherent vulnerability about
Charles's government which derived from the non-parliamentary context —
and the absence of national crisis - required for its survival, at least for a
generation. Fundamental to that context, which created new boundaries for
political and ideological activity, was the fact of a breakdown in the external
management of the state in relation to domestic politics. That breakdown,
apparent in 1629, would be confirmed in 1631-2. Predicated upon the
divisiveness of Westonian and Laudian policy, it had been doubly likely when
European war made views of English and international affairs increasingly
inseparable. It became, moreover, a self-perpetuating affliction. Laud spoke
in 1631 of the peace and plenty which Charles had already provided. Claren-
don would look back on an island kingdom, a haven of peace in a sea of
war.248 Charles's enemies, however, were not impressed by the outbreak of
peace in England.
All was not well. The Venetian ambassador Soranzo wrote at the beginning
of 1630 of 'the serious inconveniences which result from the king being out
of sympathy with his people'. The kingdom, he concluded, was enfeebled.249
The following year Sir Edward Stanhope wished that Wentworth might give
leadership to 'this discontented state'.250 The Suffolk puritan John Carter was
one of a number who predicted 'dreadful divisions' in England.251 Winthrop
and D'Ewes contemplated the merits of emigration as a means of escaping
what might be in store for the country.252 In March 1631 Laud preached at
Paul's Cross on the sixth anniversary of the king's coronation. His praise of
Charles and his rule was betrayed by the anxious and defensive tone which
permeated the sermon. The king and his son, the perpetuation of his line,
were a blessing upon the kingdom which had not the wit or the piety to
appreciate it. Some of Charles's subjects had sunk so low as to oppose his
rule:
and the age is so bad, that they will not believe he is so good beyond them. And some,
for they are but some, are so waspishly set to sting, that nothing can please their ears,
unless it sharpen their edge against authority. But take heed: for if this fault be not
amended, justice may seize upon them that are guilty, God knows how soon: and the
king's 'judgement' that God hath given him, may pull out their stings, that can employ
their tongues in nothing but to wound him and his government.
He felt the need to pray for the king: 'I hope I shall offend none by praying for
the king.'253
248
Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. i, pp. 8 4 , 9 3 - 4 ; Laud, Works, i, pp. 2 1 0 - 1 1 .
249 250
CSPV1629-32, p. 289. Zagorin, 'Sir Edward Stanhope's advice', p. 319.
251
Collinson, Religion of Protestants, p. 283.
252 253
Ibid.; Cliffe, Puritan gentry, p. 2 0 3 . Laud, Works, i, pp. 185ff.
—f« J <&—
Foreign policy
The foreign policy and domestic government of any sovereign state can never
be divorced and understood in isolation. Together they constitute the broader
subject of national policy. This is particularly true, as we have seen, of
Caroline England. Charles's policies came to form an overall pattern which
politically and ideologically, had its internal logic. This chapter examines the
way in which English policy interacted with the international scene and, to
this end, treats English foreign policy as a subject in itself. This was a
momentous period of the Thirty Years War. The recovery of Protestant
fortunes, after terrible reverses at the hands of the Habsburgs, meant that by
1632 the balance of forces could be said to be even. English policy
exemplified the tension between interventionist and isolationist policies in
Europe at this time.1 England's withdrawal from the war was critical in the
reorientation of Protestant alliances and the erection of Richelieu's new anti-
Habsburg coalition.
How was English foreign policy formulated during this era? One, and
frequently both, Secretaries of State conducted diplomatic correspondence
under the oversight of the king and the Council's committee for foreign
affairs,2 which consistently reviewed despatches. Yet with the political eclipse
of the Council, the roles of individual ministers were more important than
conciliar deliberation. Conflict over policy led to secret and competing lines
of diplomatic communication. Thus the distinction between official and
unofficial channels is often difficult to draw. As Secretary, Dorchester was
responsible for the royal foreign correspondence. In addition, he operated a
system of diplomatic and military patronage among Charles's subjects
serving in the Protestant countries of northern Europe. It complemented, and
competed with, the influence of Weston in relation to the pro-Habsburg
states. This divided foreign service reflected differences over policy as well as
personal influence. The Dorchester and Weston connections were essentially
pro- and anti-war interests. Appointees tended to share the views of their
1 2
Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 48,132. APC 1628-9, p. 273.
226
Foreign policy 227
3
Certain officers in Sir Charles Morgan's force and diplomats such as Averie (agent to
Denmark), Sanderson (agent to Sweden) and Anstruther (recipient of various appointments
in Germany) were proteges of Dorchester. Besides the use of more prominent figures such as
Porter, Cottington and Rubens, Weston employed men such as Taylor in Germany, Gerbier
in Brussels and Hopton in Madrid. Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 272-3, 331; AGS,
E2043, exp. 172. For a similar situation after Dorchester's death in 1632, see Young,
Servility and service, ch. 14.
4
SP94/34/fos. 250r, 25lv; Mathew, Age of Charles I, pp. 46, 52, 67; Parker, Thirty Years
War, pp. 225-6; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 361-2.
5
Elliott, 'A question of reputation', pp. 477-8; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, p. 82.
6
See p. 247, n. 110, below.
228 Charles I and the road to personal rule
tinguishable after the making of peace with Spain, was one of equivocation
and of a partial return to war during 1631. Charles sanctioned Hamilton's
expedition to aid Gustavus, and discussed with the Swedes a possible military
alliance to restore the Palatinate. This final stage was terminated when the
talks proved abortive and led, in 1632, to the pro-Spanish neutrality of the
personal rule. Charles never again went to war in Europe. An interest in
peace, and, by 1630, a formal commitment to it, was evident at each stage of
this transitional period. Charles's objection to Parliament and disillusion-
ment with war fed off one another and encouraged his preference for
Hispanophile, Westonian and Laudian policies. The personal rule, with its
foreign policy, was the result of as many negative as positive responses on his
part.
To what extent was Caroline foreign policy innovatory in English terms?
Charles's approach to European affairs had its Jacobean antecedents. James
had been enamoured of Spain and had hoped for a Spanish match. He had
even contemplated an Anglo-Spanish partition of the United Provinced.7 Yet
he had always sought to mediate and pacify in the European struggle. He had,
moreover, remained committed to the Protestant world as his sponsorship of
the Synod of Dort attested. Charles abandoned that commitment.8 He
became a covert participant in the Spanish war effort against the Dutch, and
his diplomacy was soon pro-Habsburg in principle. He was also prepared to
negotiate with the papacy.9 Finally, he officially sanctioned a religious move-
ment in England which rejected international Calvinism and favoured
appeasement of the pax Hispanica. This was a novel policy, but it was by no
means exclusively or even predominantly ideological. It combined a genuine
Hispanophile sentiment with Charles's pragmatism and English economic
interest. To a large extent the conflict over English foreign policy was
between confessional politics and reason of state. It was that conflict which
did so much to destabilize and paralyse the political life of Europe during this
era.10 Yet for all its material and purely dynastic aims, Charles's foreign
policy remained offensive to the parliamentary classes in religious terms. Its
Arminian and Catholic dimension was undeniable.
Charles's foreign policy, as it became established, was the expression of a
constitutional breakdown which rendered effective war or diplomacy
impossible. For England to enlist, browbeat or vanquish other states so as to
achieve the restoration of the Palatinate needed the active or available
co-operation of the political nation in Parliament. Without this, Charles
7
Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', pp. 88-9; Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 173.
8
Adams, *Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 90.
9
Ibid., pp. 100-1; Hibbard, Popish plot.
10
Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 219-21,223,226.
Foreign policy 229
could only be partially successful. He could guard his coasts and merchant
shipping, escort the Flanders convoys and obtain a certain degree of Spanish
goodwill. But while entering into dialogue about a possible German settle-
ment, in a climate of war he could not extract real concessions without the
capacity to fight. Since a Habsburg military alliance was unacceptable to the
English Parliament, once Charles had rejected Protestant war or negotiation
from strength, he could cut no ice. Yet a critical question remains. How far is
it true to say that Caroline England, when not bedevilled by disunity, was
capable of fighting effectively?
By the standards of the great continental monarchies at this time, England
was not a particularly wealthy nation.11 It does not follow simply from this,
however, that she could make no impression upon the course of a European
war. The Dutch republic, demographically and geographically smaller, was
rapidly becoming a first-rate power through commerce and command of the
seas. Dutch wealth became such that the land forces of the republic could be
kept under arms throughout the year, an achievement almost unique in early
modern Europe.12 The revolutionary increase in the scale of war (and the fact
that it was becoming a global affair), together with the international inflation
known as the price revolution, made all states subject to a sharply rising cost
of warfare, on land and sea, in the early seventeenth century. England,
despite the feat of supporting numerous armies during the 1640s, 13 could not
in the normal course of events sustain a long war on land. The principal
English element, like that of the more powerful Dutch, was the sea. 14
English entry into the European war in 1625 immediately involved a
number of difficulties. James had run up a significant royal debt which war
would probably compound.15 As against the cost of war, the value of par-
liamentary subsidies was being eroded by under-assessment and inflation.16
War with Spain disrupted England's Iberian and Mediterranean trade and
affected customs revenues. Finally, there was always the risk and uncertainty
11
Clay, Economic expansion and social change, ii, p. 251.
12
Howard, War in European history, p. 55; L. J. Reeve, *The politics of war finance in early
Stuart England: a comparative European view' (unpublished article).
13
The success of the Long Parliament in funding the English and Scottish armies (the indemnifi-
cations for which totalled £1,100,000) during the emergency of 1640—1 is a case in point;
Fletcher, Outbreak of the English civil war, pp. 23,29,40,87. See also Parker, Spain and the
Netherlands, p. 100; G. Parker, The military revolution. Military innovation and the rise of
the West, 1500-1800 (Cambridge, 1988), p. 24 and passim.
14
Parker, Spain and the Netherlands, pp. 86—7; Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 66ff.; AMRE,
CPA,43,fo. 188v.
15
This debt was of the order of at least one year's income. Russell, 'Parliament and the king's
finances', p. 102; Hirst, Authority and conflict, pp. 109,124.
16
Moreover, the greater the number of subsidies granted the less they yielded. Russell,
Parliaments, pp. 49-53, 398,418; CSPD 1628-9, p. 482; Thomas, 'Financial and adminis-
trative developments', pp. 117,143.
230 Charles I and the road to personal rule
17
Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624', pp. 165ff.
18
This vulnerability was perceived not only by the English Parliament and the Dutch, but by
Richelieu, who urged a union of Anglo-Dutch sea power, and by the Spaniards themselves.
Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. 468-9; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 335,
342-5; CSPV 1628-9, pp. 516, 518-19, 557, 590; CSPV 1629-32, p. 235; Thompson,
'Origins of the politics of the parliamentary middle-group', pp. 80-1; Adams, 'Spain or the
Netherlands?', p. 83; Russell, Parliaments, pp. 163, 188, 293^1, 299-300. Sir Michael
Howard has pointed to the difficulty in mounting a successful attack on the Spanish treasure
fleets. The loss of the plate fleet in 1628 was the first occasion on which Spanish American
silver had fallen into enemy hands. Yet the financial and military catastrophe this involved
for Spain suggests that such a blow, if only delivered once, was worth the seeking. This was
in addition to the constant effect of attacks on Spanish trade. Howard, War in European
history, pp. 43-5; Elliott, Imperial Spain, p. 335; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares,
pp. 362-5. See also Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 222-3; Andrews, Trade, plunder and
settlement, p. 363; Israel, Dutch republic; J. S. Kepler, 'The value of ships gained and lost by
the English shipping industry during the wars with Spain and France, 1624-1630', Mariner's
Mirror, lix (1973), p. 220n; J. P. Cooper, 'Sea power', in NCMH, iv, pp. 234 and n, 235
andn.
19
Howard, War in European history, pp. 49-50; Kepler, 'Value of ships', p. 218; CSPV
1629—32, pp. 69, 123, 142, 178, 235; Thomas, 'Financial and administrative develop-
ments', p. 117.
Foreign policy 231
20
The navy could actually be fitted out for significantly less than this sum. Dietz, English pub-
lic finance 1558-1641, ii, p. 2 1 6 ; Hirst, Authority and conflict, p. 130; Russell, 'Parliament
and the king's finances', p. 1 0 3 ; Russell, Parliaments, pp. 2 9 3 - 4 , 2 9 9 - 3 0 0 ; Rushworth,
Historical collections, i, p. 4 7 3 .
21
This estimate assumes that the six British regiments already in Dutch service (13,000 men)
would continue to be paid by the republic. In 1 6 2 4 four further regiments were added by the
English government. A year later Sir John Coke reported to Parliament that £ 9 9 , 0 0 0 (which
presumably included some establishment expenses) had been spent o n the regiments in the
Low Countries. By comparison, the cost of hiring Mansfeld to mount an expedition to the
Palatinate - an initiative of which Parliament did not approve - was agreed o n as £ 2 0 , 0 0 0
per month (or £ 2 4 0 , 0 0 0 per annum). Mansfeld's force, however, was slightly larger than the
additional regiments in Dutch service and included cavalry, and as a mercenary he needed to
make a profit. The cost of guarding the English coasts was negligible compared with that of
supporting troops and fitting out ships. There was n o reason why Ireland could not essen-
tially meet the cost of its o w n defence as was largely done during the 1620s. Adams, 'Spain
or the Netherlands?', p. 85; Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624',
p. 170; Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 1 9 2 , 2 1 0 , 2 4 7 ; Dietz, English public finance 1558-1641,
ii, pp. 2 1 6 - 2 2 ; T. W. M o o d y , F. X. Martin and F. J. Byrne (eds.), A new history of Ireland
(Oxford, 1976), iii, pp. 2 3 3 - 5 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 2 3 9 - 4 0 ; Reeve, 'The
politics of war finance'.
22
Almost certainly, James's demand for a higher sum in 1 6 2 4 w a s at least partly aimed at
avoiding war altogether. Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', pp. 9 7 , 9 9 ; Adams, 'Foreign
policy and the Parliaments of 1 6 2 1 and 1624'', pp. 1 6 0 , 1 6 7 - 9 ; Russell, Parliaments,
p. 2 2 6 ; Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 2 4 5 ; G. L. Harriss, 'Medieval doctrines in the debates o n
supply, 1610—1629', in Sharpe (ed.), Faction and Parliament, p p . 94—5; Gardiner,
History, v, pp. 196—7, and vi, p. 6.
23
Russell, 'Parliament and the king's finances', p. 1 0 3 ; Russell, Parliaments, p. 3 0 4 .
24
CD1629,p.261.
25
Russell, Parliaments, pp. 2 2 6 - 7 , 4 2 6 .
26
CD1629, p. 261. See also ibid., p. 178; CSPV1628-9, p. 537; CSPV1629-32, pp. 183-4;
CSPV1636-9, pp. 124-5; AGS, E2043, exp. 209.
232 Charles I and the road to personal rule
supported Antichrist - was easily made popular in the country.27 The level of
supply in the 1620s was impressive given Charles's military failures, and
success was more likely to improve rather than reduce that response. The
idea, increasingly prevalent, that Parliaments should be annual could only
beg the question of a consistent, if reorganized, supply in time of war. 28 Credit
was almost always available to the crown, given any degree of rational
financial management.29 All warfare during the early modern period involved
anticipatory saving or the contraction of debt. War funding on credit and
post-war debts were the norm. Virtually all the European states engaged in
the Thirty Years War were technically spending beyond their means. 30
The Anglo-Dutch sea war against Spain in the 1620s was not without its
military and political effect. The Dutch West India Company's capture of the
New Spain silver fleet in 1628 was a near-crippling blow to the war effort of
Spain. The receipts of the army of Flanders fell dramatically and the republic
could command (and eventually reject) excellent terms for a truce. 31 The
running war at sea was very damaging to Spain and the constant English
attacks came to cause considerable alarm. English privateers, at no cost to the
crown, took Iberian prizes worth at least £200,000. 32 Besides the fact of
plunder, the loss of English trade was a most serious handicap to Spain. With
the Dutch systematically excluded from commerce with the peninsula after
1624, trade with England and the Hanseatic League was the lifeline for vital
commodities. The lack of materials for shipbuilding in particular made Spain
27
Jones, Britain and Europe, p. 46; Craven, 'The earl of Warwick, a speculator in piracy',
p. 465.
28
Sommerville, Politics and ideology, p. 104; Russell, Parliaments, pp. 226—7,426.
29
The decline of Charles's credit was linked to his unnecessarily exorbitant war expenditure in
the 1620s. Ashton, Crown and the money market, pp. 1 3 5 , 1 6 3 ; CD1628, iii, p. 213.
30
Parker, Spain and the Netherlands, p. 100; Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 1 1 2 , 2 2 2 - 3 ; J. R.
Hale, War and society in Renaissance Europe 1450-1620 (London, 1985), p. 244; Reeve,
'The politics of war finance'.
31
In 1629, in seeking a truce, Spain offered the United Provinces their sovereignty, freedom of
worship, their war gains in the Netherlands and the East and West Indies, and free trade in
places where they then traded - humiliating terms for the Spanish monarchy in view of its
political, economic and military investment in the Dutch conflict. Parker, Europe in crisis,
pp. 1 9 1 - 2 ; Parker, Army of Flanders, pp. 256, 295; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares,
pp. 3 5 0 - 4 , 358, 3 6 2 - 5 , 372, 378; Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 2 2 6 - 7 , 2 3 6 - 8 ; Reeve,
'Viscount Dorchester', p. 294n.
32
The total may have been considerably more; J. C. Appleby, 'English privateering during the
Spanish and French wars, 1 6 2 5 - 1 6 3 0 ' (unpublished University of Hull PhD thesis, 1983), i,
pp. 2 9 8 - 3 0 0 , 3 4 1 . (I am grateful to Dr Appleby for making this material available to me.)
See also Andrews, Trade, plunder and settlement, pp. 3 6 2 and n, 3 6 3 ; AGS, E2562, Council
of State, 8 Mar. 1630 (n.s.); Birch, i, p. 4 4 3 ; CSPV1629-32, pp. 69, 1 2 3 , 1 3 3 , 1 4 2 , 1 7 8 ,
235, 267; Laud, Works, iv, p. 635; Thomas, 'Financial and administrative developments',
p. 117; Young, Servility and service, pp. 154—6; Kepler, 'Value of ships'; Magurn, Rubens
letters, pp. 3 4 3 - 4 ; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. 4 9 3 .
Foreign policy 233
doubly anxious for peace with Charles by 1630. 33 In the context of Spanish
vulnerability in the late 1620s, England enjoyed a definite political leverage
while she remained in a state of war. Charles, as will be seen, failed to exploit
this advantage and to negotiate from strength in conjunction with his allies
the Dutch. While the English ability to fight did not imply the need for con-
tinual war, it could be a significant force in international politics. That ability,
moreover, cannot be denied by appeal to the consensual and therefore
supposedly inadequate nature of parliamentary war finance.34 Even amid the
strategic and financial mismanagement of the Buckingham era, it was
obvious that an Anglo-Dutch (not to mention an Anglo-Swedish) alliance had
teeth.
England's capacity to make war was very largely dissipated during the
1620s. An incompetent and over-sanguine gambler, Buckingham had failed
miserably, spending a royal fortune beyond the basic need to fulfil the pur-
poses outlined in the subsidy act of 1624. The hiring of Mansfeld, which
arguably violated the act, had been James's decision.35 Yet under the Treaty
of the Hague (1625), which insofar as it concerned England was Bucking-
ham's work, Charles had been bound to provide Denmark with a subsidy of
£30,000 per month to wage war in Germany.36 The duke had also entered
into the French war — a grave strategic error - thus diverting valuable
resources and spending the equivalent of three parliamentary subsidies on the
Rhe expedition alone. His mismanagement of policy lost the government at
least four subsidies, as we have seen, in 1625 and 1626. The remonstrance of
1628 accused him correctly of wasting over a million pounds of the king-
dom's treasure.37 While it is difficult to calculate the extent of English war
expenditure between 1624 and 1630, the sum total was somewhere in the
vicinity of one-quarter of the entire value of Spanish treasure imports from
33
CSPV1629-32, pp. 2 7 9 - 8 0 , 3 3 3 ; Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 2 0 4 - 9 ; Israel, 'Politics of inter-
national trade rivalry'; Elliott, Count-duke ofOlivares, pp. 3 5 7 , 3 9 4 , 4 0 3 .
34
The error of such an argument is a failure to distinguish between the cost of a land campaign
in Germany and other strategic options such as war by diversion. Adams, 'Foreign policy and
the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624', p. 1 5 0 and n; Russell, Parliaments, pp. 186, 1 8 9 ;
Thomas, 'Financial and administrative developments', p. 116; Dietz, English public finance
1558-1641, ii, p. 246. See also Hale, War and society, pp. 2 5 1 - 2 .
35
Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 97.
36
Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 2 7 8 - 9 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 19; Parker, Thirty Years
War, p. 77.
37
CD162$, iv, pp. 148,171,212,315; CSPD 1627-8,p. 86;NUL,Ne.C, 15,404,pp. 208-9;
Rushworth, Historical collections, i, pp. 474-5; DNB, s.v. Coke, Sir Edward; Russell,
'Parliament and the king's finances', p. 105; Sommerville, Politics and ideology, pp. 236-7;
Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 469; T. Cogswell, 'Foreign policy and Parliament: die case of La
Rochelle, 1625-6', EHR, xcix (1984), pp. 247-8.
234 Charles I and the road to personal rule
the New World during this period.38 Charles's view that Parliament had
refused to finance a war it had advocated cannot be justified.39 The war which
Buckingham was seeking to fight was not that of which Parliament had
approved and agreed to support. The grant of five subsidies in 1628,
moreover, made clear that Parliament did not wish Charles to be left in the
lurch. Charles would never admit, and probably never perceived, that war by
diversion had not been properly pursued.40 Finally, his religious policy led to
a disastrous breach with Parliament in 1629. The cost of war was a necessary
but not sufficient cause of his failure. Ideological and political factors, in the
forms of Charles, the duke and Laudianism, were greater obstacles to the war
effort than its fiscal requirements. The military and strategic options avail-
able to the crown in the 1620s were thus complicated and became the subject
of political conflict. The fact that these options involved attitudes to the Euro-
pean war at a time when it was escalating in turn facilitated the importation
of international influences which intensified English politics.
Prior to the 1629 parliamentary session, Charles was in two minds about
war. The collapse of his third Parliament could only act as an incentive to
peace. Yet his resolve to fulfil his commitments - to his uncle and his sister -
was slow to disappear. It was not until early 1630 that he committed himself
to peace. During the interim period of a year the case in King's Bench, with
all its attendant difficulties, moved to a hard-fought conclusion. Eliot's politi-
cal revolt clearly encouraged Charles's interest in the Treaty of Madrid.41
Those, such as Dorchester, who wished to continue the war were seeking to
repair the constitutional breakdown. Given the power of the religious issue,
this presented an enormously difficult task.
Dorchester saw the peace with France as a means to better deploying
English power in the general war. The pressing need in the spring of 1629 was
to prevent the capitulation of Denmark. Christian was arguably the greatest
loser in the failure of English parliamentary supply. Weston's financial
control and desire for economy made action more difficult.42 Dorchester was
the English minister most closely associated with the Danish ambassadors.
38
Calculated on the basis of four ducats to one pound sterling, the rate of exchange then
current. Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624', p. 169; Gardiner,
History, v, p. 347; Dietz, English public finance 1558-1641, ii, p. 246 and ch. x; Russell,
Parliaments, pp. 72—3; Elliott, Imperial Spain, p. 184; Reeve, * Viscount Dorchester',
p. 221n.
39
SP16/141/80; Cust, 'Charles I, the Privy Council, and the forced loan', p. 233; CD1629,
p.48;C/,i,p.927.
40
Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 1 7 2 - 3 .
41
PRO 31/3/66/fo. 140v; Reeve, 'Arguments in King's Bench', p. 285; see also chapter 5,
above.
42
Weston had partly disbanded the force returning from La Rochelle; Gardiner, History, vi,
p. 372.
Foreign policy 235
Their king acknowledged his favour and urged him to continue it. During
1629 he was the leading English advocate of aid to Denmark and was import-
ant in keeping alive Charles's interest in the war. 43 The Danish representa-
tives had encouraged an end to the Anglo-French war to facilitate English aid
to their country and diversionary action by France in Italy against the
Habsburgs. Playing for time in the talks at Liibeck, Christian would be forced
into a losing peace in the absence of English assistance. Charles had held out
hopes to him but the fruitless ending of the Parliament was a cruel blow. 44
Olivares still harboured his design of a Habsburg naval presence in the Baltic
which would sever the Dutch economic lifeline.45 While Christian wished to
continue the war, he feared the conquest of his kingdom and the loss to
Protestantism of the Baltic and Scandinavia.46 Dorchester, sharing the sense
of common danger, wrote of Charles's resolve to help his uncle once he had
settled his government in England. Ships were sent to the Elbe and arrange-
ments for reinforcements of men progressed.47 The idea of recalling Parlia-
ment had not, apparently, been entirely abandoned and the interest in
supporting the war was real. Charles had no guarantees from Spain at this
point and keenly felt his commitment to his own, his family's and perhaps still
his dead favourite's honour in the European conflict.
At the end of May 1629 Christian made peace with the emperor. For the
Danish king this was a holding measure forced upon him by the military
situation and dissent among his ministers. He understood the English situ-
ation which had dashed his hopes of resistance, but he was bitter at the result
of the war. Under the Peace of Liibeck, he was bound never again to interfere
in the affairs of the Empire. Some of his troops remained mobilized, however,
and he still harboured the notion of fighting again if aid came from England
and France. There were religious and political problems for Danish policy.
Christian would not compromise the Protestant cause by responding to
French overtures to join the Catholic League; and just as the Danish treaty
was a blow to English and Dutch morale, Charles's apparent interest in
negotiations with Spain sapped the confidence of the Danes. The Peace of
Liibeck was one part of a Habsburg effort to divide the allies of the Hague by
43
SP103/2/fo. 63r; SP75/9/fos. 199r, 201r, 215r-v, 217r, 258r, SP75/10/fos. 19r-20r.
44
SP75/9/fos. 205r-v, 207r-v, 330r-331r, SP75/10/fos. 19r-20r, 23r, 25r-29r, 53r-v,
58r-v, 64r; SP103/2/fos. 74r-75v, 76v-77v, 88r-90r, l l l r - 1 1 2 v , 119r-120r; CSPV
1628-9, pp. 527-9.
45
Elliott, Count-duke ofOlivares, pp. 3 3 2 - 4 , 3 5 2 , 3 5 4 - 5 , 3 6 0 - 1 ; Parker, Thirty Years War,
p . 79.
46
SP75/10/fos. 100r-103r.
47
SP75/10/fos. 93r-v, 139r-140v; SP78/85/fo. 238r-v; SP84/139/fos. 149r-150v;
SP104/170, p. 26; CSPD 1628-9, p. 556; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 4 3 - 4 ; PRO 47th Deputy
Keeper's report, Appx, p. 50.
236 Charles I and the road to personal rule
48
SP75/10/fos. 177r-178r, 191r-193v, 203r-v, 239r-244r; SP80/8/fo. 88r; SP84/139/
fos. 211r-212v; PRO 31/3/66/fo. 123r; SP103/2/fos. 121r-123v; CSPV1628-9, pp. 539,
5 4 1 ; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 1 1 7 , 1 1 9 - 2 0 , 1 2 2 ; Parker, Europe in crisis, p. 189; Parker, Thirty
Years War, pp. 79—80; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes, p. 526.
49
CSPV 1629-32, p. 120; SP84/139/fo. 158r-v.
50
In the spring of 1629 Ferdinand signed the Edict of Restitution by which in the Empire, save
for the Imperial Free Cities, all Church property acquired by Protestants since 1552 was
intended to be recovered, and by which non-Lutheran Protestants were supposed to be
deprived of all political rights. Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 216—18; Parker, Thirty Years
War, pp. 9 7 - 9 .
51
SP96/3/fos. 45r-46r; SP97/14/fos. 329r-330r.
52
SP84/138/fos. 2 0 4 - 5 , SP84/139/fo. 158r-v; SP88/5/fos. 42r-48r.
53
SP75/10/fos. 164r-165r, SP75/ll/fo. 49r-v; SP95/3/fo. 21r; SP84/139/fos. 27r-28r,
199r-v; SP81/35/fos. 179r, 266r-267v; SP16/174/101; SP88/5/fos. 60r-61v; CSPV
1629-32, pp. 111-13, 122; J. K. Federowicz, England's Baltic trade in the seventeenth
century (Cambridge, 1980), p. 188.
Foreign policy 237
was aware of the conflicting aims of his mission and that of Vane to the Dutch
republic to facilitate the Spanish negotiations. 54 Weston's financial regime,
with Charles's sense of rectitude, did not ease the resolution of an Anglo-
Danish dispute over England's financial commitment under the Hague agree-
ment.55 Yet Dorchester's lobbying and Roe's mission sustained Charles's
interest in the northern theatre. Christian of Denmark had recently refused an
imperial alliance. Charles stated the reality of his intentions towards his
uncle, and Dorchester encouraged the alliance on the basis of affinity, religion
and reason of state. The Secretary knew the danger posed by the imperial
threat to the Baltic and promoted the coalition of the two kings. 56 He and Roe
worked hard to resolve the financial dispute but a final settlement seems to
have eluded them.57
Dorchester and Roe had high hopes of Swedish participation in the war.
Intervention by Gustavus in Germany had been looked for since 1624, when
England, the Dutch and the German Protestants had invited him to lead an
allied army. He had already agreed to fight for Frederick's restoration. But
Christian of Denmark, not wanting to be eclipsed, had rashly assumed the
military leadership of the Protestant cause. Gustavus had returned to the
Polish war. In September 1629 Richelieu's envoy Charnace, together with
Roe, ended hostilities between Poland and Sweden with the armistice of
Altmark. The Swedish crown, for the duration of the six-year truce, was
granted the major share of the shipping tolls at the Polish and Prussian ports.
This was a valuable source of support for Swedish action in Germany. The
negotiation made possible the long-awaited intervention, and Roe encour-
aged Gustavus to undertake it and fight for Protestantism, considering the
Swedish king 'elect of God for this great work'. 58 The ambassador, for his role
in facilitating the German campaign, was honoured by Sweden. Oxenstierna,
the Swedish Chancellor, called Roe the 'auctor and impulsor' and Gustavus,
when victorious at Breitenfeld in 1631, was reported to have sent Roe a gift
of copper worth £2,500. In 1629 Roe offered him English aid. The Swedish
king apparently preferred an English (and Protestant) alliance despite the
overtures of France. Roe saw this as the best opportunity of the war for
England and the Protestant cause. Charles, however, refused to be com-
54
Melbourne Hall, Coke Mss, bundle 37, newsletter of 5 June 1629; CSPV1629-32, p. 130;
see also SP75/ll/fo. 49v. On Vane's negotiations see below.
55
SP88/5/fos. 42r-48r.
56
SP75/10/fos. 249r-250r, 253r-254v, 258r-262v, 282r-283v, 290r, 313r-314r, 315r,
323r-324r, 325r-326r.
57
SP75/ll/fos. 218r-220v, 284,290r-v.
58
SP95/3/fo. 51r, Roe to Sanderson, 16 Aug. 1630. See also Parker, Thirty Years War,
pp. 122-3; M. Roberts, Gustavus Adolphus: a history of Sweden 1611-1632 (2 vols.,
London, 1953-8), ii, pp. 397-9,417-18; Federowicz, England's Baltic trade, pp. 188-206.
23 8 Charles I and the road to personal rule
mitted. In 1629 he allowed Gustavus to levy two British regiments. But in the
spring of 1630 he refused the Swedish request for financial support. His
decision paved the way for Franco-Swedish domination of German affairs for
the next two decades at the expense of English and Palatine interests.59
Charles, in the autumn of 1629, had not abandoned the war option, but his
thinking had started to swing in favour of peace. Six months later he had
surrendered to such a peace policy, encouraged by his own experience of war,
political dissent, customs revenues and above all by the tempting approaches
of Spain.60
Charles's negotiations with Spain, which led to the Treaty of Madrid, were
for him an attempt to achieve the principal object of the Spanish war, a
Palatine restoration, by peaceful means. They combined his dynastic and
familial concerns with his ideological outlook. The wealthier and greater part
of the lands of the banished Frederick, the Lower or Rhine Palatinate, had
been in Spanish hands since the invasion of 1620. It was a valuable, but not
indispensable, link between the Spanish territories in Italy and the Nether-
lands.61 The overall direction of the Habsburg dealings with England increas-
ingly came from Spain. Spanish influence in Vienna was also greatly
strengthened by the Swedish victories of 1631. Olivares knew that Ferdinand
would accept Spanish direction of a settlement in the Palatinate, given certain
concessions by Frederick such as toleration of Catholicism.62 It was unlikely,
59
O n Anglo-Swedish relations in 1624—30 and the background to Swedish intervention see
S P 7 5 / l l / f o s . 3 0 r - v , 4 9 r - v , 5 1 r - 5 2 r , 59r, 8 5 r - 8 6 r ; SP78/85/fos. 3 0 - 1 ; SP88/5/fos. 156v,
1 8 6 - 7 , 1 9 0 - 1 ; SP88/6/fos. 1 0 1 - 2 , 1 8 1 r - 1 8 2 r ; SP88/7/fo. 2 6 7 r - v ; SP95/3/fo. 93r; CSPV
1629-32, pp. 3 7 3 , 3 7 9 ; Birch, ii, pp. 1 4 3 - 4 ; Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 102 and n;
Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 214—15; Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 7 4 , 122—3; Trevor-
Roper, Archbishop Laud, p. 1 2 8 ; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 1 0 2 - 3 ; Mathew, Age of
Charles I, p. 7 8 ; E. A. Beller, 'The Thirty Years War', in NCMH, iv, p. 3 2 1 . See also A M R E ,
CPA, 4 3 , fo. 295r; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 3 6 9 , 3 9 9 .
60
A M R E , CPA, 4 3 , fos. 1 8 7 v - 1 8 9 v and 4 4 , fo. 67w; CSPV 1629-32, p. 2 5 1 ; Gardiner,
History, vii, pp. 1 7 2 - 3 . See also CSPV 1629-32, pp. 2 8 9 ; PRO 31/3/66/fos. 251ff.; AGS,
E 2 0 4 3 , exp. 2 0 9 , and E 2 5 6 2 , Council of State, 2 Apr. 1 6 3 0 (n.s.); Elliott, Count-duke of
Olivares, p. 2 0 5 .
61
The route through the Rhine Palatinate, while utilized by Spain, was not the sole available
avenue to the Netherlands. Until the Protestant victories of 1631 and the French invasion of
Lorraine in 1 6 3 2 - 3 cut all the military corridors of the army of Flanders, an alternative route
was available through Alsace and Lorraine, Alsace being more important to Spain than the
Palatinate. The five key Spanish garrisons in the Lower Palatinate were in Baccarat, Crasena,
Alsenz, Frankenthal and Appeneins. Parker, Army of Flanders, pp. 54—5, 7 3 - 4 , 76—7;
Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 1 3 2 , 2 3 0 - 1 ; SP80/8/fo. 120v; PRO 31/3/66/fo. 144v; Cooper,
'Fall of the Stuart monarchy', pp. 5 4 9 - 5 0 .
62
AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 1 4 0 , and E 2 5 6 2 , v o t o of Olivares, N o v . 1 6 3 1 , H o p t o n to Philip IV,
1 6 3 1 / 2 ; SP80/7/fos. 58r, 66v, 170r; L. J. Reeve, 'Quiroga's paper of 1 6 3 1 : a missing link in
Anglo-Spanish diplomacy during the Thirty Years War', EHR, ci, 4 0 1 (Oct. 1 9 8 6 ) , p. 9 2 2 ;
R. Bireley, Religion and politics in the age of the Counterreformation (Chapel Hill, 1 9 8 1 ) ,
pp. 1 6 9 - 7 7 , 1 8 6 ; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', p. 1 0 0 .
Foreign policy 239
however, that Spain, save in extremis, would allow England significant con-
cessions in Germany without comparable advantages in return. Besides relief
from effective Anglo-Dutch attack, such advantages might, in theory, consist
of use of the 'English road' to the Spanish Netherlands, English rejection of
anti-Habsburg alliances at a critical point or military action by Charles
against France or the United Provinces. Of these options, exploitation of the
'English road' was of dubious value,63 and an anti-French or anti-Dutch
alliance was well-nigh impossible in the English political context. Charles's
best chance at the end of the 1620s lay in negotiation, while still in a state of
hostilities, in alliance with the Dutch (who were extracting concessions
comparable to those he sought).64 Frederick and Elizabeth saw this, as did
Olivares who responded with typical directness. As part of his diplomatic
offensive designed to divide the enemy powers and win peace and breathing
space, the count-duke set out to make peace with England the means of
destroying the Anglo-Dutch alliance. He would seek to make the dis-
solution of that alliance the one irreducible condition for peace between
England and Spain.65
Madrid was under enormous and increasing pressure. A pair of crushing
defeats in 1628 and 1629 - the loss of the silver fleet and of Bois-le-Duc, the
gateway to the Spanish Netherlands - was accompanied by impending
escalation of the Mantuan war, the prospect of Swedish action in Germany
and the rapprochement between England and France.66 Olivares was con-
firmed in his worst fears that Spain was continuing to decline.67 Despite the
loss of English trade and the destructive English attacks at sea,68 the principal
threat to Spain at this point was the Dutch. Dutch victories had rendered
Flanders ripe for revolution and encouraged the Spanish Council of State to
seek immediate agreement for a truce. Olivares was, as ever, reluctant to
63
This w a s n o t an active military contribution t o the Spanish cause and w a s only a potential
bargaining point between the Swedish victory at Breitenfeld ( 1 6 3 1 ) a n d the Habsburg
victory at N o r d l i n g e n ( 1 6 3 4 ) w h e n the Spanish land corridors t o Flanders were thoroughly
blocked; Parker, Army of Flanders, p p . 7 3 - 4 . 1 a m grateful t o Simon A d a m s for discussion
of this point. See also Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 1 4 0 - 1 .
64
See p. 2 3 2 , n. 3 1 , above.
65
CSPD 1629-31, pp. 3 2 6 - 7 ; SP84/141/fos. 3 0 7 r - 3 1 1 r ; SP103/5/fo. 400r; AGS, E2519,
exp. 5 4 ; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, p. 3 2 5 .
66
Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 357-8, 362-7, 369, 377-9, 387-8, 399; Wedgwood,
Thirty Years War, p. 2 4 8 ; Parker, Army of Flanders, pp. 2 5 6 - 7 ; Parker, Thirty Years War,
pp. 1 0 5 , 108; Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 1 9 0 - 2 , 2 0 1 ; Kossman, 'The L o w Countries',
p. 3 7 8 ; R. A. Stradling, 'Olivares and the origins of the Franco-Spanish war, 1 6 2 7 - 1 6 3 5 ' ,
EHR, ci, 3 9 8 (Jan. 1986); AGS, E 2 5 6 2 , Council of State, 2 Apr. 1630 (n.s.); PRO 31/3/66
fos. 2 5 8 r - v , 2 6 0 , 2 6 5 v - 2 6 6 v ; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 2 3 5 - 7 ; CSPV 1628-9, p. 4 2 0 ;
CSPV1629-32, pp. 3 - 4 , 1 5 , 6 9 - 7 0 , 1 1 7 , 2 2 9 , 2 7 0 - 2 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorcester', p. 2 8 0 .
67
I am grateful to John Elliott for this point. See also Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 3 6 8 ,
389, 394-5,406.
68
See p. 2 3 2 , n. 3 2 and p. 2 3 3 , n. 3 3 , above.
240 Charles I and the road to personal rule
69
I am grateful to John Elliott for this point. See also Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 359,
366, 3 8 5 , 3 8 7 - 9 , 3 9 1 ; Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 1 0 3 - 4 .
70
Elliott, Richelieu and Olivares, p. 128; Lockyer, Buckingham, ch. 5; Elliott, Count-duke of
Olivares, pp. 2 1 0 , 3 5 7 .
71
Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 2 9 3 - 5 , 3 3 2 . This was despite his awareness of pro- and
anti-Habsburg factions within Charles's government. Magurn, Rubens letters, p. 313 and
passim; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes, pp. 263—4.
72
Spain had opposed the bestowal of the title on Maximilian. The Upper Palatinate was sold
to him in 1628; Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 67,93. See also Bireley, Religion and politics,
p. 2 4 5 ; Parker, Europe in crisis, p. 2 9 0 ; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 3 3 1 - 2 , 3 6 1 - 2 ,
369, 3 8 5 , 4 0 1 ; Elliott, 'A question of reputation?', p. 479; SP94/34/fos. 159r-160r.
Foreign policy 241
ally.73 Here lay the origins of the count-duke's desire not only to have peace
with England but to enlist Charles in the Habsburg cause.
The English response to Spanish policy reflected Charles's own attitudes as
well as the conflict within his government. The king sought to achieve the
ends of the war by diplomacy as part of a rapprochement with Spain. Weston
also wanted peace, but was sceptical about the chances of Spanish con-
cessions and prepared to abandon the Palatines.74 The negotiations were
generally unpopular in England and were opposed by a majority in the
Council, where Dorchester, Holland and Pembroke were the leading
opponents.75 Charles's Spanish treaty was prejudicial to England's relations
with the whole of the Protestant world and ultimately with France. It failed
to achieve anything for the Palatines or the Protestant cause, and promoted
rather than limited Habsburg hegemony.
The seasoned diplomats Dorchester and Roe understood perfectly the
tactics of Olivares. Just as Charles's dealings with Spain had encouraged the
Danes to sign at Liibeck, separate Spanish overtures to England could destroy
the Anglo-Dutch alliance of Southampton of 1625. 76 Dorchester wrote to
Elizabeth of Bohemia of his confidence that the Palatine cause would revive,
if 'it be not undermined by the artifice of enemies, in parting and separating
of friends; which if it should take place, would prove our common ruin'. If
England and the Dutch were undivided
and our affairs be conducted jointly and unitedly, we may both, by God's blessing,
promise ourselves good issue. But if out of a peaceably [sic] disposition we strive [to
see] who should take the enemy by the hand first, and thereby grow to separation, the
devil cannot do us a greater mischief.77
Dorchester wrote to the English diplomat Sir Isaac Wake that while the
European scene was in transformation, and other states (France, Sweden and
the United Provinces) readied themselves for war, 'our designs abroad only
tend for the present to pacification'.78 Dorchester's tactical sense was fused
73
Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 3 9 1 , 3 9 5 ; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes, pp. 2 4 6 - 7 ,
286, 288; Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 1 0 4 - 5 ; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 1 8 0 - 1 ; Bireley,
Religion and politics, pp. 6, 177; Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii,
p. 467n; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. xxvii, 477; SP94/35/fos. 2 5 2 r -
253v.
74
CSPV 1629-32, pp. 178, 3 3 1 - 2 ; Melbourne Hall, Coke Mss, bundle 37, newsletter of 5
June 1629.
75
CSPV 1629-32, p. 250; PRO 31/3/66/fo. 208r; Magurn, Rubens letters, p. 352.
76
Under the Treaty of Southampton, England and the United Provinces established an
offensive and defensive alliance emphasizing naval co-operation against Spain; Gardiner,
History, vi, p. 6.
77
SP81/35/fo. 218r-v, Dorchester to Elizabeth, 2 4 Oct. 1629. See also SP75/10/fos. 2 5 3 r -
254v, 258r-262v, Roe's negotiations with Denmark, Aug. 1629.
78
SP92/18/fo. 92r-v, Dorchester to Wake, 4 Mar. 1630; SP92/18/fo. 19v, Dorchester to Wake,
8 Jan. 1630.
242 Charles I and the road to personal rule
with the language of militant Calvinism. Spain was the natural enemy of
England and true religion. Charles, he wrote, was tempted to settle with
Philip, but Dorchester believed the attack should be pressed home. He urged
Sir Henry Vane (then at the Hague) to make no mistake. Despite the loss of
the silver fleet, the Spaniard still might have a lot of fight left in him:
this blow he hath received, unless it be pursued with the like good success, will weaken
him nothing but be rather like a blood-letting to a strong body, which is a cause of
health...
Dorchester commended the Dutch war effort in the West Indies 'where in
truth the life blood of the Spaniard lies'.79 The religious conviction which lay
at the root of this approach to international affairs was shared, in varying
degrees, by the vast majority of the English political nation. Charles's
hearkening to the overtures of Spain would further offend this body of
opinion and deepen the distrust in which, among many, he was coming to be
held.
In the spring of 1629, Elizabeth of Bohemia wrote to Charles, and Frederick
to Dorchester, of what they said was their confidence that England would
make no peace with Spain without their full restitution, as Charles had
promised.80 Their anxiety was not unjustified. Charles had become interested
in peace. Among the influences turning him to Spain was his personal hatred
of the French, a passion which was now as strong as ever. His honour had
been wounded by the treatment of the Huguenots81 and he had no faith in the
French commitment to the Palatines or the general war. As Richelieu saw
clearly, Charles cared nothing for the overtures of France and wished to see
the outcome of his treaty with Spain. He had great hopes of Olivares and
pondered the possibility of an alliance with Spain against France.82
Early in 1629, Philip IV issued powers for the conclusion of separate truce
agreements with England and with the Dutch. Rubens was chosen as the
Spanish envoy to England because, as a painter, he could establish a personal
rapport with Charles. He left Madrid in April, having been briefed by
Olivares, and travelled via Brussels. He arrived in London in June and lodged
with his friend Gerbier.83 Charles had sent Gerbier to meet him at Margate,
79
SP84/139/fo. 96r-v, Dorchester to Vane, 10 Apr. 1629; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester',
pp. 2 8 2 , 2 9 2 - 3 ; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 3 4 2 - 5 .
80
SP81/35/fos. 172r, 174-175r.
81
Charles may not have abandoned the idea of giving further aid to the Huguenots; Reade,
Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. 446.
82
Ibid., iii, pp. xlvi, 4 4 7 , 4 6 8 ; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 3 3 3 - 5 , 3 6 6 ; AGS, E2519,
exp. 1 1 - 1 3 ; SP92/14/fo. 223r; SP84/139/fos. 60r-62r; Avenel, Lettres de Richelieu, iii,
pp. 4 7 7 - 8 ; Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii, pp. 4 5 3 - 4 .
83
Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii, pp. 445 and n, 446,450; A. J. Loomie,
'Olivares, the English Catholics and the peace of 1630', Revue Beige de Philologie et
Foreign policy 243
d'Histoire, xlvii, 4 (1969), p. 1157n; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 366, 368; Israel,
Dutch republic, pp. 226—7; Melbourne Hall, Coke Mss, bundle 37, newsletter of 5 June
1629.
84
Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. xlv—xlvi, 4 3 7 .
85
Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii, p. 4 4 6 ; Israel, Dutch republic, p. 2 2 7 ;
Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. 4 3 5 .
86
Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. 4 7 7 , 4 9 3 ; CSPV1629-32, pp. 4 5 , 7 0 , 1 2 3 ,
133,229, 267, 280, 332-3, 405-6; SP94/34/fos. 159r-160r.
87
Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii, p. 4 5 0 ; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty
Years War, iii, pp. 450, 452.
88
Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, p. 3 6 9 ; Archives Generates du Royaume (AGR), Brussels,
Secretaire d'Etat et de Guerre (SEG), liasse 2 0 8 , fo. 3 1 r - v , Philip IV t o Infanta Isabella,
2 2 Aug. 1 6 2 9 (n.s.) (I am grateful t o Simon Adams for bringing this document t o m y atten-
tion); Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, vi, 3 0 7 ; see also Reade, Sidelights on
the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. 4 5 0 - 1 .
89
CSPV 1629-32, p. 2 2 9 . See also ibid., pp. 1 3 3 , 2 0 9 .
244 Charles I and the road to personal rule
90
Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. 4 6 9 .
91
T o which Weston and Cottington replied in very gracious terms. AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 2 5 - 6 ; see
also Melbourne Hall, Coke Mss, bundle 3 7 , newsletter of 5 June 1629.
92
Melbourne Hall, Coke Mss, bundle 3 7 , newsletter of 5 June 1629; AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 2 3 ;
Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 2 7 9 ; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years Warf iii, pp. 4 4 5 - 7 .
93
AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 2 3 , statement of English terms in Weston's hand, French, deciphered,
exp. 24, Spanish translation; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 2 9 9 - 3 0 1 , 3 0 3 - 6 , 3 0 6 - 7 , 3 0 8 - 1 0 ,
3 1 0 - 1 2 . See also Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. 4 4 4 - 5 .
94
While the Dutch ambassador in England responded favourably to Charles's idea of English
mediation between Spain and the Dutch, this was after Charles had undertaken not to ally
with France against Spain pending a Spanish treaty, and when he and Rubens had agreed
upon the procedure for an Anglo-Spanish armistice. These understandings were reached
without the participation or consent of the Dutch, w h o objected t o Charles's talks with
Rubens. The States General never agreed to participate in the Treaty of Madrid. Denmark
Foreign policy 245
talks with London and the Hague both collapsed. With Charles's desire to
insist upon the restoration of the Palatinate, and with the chance that he
might yet show solidarity with the Dutch, that outcome could by no means be
discounted. A second Protestant West India company in England was a
terrifying possibility of which Rubens made Olivares aware. 101 The emperor
and Maximilian of Bavaria were informed of the dealings with Charles. They
were asked to send envoys to Madrid to participate in a general Anglo-
Habsburg settlement with Cottington. While Philip considered an Anglo-
Spanish alliance the proper price of concessions, he also professed to see the
justice of Charles's claims. As Olivares saw matters, if Spain were to risk a
continuation of the war in the north - a war in the interests of German
Catholicism insofar as it was for Frederick's continued exclusion - then
Ferdinand and Maximilian should bear their fair share of the burden and con-
clude an offensive and defensive alliance with Spain. The count-duke sought
to pressure the emperor and Bavaria as those who should accept responsi-
bility for, and justify, refusal of Charles's demands.102 Olivares was in fact
caught between Scylla and Charybdis. Desperate for peace with England and
unable to withstand any joint Anglo-Dutch terms, he could hardly relinquish
real assets in Germany, perhaps alienating the allies of Spain, in the course of
making peace with England alone - unless, that is, Charles made some
positive contribution to the Habsburg cause. With Spain at the wall in
Flanders, a war beginning in Italy and no certainty of wholehearted help from
the Empire, the count-duke was hopeful and fearful of Charles. The diplo-
matic game in which England was now a player was very much an open com-
petition. Others were to play it more skilfully than Charles.
International influences, in conjunction with Charles himself, were having
a profound effect upon English politics. Rubens' mission took Olivares'
designs and the directly divisive power of the European conflict into the heart
of political circles in London. There these wider forces played upon existing
political divisions. The secret negotiations between Charles and Rubens rep-
resented, as Rubens understood, the growing influence of the pro-Spanish
ministers at court and Charles's emerging desire for an alignment with
Spain.103 Weston deliberately excluded Dorchester and Holland from these
negotiations.104 As advocates of the French alliance and the Protestant cause
CSPV 1628-9, pp. 516, 518-19, 557, 590; CSPV 1629-32, p. 133; Magurn, Rubens
letters, pp. 335, 342-5; Israel, Dutch republic, p. 227.
AGS, E2519, exp. 1,29; Archives Generates du Royaume (AGR), Brussels, Secretaire d'Etat
de Guerre (SEG), liasse 208, fo. 31r—v (I am grateful to Simon Adams for this reference);
Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, pp. 451-2; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes,
pp. 264-5; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, p. 369.
AGS, E2519, exp. 10; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 303-6, 310-14, 324-30, 342-7.
Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 312-14; Birch, ii, p. 65.
Foreign policy 247
they might well have been able, once admitted to the discussions, to destroy an
Anglo-Spanish agreement with the majority of the Council opposed to one. 105
The Spanish negotiations ignited fierce factional strife over English policy.
The Hispanophile clique was in a definite minority.106 The pro-war group at
court, especially Dorchester, Holland and the French, Venetian and Dutch
ambassadors, worked tirelessly to discredit the dealings with Rubens. The
French ambassador Chateauneuf had orders from Richelieu to prevent the
conclusion of peace between England and Spain. The Venetian ambassador
Contarini, a professional anti-Habsburg lobbyist, was considered by Rubens
the greatest firebrand in Europe. This group advocated a French alliance and
a Parliament for the renewal of the war against Spain. Weston and Cottington
feared the Spanish negotiations would be their ruin. They thought Charles
had gone too far by undertaking not to ally with France while negotiating
with Spain, but could not prevent the king confirming his promise to Rubens.
Weston, surrounded by enemies, did not wish to be deprived of Cottington's
services by his mission to Spain for longer than was strictly necessary. The
Treasurer wrote to Olivares to this effect. In these circumstances, Rubens
believed it was all he could do to open negotiations and cursed the day he
came to England.107 His presence and dealings in London, following hard
upon the collapse of the last Parliament, increased suspicion of Weston's (and
Charles's) designs as well as the Treasurer's fear of the war lobby. English
politics thus fell victim to foreign influences and conflicts.108 Yet those influ-
ences also found a reflection in native perceptions of correct English policy
abroad as well as at home. 109 It is possible to discern in Rubens' talks the
emerging polarization of English high politics and the remaking of power
relationships at court under Charles. The king, when facing key decisions,
was inclined to exclude those who did not share his views. This weakened his
government and largely delivered him into the hands of partisans with whom
he felt secure.
In late 1629 Cottington went to Madrid to negotiate a peace.110 He seems
to have received no detailed instructions, beyond Charles's stated terms,
except to uphold his king's reputation. Yet he professed to serve Olivares and
105
Magurn, Rubens letters, p . 3 5 2 .
106
Melbourne Hall, Coke M s s , bundle 3 7 , newsletter of 5 June 1 6 2 9 .
107
Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 303-6,312-14,324-6,327-30,333-5,338-42,352-3; CSPV
1629-32, pp. 118,136,148; PRO 31/3/66/fos. 134v-135v ; SP77/19/fos. 329r-333r; AGS,
E2519, exp. 25-6; Avenel, Lettres de Richelieu, iii, pp. 420-1; Reade, Sidelights on the
Thirty Years War, iii, pp. 441,443-5; Knowler, Strafford letters, i, p. 51.
108
I a m grateful t o Sir Geoffrey Elton for this point.
109
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 2 8 6 - 7 . See also chapter 6, above.
110
Cottington left England, after delays, at the beginning of N o v e m b e r and arrived in Madrid
o n 1 January. SP94/34/fos. lOOr, 104r, 106r, 148r; CSPV 1629-32, p. 2 6 7 . Olivares w a s the
only senior Spanish minister w h o already k n e w Cottington personally; Elliott, Count-duke
of Olivares, p. 394.
248 Charles I and the road to personal rule
111
Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 324-6,342-5; AGS, E2562, 'prima conferencia' on treaty with
England, 14 Feb. 1630 (n.s.).
112
AGS, E2519, exp. 77. Coloma had been Spanish ambassador in England between
Gondomar's departure in 1623 and September 1624. I am grateful to Albert Loomie for
advice on this point. See also Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, p. 214.
113
AGS, E2519, exp. 70; SP94/34/fos. H O r - l l l r , 129r-v.
114
AGS, E2519, exp. 71, Coloma to Olivares, 7 Apr. 1630. See also ibid., exp. 77, and E2562,
Coloma to Infanta, 5 Dec. 1630 (n.s.); Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 324-6, 342-5; Birch, i,
p. 51.
115
AGS, E2519, exp. 114; SP77/19/fos. 329r-333r, 359r-v. Dorchester also worked against
the pro-Spanish and anti-French intervention of Savoy in the negotiations. Charles was
prepared to assist Savoy against France if necessary. Reeve, * Viscount Dorchester', p. 287;
AGS, E2519, exp. 99, and E2562, memo to Rozas of 28 Aug. 1630 (n.s.); Elliott, Count-
duke of Olivares, pp. 399-400.
116
SP94/34/fo. 138r, Dorchester to Cottington, 10 Jan. 1630.
117
PRO 31/3/66/fo. 241 v; Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii, p. 501; CSPV
1629-32, p. 269; AGS, E2519, exp. 71, 77; Archivo del Duque del Infantado, Madrid,
Palafox Mss, leg. 94, fo. 137 (I am grateful to John Elliott for this reference).
Foreign policy 249
disregard for the Dutch, played right into the hands of Olivares. Desperately
needing a settlement with England and in the Netherlands, and unable to
pressure the Dutch without help (not forthcoming) from the emperor and
Bavaria,118 the count-duke clearly aimed to draw Charles into a state of peace
with Spain without making significant concessions. An Anglo-Dutch front
united and giving no quarter without political satisfaction could threaten, at
this moment, to bring about the downfall of Spain. England, despite the
failures and miscalculations of the last half-decade, still had real power while
in a state of war. At peace she had none, and would immediately become
vulnerable to Spanish bartering of the destiny of the Palatines in exchange for
some positive contribution to the Habsburg cause.
Cottington made clear to Olivares, before he ever left England, how depen-
dent he and his mission would be upon the count-duke's trust and goodwill.
Given the opposition to the treaty in England, Cottington believed that its
failure would be his nemesis. He accepted the mission since he was ordered to
do so and (he said) out of obligation to Olivares. Just as he had worked with
Rubens to open negotiations, he would work with the government in Madrid
to secure an agreement. His statement that he would speak as a Spanish coun-
cillor as much as an English ambassador was, whatever else, the inspiration
of necessity.119 Cottington's situation and Charles's desire for a settlement
together profoundly affected the outcome. The result was a treaty favourable
to Spain which accommodated Charles in the general form rather than the
substance of the agreement. It was, within a pro-Spanish framework, a
compromise. Before that agreement could be reached, however, the obstacle
of Charles's stated terms for a settlement had to be overcome.
In late January 1630 Cottington had preliminary discussions with Philip
and Olivares in Madrid. With the ambassador's hands tied by Charles, the
Palatinate was the obvious stumbling-block. Philip stated his intention of
having the Palatines fully restored. Olivares inquired about the re-opening of
Anglo-Spanish trade, but Cottington stated that Charles needed some prior
satisfaction. Olivares professed that in exchange for the Palatinate Spain
required peace in the north, that is a settlement with the Dutch, by Charles's
mediation. Cottington opined somewhat rashly that the Dutch were resolved
to treat only in consultation with Charles.120 Olivares appeared troubled at
118
Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, vi, p. 307; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares,
p. 352.
119
Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 324-6,342-5; CSPV1629-32, p. 364.
120
This was the position under the Treaty of Southampton, but the alliance was being pro-
gressively undermined by the separate talks in Spain and the Netherlands. Ultimately the
Dutch resolved to treat without England (see below, p. 262). Cottington's antipathy to the
Dutch underlines the difficulty of his mission in which, initially, he had to express solidarity
with the alliance. Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 286; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years
War, iii, p. 496.
250 Charles I and the road to personal rule
this. Cottington correctly identified the issue in his despatch as the crux of the
matter. He grew sceptical of the prospects of success and suggested his
recall.121 Cottington may simply have wished to avoid compounding his
failure. He may also have been encouraging Charles to soften his stance. The
king's response was positive. Charles was delighted at Philip's willingness to
consider the restoration of the entire Palatinate. In this the Spanish king had
exceeded his expectations. Charles also wished to acquit himself of the Dutch
alliance. He ordered Cottington to persevere.122 Dorchester added a state-
ment on what he saw as the insincerity of the Spaniards. He favoured renewal
of the war and awaited the failure of negotiations.123 Olivares protested that
his intentions in Germany were sincere but argued that peace should precede
restitution. When the emperor and the duke of Bavaria refused to treat in
Madrid Cottington considered his mission aborted.124 Dorchester's state-
ment of the English position was, politically and diplomatically, difficult to
fault. It was Spain which had seized the Palatinate, and promises made to the
king's father concerning restitution had been broken. James had had no
alternative but war. The cause of war must needs be the cause of peace
and thus peace should be preceded by the lifting of the imperial ban placed
upon Frederick, by a Spanish undertaking to restore at least the Lower
Palatinate within a limited time and to intercede for full restitution and by the
authorization of Charles to mediate with the Dutch according to the last
Spanish terms offered them. This would achieve peace. The only alternative
was continuation of the war. For England to make peace upon lesser con-
ditions while retaining the war option would achieve nothing but separation
from her allies. The attitude of Austria and Bavaria was only to be expected.
This being the position, Dorchester informed Cottington that his recall was
imminent and expected the treaty to break.125
At this point, in early April 1630, Charles made a fatal error. He had
assured Frederick that he would not end hostilities without restitution.126
With Olivares' tactics becoming clear, he faced two choices. He could either
join with the Dutch to extract better terms or continue the war, or allow him-
121
For Cottington's account of these discussions see SP94/34/fos. 159r— 164v.
122
SP94/34/fos. 169r-170v.
123
SP94/34/fos. 190r-192v.
124
AGS, E2519, exp. 64; SP94/34/fos. 180r-184v, 198r-v; Lonchay, Correspondance de la
cour d'Espagne, ii, p. 510.
125
Dorchester's draft implies that he desired the restitution of the Lower Palatinate and the lift-
ing of the ban to be conditions of peace and security for full restitution, and that Charles
wanted a general undertaking and a time limit for the return of the Lower Palatinate to be
substituted. Frederick was declared an outlaw under the laws of the Empire in 1621. See
SP94/34/fos. 204r-207r; AGS, E2562, paper of Charles for Olivares, 2 0 Mar. 1630 (n.s.?);
Parker, Europe in crisis, p. 181; Parker, Thirty Years War, p. 65.
126
SP81/36/fo. 17r-v.
Foreign policy 251
127
SP94/34/fos. 207r, 2 1 2 r - 2 1 4 r ; SP84/141/fo. 186r; PRO 31/3/66/fos. 2 6 5 v - 2 6 6 v ; AGS,
E2519, exp. 7 0 - 1 , 7 3 , 77. See also ibid., exp. 46.
128
SP94/34/fos. 232r-235r.
252 Charles I and the road to personal rule
Cottington's account almost certainly exaggerated his own and the count-
duke's preparedness to risk a rupture of the treaty. Finally, when compared
with the external evidence of the Spanish documentary record, the ambassa-
dor's report makes a number of highly significant omissions.
On 23 April Cottington's reply to a Spanish paper reflected the principle
thus far underlying the English terms: Frederick's satisfaction should precede
the making of peace. Three days later the ambassador made an overture along
different lines. He was clearly acting upon Charles's letter of the 7th which
introduced a flexibility - and a willingness to compromise - into the English
position. Cottington proposed to Olivares that if Philip undertook to do his
best for the banished elector and to return the Rhine Palatinate (given that the
emperor lifted the ban at Philip's intercession), then Charles would recipro-
cate the king of Spain's generosity as it deserved. Cottington, now free to act,
had done what he knew was required for an agreement. He had sought to
persuade Charles of the merits of such an offer before ever having left
England. His proposal transformed the stalemate into an explosion of
initiatives. Olivares advised Philip that under certain circumstances it might
well be reasonable to restore the Rhine Palatinate. The count-duke was still
enamoured of the idea that Charles might bring the Dutch to satisfactory
terms. Within two weeks of having made his proposal of reciprocity, Cotting-
ton took the opportunity to suggest an Anglo-Spanish alliance against the
Dutch. On 10 May Olivares and the count of Onate were authorized to listen
to this proposal. The following day the count-duke's secretary Rozas replied
to Cottington that Philip would perform what was asked with regard to
Frederick once the Anglo-Spanish peace had been concluded. Surprisingly,
Cottington did not report this immediately to London. Two days later, on the
13th, he was told by Olivares that Philip was prepared to ally with Charles
against the Dutch. 129It was only then that Cottington, on the 14th, wrote to
Dorchester that the critical breakthrough in the treaty had been achieved. His
report made no reference to three essential aspects of the agreement which
was now in the making. He did not inform the Secretary (and through him the
war lobby) that he had actually acceded to a deferral of effective Spanish
action until after the making of peace, that he had offered the Spanish govern-
ment some form of quid pro quo and that he had successfully proposed an
alliance against the Dutch. Dorchester would have sought to raise strenuous
objections to all these measures. Cottington's account and his supposed
ultimatum could well have been a version of an encounter with the count-
duke prior to the breakthrough. It is difficult to believe that that account,
129
AGS, E2519, exp. 4 5 , 5 4 , 8 0 - 1 , 8 6 , and E2562, Cottington's response of 3 May 1630 (n.s.),
Hopton to Philip IV, 1631/2; SP94/34/£os. 212r-214r; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 343-4;
Gardiner, History, vii, p. 172; Loomie, 'Spanish faction', p. 39n.
Foreign policy 253
under the circumstances, was not dramatized for the conciliar audience in
England. Certainly it was not the whole story.
What, exactly, were the outlines of the new agreement? Charles would be
empowered to mediate with the Dutch and to bring them to a settlement
acceptable to Spain. He would not receive this authority until after the Anglo-
Spanish peace was concluded. In treating with the Dutch he was to make a
public declaration that his alliance with them was dissolved. Cottington's
proposal of an alliance against the Dutch was obviously an integral part of the
agreement. The prospective Spanish undertakings about German concessions
did not, however, depend at this point upon Charles's making war on the
Dutch. In 1630 Olivares held to his view that successful mediation by
England would be sufficient recompense for Spain. Yet armed intervention by
Charles was coming to be seen as a logical recourse in Madrid in the event of
the failure of diplomacy. Cottington's proposal of alliance would eventually
take the form of the famous Cottington Treaty of 1631. In time that alliance
would become an inextricable part of the Spanish terms for the restoration of
the Palatinate. Meanwhile the Anglo-Spanish peace treaty could go ahead.
Olivares decided to bypass a formal truce in favour of the conclusive peace
with England, on Spanish terms, now within his grasp. On 15 May, the day
after Cottington had penned his report, Philip wrote personally to Charles.
He stated that he would support Frederick's claims at the approaching
imperial Diet. He added that if the imperial ban declaring Frederick an out-
law were revoked (an important caveat which preserved Spain's freedom of
action), then he, Philip, would return the fortresses by which Spain controlled
the Rhine Palatinate. The hand of Olivares is clearly discernible behind the
linking of potential settlements in Germany and the Netherlands which ran
through the dealings with England. Before Cottington left Madrid he was
given to understand by the count-duke what the two men already knew: that
Spanish concessions would depend upon Charles's assistance in procuring a
satisfactory settlement in the Netherlands. 130 Olivares carefully preserved his
options with regard to the German Catholics, advising Philip that the
emperor and the League be assured that he would make no agreement with
Charles save on more beneficial terms than before the war with England.
Spain, in other words, would extract some significant advantage in return for
130
Almost certainly Olivares nursed the hope of Dutch recognition of Spanish sovereignty once
again. SP94/34/fos. 159r-164r, SP94/35/fos. 6r-10v; SP80/7/fo. 64r-v; SP84/140/fo. 223r;
AGS, E2519, exp. 4 9 , 6 1 , 6 3 , 7 4 , 87, 8 9 , 9 3 - 4 , 1 0 1 , 1 3 2 , unnumbered, E2562, Olivares to
Cottington, May 1630 (n.s.?), Coloma to Infanta, 5 Dec. 1630 (n.s.), Olivares in Council of
State, 13 July 1630 (n.s.), Onate in Council of State, 30 July 1630 (n.s.), consultas of 6 May,
30 July, 4 Nov. 1630 (n.s.), Council of State, 7, 9 Jan. 1632 (n.s.), undated consultas;
Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii, p. 534; Israel, Dutch republic,
pp. 10-11; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 172-3; Elliott, 'A question of reputation?', p. 479;
Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 372-3,403-5; Reeve, 'Quiroga's paper'.
254 Charles I and the road to personal rule
the concessions sought by Charles. Until then, as Olivares told Philip, any
Spanish undertakings should not be felt to be binding.131 Above all, the count-
duke had achieved the desperately needed breakthrough by the second week
of May. For Spain it came none too soon. Word had just arrived that the list
of military disasters had lengthened with the loss in February of Pernambuco
in Brazil to Dutch West India Company forces.132
Charles had allowed English interests to be manoeuvred into a position in
which Madrid could now call the tune. He does not appear, at least at this
point, to have realized that this was so. His hopes had been raised.
Dorchester's protests were to little or no avail. Charles immediately sent an
envoy, Sir Robert Anstruther, to the imperial Diet at Regensburg to test the
Spanish overtures. The emperor was beset by difficulties: conflict over the
religious issue in the Empire, the threat of Swedish invasion and the need to
enlist imperial support for the Habsburg wars in Italy and the Netherlands.
With Charles's virtual commitment to peace with Spain, Ferdinand's attitude
could only be uncompromising with no offer of an English quid pro quo. 133
Nevertheless, Charles, Weston, Cottington and the Spaniards all desired to
conclude the treaty in Madrid. Charles's political court had closed ranks with
Spain.134
The Anglo-Spanish treaty of peace was essentially a reaffirmation of that
which had ended the Elizabethan War in 1604. On the three most contentious
issues in which that treaty had favoured England, Spain was prepared to give
way in 1630. England was still permitted to provide military aid to the United
Provinces, English ships were allowed to enter West Indian waters and all
mention of the English Catholics was omitted from the articles. Olivares had
no desire to jeopardize peace with England by standing on such matters
particularly after Gustavus landed in north Germany in July.135 With the
treaty now drawn up, Cottington attempted to have its ratification made
conditional upon Charles's further consideration and approval. This the
131
AGS, E2519, exp. 5 2 , 86; Loomie, 'Peace of 1630', pp. 1 1 6 3 - 4 .
132
SP84/141/fos. 2 1 5 r - 2 1 6 r ; Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 2 0 2 - 3 . The winter of 1 6 2 9 - 3 0 also
saw Dutch expulsion of the Spanish garrisons from north-west Germany and the collapse of
the river blockade against the republic; Parker, Thirty Years War, p. 102.
133 sP94/34/fos. 204r-207r, 239r-240r, 249r-250r; AGS, E2519, exp. 49; Reeve, 'Viscount
Dorchester', pp. 2 9 8 - 3 0 0 ; Bireley, Religion and politics, pp. 1 1 3 - 1 4 .
134
AGS, E2519, exp. 8 1 , and E2562, consulta of 3 Dec. 1630(?) (n.s.), Coloma t o Infanta,
5 Dec. 1630 (n.s.).
135
AGS, E2519, exp. 8 9 - 9 0 , 9 6 , 1 0 2 - 3 , and E2562, Council of State, 2 6 July 1630 (n.s.), voto
of Onate in consulta of 30 July 1630 (n.s.); SP94/34/fos. 249r-250r, 265v, SP94/35/fos. 6 r -
lOv, 20r-21r, 39r-41v, 71r-75r; Loomie, 'Peace of 1630'; Adams, 'Spain or the Nether-
lands?', pp. 9 9 - 1 0 0 ; Parker, Thirty Years War, p. 123; Parker, Army of Flanders, p. 257;
Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, p. 4 0 3 .
Foreign policy 255
136
AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 104. Cottington w a s accused of upsetting an established agreement and
seeking to gain time. H e w a s probably attempting to evade responsibility for the negotiation.
137
See p . 1 8 6 , n. 7 9 , above. See also AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 1 1 4 , and E 2 5 6 2 , consultas of 2 6 July
1 6 3 0 , 2 5 Jan. 1 6 3 1 (n.s.), Coloma t o Infanta, 5 Dec. 1 6 3 0 (n.s.); SP94/34/fos. 2 3 2 r - 2 3 5 r ,
SP94/35/fos. 79v-80v; SP80/8/fos. 58r, 77v; SP81/36/fo. 127r-v; SP84/143/fos. 94r-95r;
CSPV1629-32, pp. 131,438,456; Birch, ii, pp. 91-2; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years
War, iii, p. 519; Larkin, Stuart royal proclamations, ii, pp. 306-7; Lonchay, Corre-
spondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii, p. 554; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 175-6; Alcala-
Zamora, Espana, Flandes, pp. 266—7.
138
SP84/141/fos. 307r-311r, SP84/142/fos. 28r-29r; SP81/36/fos. 113r-v, 127r-v; Reeve,
* Viscount Dorchester', pp. 292—3.
139
Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 2 2 7 , 2 3 8 , 2 4 4 ; Breslow, Mirror of England, p. 4 2 .
140
Gardiner, Constitutional documents, pp. 208-9.
256 Charles I and the road to personal rule
best; finally, there was the attraction of Spain, increased for Charles by its
being (to his mind) a means of escape from all he feared and detested: the
French, the Dutch, the political puritans, the recalcitrant common lawyers
and the amorphous and apparently menacing conspiracies against him at
home and abroad. Weston, Cottington and Laud had earned an indefinite
reprieve from the Parliament which they dreaded.141 Olivares, in his hour of
desperate need, had all but extinguished the Caroline crusade. But the citadel
had also been surrendered from within. A nation's, like an individual's,
capacity to fight is not only physical but spiritual also. Ideologically divided
and politically dislocated, England in 1630 had lost that capacity.
The Treaty of Madrid was the linchpin of a whole diplomatic edifice which
served to make England a non-combatant satellite of Spain. In late 1630
secret proposals were made to Charles for Anglo-Spanish naval co-operation
to the detriment of the Dutch. He told Coloma of his eagerness to implement
them, which indeed he soon did. When Dutch and Spanish vessels found
themselves together in the same English port, the stronger force was obliged
to wait at least two tides before pursuing the weaker. This greatly hindered
Dutch attacks and assisted Spanish supplies for the war in Flanders to
escape unmolested. Dutch prizes taken from Spain were sequestered in
English ports and Charles's government was able to suspend Admiralty
judgements against Spanish shipping. Dunkirk privateers were allowed to
shelter and refit in English and Scottish ports. These measures were a reversal
of the pattern by which the Dutch had enjoyed such privileges in England.
This was a particular handicap to the West India Company ships, which
needed the haven provided by England en route to the Netherlands. At sea the
English navy protected the Spanish convoys. The availability of the English
carrying trade, with the safety given by neutral vessels, complemented these
arrangements.142 Before leaving Spain, Cottington was given permission to
negotiate for the coining in London of a proportion of the silver sent by the
'English road' to pay the army of Flanders. It was public knowledge in
England that he had returned in the spring of 1631 with a load of bullion, thus
personally inaugurating this mutually advantageous Anglo-Spanish arrange-
ment.143 As it happened, these agreements were of greater practical conse-
quence than the notorious Cottington Treaty which they accompanied.
On 2 January 1631 Olivares and Cottington signed articles of alliance for
141
AGS, E2562, Coloma to Infanta, 5 Dec. 1630 (n.s.).
142
AGS, E2519, exp. 9 4 , 1 1 4 , 1 3 1 , andE2562, consulta o f 4 N o v . 1630 (n.s.); SP94/35/fos. 6 r -
lOv, 39r-41v, 71r-75r, 219r-v, 311v-312v; CSPV1629-32, pp. 426,438,461,467,484,
491, 502-3, 506, 541, 551; Loomie, 'Spanish faction', p. 38; Jones, Britain and Europe,
p. 23; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 298; see also chapter 6, above.
143
Green, Diary of John Rous9 p. 59; CSPV1629-32, pp. 458-9,471,480-1,490-1; Birch,
ii, pp. 100,103; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 177; see also p. 207, n. 166, above.
Foreign policy 257
joint Anglo-Spanish action for the conquest of the United Provinces. The
treaty made provision for the partition of those provinces and the ceding of
certain areas (to be agreed upon) to England. The English war effort would
be subsidized by Spain. The practice of the Roman religion was to be freely
allowed in those territories under English control. No similar guarantee was
inserted for Protestantism under the government of Spain. The articles
needed ratification by Philip and Charles, but the agreement was destined
never to be concluded. In England in 1629, Cottington and Rubens had
suggested to Charles that such an alliance would be appropriate compen-
sation for a Palatine restoration. While Charles believed that Frederick and
Elizabeth should be restored by right, and harboured the hope that this might
be so achieved, he hated the Dutch and certainly treasured the notion of lay-
ing them low. Clearly he authorized Cottington to hold discussions along
these lines and to formulate a possible agreement. From Olivares' point of
view, an Anglo-Spanish alliance against the Dutch would be ideal. The fall of
Bois-le-Duc in September 1629 recommended it more urgently. The count-
duke may well have been encouraged to believe in the efficacy of such an
enterprise by the successful conclusion of the peace treaty with the aid of the
Spanish faction in England.144
Charles, to be sure, would have contemplated the articles of the Cottington
Treaty with a mixture of glee and frustration. Militating against the satisfying
notion of an Anglo-Spanish victory over the Dutch were two very powerful
and virtually insuperable factors. One was the sheer authority, the economic
and military power of the Dutch, which implied an enormous risk in open
English action against them. (Charles's fear of the Dutch was well founded.)
The other was the fact of English Protestantism. Given the essential depen-
dence of English war finance upon parliamentary subsidies, this always stood
between Charles and full alliance with the Spain of Philip IV. It would require
another two decades of intensified Anglo-Dutch rivalry, the significant
growth of English power and the political complications of revolution in
England before an English government was prepared to engage in war against
the United Provinces. Cottington, in this sense, was ahead of his time.
Another consideration might have undermined concerted action by England
and Spain against the Dutch. Olivares was aware of the danger of replacing
Dutch with enhanced English power in the critical areas adjacent to Spanish
Flanders. An article of the Cottington Treaty would oblige England not to
144
Bodl. Lib., Ms Clarendon 5, fos. 38r-39r, 44r, 56r; AGS, E2519, exp. 114,139, and E2562,
Council of State, 7 Jan. 1632 (n.s.); CSPV 1629-32, p. 500; Magurn, Rubens letters,
pp. 343-4; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes, p. 265; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares,
pp. 403-5; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 176-7; M. J. Havran, Caroline courtier: the life of
Lord Cottington (London, 1973), pp. 96ff.; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 318.
258 Charles I and the road to personal rule
interfere with the sea approaches to Antwerp and Holland. The realities of
power politics and of international strategy could well intrude upon another
of Olivares' treasured schemes.145
The Treaty of Madrid, Philip's undertaking to Charles, the Cottington
Treaty and the Anglo-Spanish naval and financial agreements together
constituted a diplomatic package the achievement of which was, under the
circumstances, a recognizable coup. Cottington's career was boosted by his
mission which caused Charles to grant him a peerage. The episode had a
positive effect upon the king, pandering to his desire to damage the Dutch and
keeping alive his hopes of a German settlement freely recognizing Frederick's
rights.146 The reorientation of English foreign policy after 1630 was clear.
Favour to Spain was also evident in the generous rights to levy troops in
England and Ireland, the obstruction of French and Dutch fishing in English
waters and the low customs rates on Spanish goods re-exported from
England.147 In January 1631 Coloma reported the pleasure of his English
friends at the safe arrival of one of the Atlantic treasure fleets.148 In April the
Venetian ambassador in England, Giovanni Soranzo, wrote: 'there is no
doubt that they aim here at giving an advantage to the Spaniards in everything
possible . . . ' 149 In October Charles's envoy in Madrid, Sir Arthur Hopton,
described his master's foreign policy as pro-Habsburg.150 Dorchester com-
plained to Soranzo of the way in which England was spoken of abroad 'as if
it were altogether, so he put it, corrupted by the Spaniards . . . as if they [the
English] meant to join with them in making war on the States'.151 The actual
Cottington Treaty was apparently kept secret from all in England save
Charles and his closest Hispanophile confidants. Yet an alliance such as it
outlined was but the logical extension of the arrangements already being
implemented. The treaty, while never ratified, represents the complete
division of Charles's government on questions of foreign policy. Against the
English tradition of Protestant war, which saw the Dutch as endangered
145
Bodl. Lib., M s Clarendon 5 , fo. 39r; AGS, E 2 5 6 2 , consulta o n treaty with England, 4 N o v .
1 6 3 0 (n.s.), v o t o of Olivares, N o v . 1 6 3 1 ; Magurn, Rubens letters, p p . 3 4 3 - 4 ; CSPV
1629-32, p . 5 2 2 ; SP84/140/fo. 225r; Archivo del Duque del Infantado, Madrid, Palafox
M s s , leg. 9 4 , fo. 136v (I am grateful to John Elliott for this reference); Reade, Sidelights on
the Thirty Years War, iii, p . 4 9 6 ; Israel, Dutch republic, p . 3 9 8 ; Alcala-Zamora, Espana,
Flandes, p p . 2 6 5 n , 2 9 2 , 3 4 7 ; Jones, Britain and Europe, ch. 4 ; Elliott, Count-duke of
Olivares, pp. 293-5,332.
146
AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 1 1 4 ; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 1 7 7 - 8 .
147
AGS,E2519,exp. 131, and E2562, consulta of 15 Mar. 1631 (n.s.); CSPV 1629-32, p. 530;
Loomie, 'Spanish faction', pp. 42, 48; Kepler, 'Fiscal aspects of the English carrying trade',
pp. 265,279.
148
A G S , E 2 5 6 2 , C o l o m a t o Philip IV, 2 Feb. 1 6 3 1 (n.s.).
149
CSPV 1629-32, p. 493.
150 sP94/35/fo. 309r-v, Hopton to Weston, 23 Oct. 1631.
151
CSPV 1629-32, p. 530, Soranzo to the Doge and Senate, 22 July 1631.
Foreign policy 259
152
AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 1 3 4 , and E 2 5 6 2 , Council of State, 8 Mar. 1 6 3 0 (n.s.); Magurn, Rubens
letters, pp. 333—5, 342—5; H M C , 7th report, Appx, p . 5 4 8 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester',
pp. 2 8 6 , 3 1 9 ; Alcala-Zamora, Espaiia, Flandes, p p . 344—7; P. Haskell, 'Sir Francis
Windebank and the personal rule of Charles V (unpublished Southampton University PhD
thesis, 1 9 7 5 ) , ch. 6; Reade, Sidelights on the Thirty Years War, iii, p. 4 4 7 .
153
CSPV1629-32, pp. 4 9 2 - 7 ; C. V. W e d g w o o d , The king's peace 1637^1 (London, 1955),
pp. 1 1 7 - 1 8 ; Jones, Britain and Europe, p. 2 3 .
154
SP92/13/fos. 228r-229r, SP92/16/fo. 208r; SP84/137/fos. 255r-256r, SP84/142/fo. 207r;
SP81/35/fo. 218r-v.
155
SP84/140/fos. 180r-181r, SP84/141/fos. 74r-78r.
156
SP84/140/fos. 6 6 r - 6 9 v , 8 6 r - 8 7 r ; PRO 31/3/66/fo. 2 6 1 ; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 3 4 2 - 5 .
157
Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 342-5; SP84/141/fos. 98r-99r.
158
SP84/142/fos. 14r-20v, SP84/144/fos. 56r-57r; AGS, E2519, exp. 49; Israel, Dutch
republic, ch. 4 (v).
159
SP84/140/fos. 36r-40r.
260 Charles I and the road to personal rule
The spectacular military victories of 1628 and 1629, which had placed the
United Provinces in such a commanding position over Spain, had caused
Charles, Weston and Cottington the deepest regret.160 The king and those
most influential with him were utterly out of sympathy with the course of the
war in Flanders. This attitude, and the prospect of peace with Spain, governed
the instructions Charles issued to Vane when sending him on a mission to the
United Provinces in October 1629. Vane was to investigate the attitude of the
Dutch to a possible treaty with Spain by English mediation. His instructions
were pure Charles. They exhibit that blend of unctuous rectitude, devious
literalness, selfishness, pure ignorance, clear ideological preference and
rationalization of betrayal which rendered so many of Charles's political
endeavours positively destructive. The king believed, perhaps rightly, that the
current Dutch talks with Spain freed him of the Treaty of Southampton and
that he dealt with the Dutch by condescension. This belief was, however,
without regard to his own breach of faith in dealing with Rubens.161 Charles
told Vane that if the Dutch continued to treat separately he would consider
himself freed of obligation towards them. Otherwise he would treat by com-
mon consent and would include the interests of the Palatines, obtaining a
satisfactory settlement or resuming the war. 162 Vane left for the Hague at the
same time as Cottington for Spain. The Anglo-Dutch alliance was certainly
not beyond repair. Charles, however, broke an undertaking to the Dutch
ambassador Joachimi that the republic would be consulted before Cotting-
ton's departure.163 His intentions, moreover, were definitely deleterious to
Dutch interests. If the Dutch did not treat for peace on Charles's terms they
would be abandoned. Effectively they would be given no alternative. He did
not wish to be obliged by alliance to continue the war or to solicit their con-
sent to his negotiations. Charles, moreover, was clearly not averse to the idea
of an active alliance against them. 164 The drafts of Vane's instructions reflect
Dorchester's efforts to persuade the king of the value of the Dutch alliance,
but to no avail.165
Charles's choice of envoy was indicative. Vane sought favour and had an
160
Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 3 4 2 - 5 .
161
There is a prima facie case for a Dutch, as well as an English, breach of faith. The prince of
Orange responded positively to Spanish overtures of May 1629 by July. N o notice was given
to Charles (who had begun talks with Rubens in June) of this exchange. Before September
the prince told the English representatives in the republic that the Dutch were entitled to treat
alone since Charles had done s o . Israel, Dutch republic, p. 2 2 7 and n; SP84/140/
fos. 36r-40r.
162
SP84/140/fos. 101r-105v, 107r-121v; SP104/170, pp. 4 2 - 8 , instructions for Vane going to
the United Provinces, 18 Oct. 1629.
163
C S P V 1 6 2 9 - 3 2 , p. 162.
164
Ibid., pp. 1 6 1 - 3 ; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 334, 3 4 1 - 5 ; SP78/85/fo. 238r-v; PRO
31/3/66/fos. 176r, 239r-v; Bodl. Lib., Ms Clarendon 5, fos. 38r-39r, 44r, 56r.
165
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 2 9 5 - 6 .
Foreign policy 261
166
Vane was also connected to Cottington and Arundel. He had supported the idea of a Spanish
marriage. SP84/141/fos. 34r-37v, 70r-v, 74r-78r, 142r-143v, 192r-197r, 210r-211v,
SP84/142/fos. 32r-33r, 83r, 146r-147r, SP84/143/fo. 38v; DNB, s.v. Vane, Sir Henry, the
elder; CSPD1625-49, p. 336; Birch, ii, pp. 9 4 , 1 0 1 ; CSPV1629-32, p. 141; see also p. 182,
n. 56, above.
167
SP84/141/fos. 98r-99r.
168
Israel, Dutch republic, p. 174; Parker, Army of Flanders, pp. 2 5 6 - 7 .
169 170
SP84/141/fo. 286r-v. SP84/141/fos. 284r-286v.
171
SP84/140/fos. 36r-40r, 215r-216r, SP84/142/fos. 14r-20v, 32r-33r; CSPV 1629-32,
pp. 161-3,382,401-2,433, 513-14; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 176.
262 Charles I and the road to personal rule
cussion within the republic but otherwise had no positive impact on Dutch
views. 172 Eager to conclude the Treaty of Madrid, in September 1630 Charles
gave the Dutch an ultimatum: delay on their part would terminate his
negotiations with them.173 The States General made no reply before England
concluded peace with Spain and saw the Treaty of Madrid as extremely
damaging to Dutch and particularly English interests. Disillusioned with
England and wooed once more by Richelieu, the Dutch had concluded a new
subsidy treaty with France in June 1630 and agreed in May 1631 to con-
tribute (as France had begun to do) to the Swedish campaign. The States
General's answer to Charles was a foregone conclusion. They preferred to
treat without England. This they did, despite the continuation of the war,
throughout the 1630s. Spanish influence caused Anglo-Dutch relations to
worsen steadily and inflamed existing commercial and naval rivalry.
Dorchester worked to favour Dutch shipping, but Charles and Weston settled
into their policy of pro-Habsburg neutrality, which brought England and the
Dutch to the brink of war. The Anglo-Dutch alliance was dissolved and the
strategy of Olivares had succeeded.174 With his peace policy, Charles had for-
feited his position in the anti-Habsburg camp to France and Richelieu had
seized the chance to erect his own coalition.
While the face of European affairs had altered dramatically, and Charles
had turned from war to diplomacy, the political disorders in England had
given way to greater calm. The king enjoyed the absence of national crisis as
well as his domestic life.175 Yet he considered his honour engaged in the
Palatine cause. While he had great hopes of Spain, his search for a peaceful
settlement had still produced nothing by late 1630, and the case for war, his
stated alternative, was strong. Dorchester advocated the war, and Frederick
called for continued negotiations in Germany as well as aid to Gustavus.176
Vane equivocated but sought to warn Charles against the dangers of just such
a policy in 'this difficult after-game',
172 173
Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 237-8, 300. SP84/142/fos. 66r-67v.
174
If independent English and Dutch negotiations had not broken the Treaty of Southampton,
as both parties held they had, the conclusion o f the Treaty o f Madrid and the D u t c h refusal
of mediation and resolution t o treat separately w o u l d have d o n e s o and freed Charles of
obligation t o the United Provinces. Under the Treaty of Compiegne (1624) French subsidies
w e r e paid t o the D u t c h b u t were temporarily suspended w i t h a slump in Franco-Dutch
relations during the late 1 6 2 0 s . T h e Franco-Swedish Treaty o f Barwalde w a s concluded in
January 1631 (see below). See also SP77/20/fos. 27r-35v; SP78/87/fos. 182r-185r, 362r-v;
SP84/140/fo. 225r, SP84/141/fos. 291r-292r, SP84/142/fos. lOOv, 231r-232r, 236r-239r,
242r-243v, SP84/143/fos. 81, lOlr-v, SP84/144/fos. 61r-67r; PRO 31/3/66/fo. 272r-v;
CSPV 1629-32, pp. 438-9, 445, 466-7, 487, 525; Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 224-5,
236-49; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes, pp. 299-300,306,308-10; Parker, Thirty Years
War, pp. xxxii, 124; Wedgwood, Thirty Years War, p. 291; Birch, ii, pp. 175-6. See also
p. 256, n. 142 and p. 259, n. 153, above.
175
See chapters 5 and 6 , above.
176
SP16/173/49; SP84/142/fos. 253r-254r, SP84/143/fo. 29r-v.
Foreign policy 263
which . . . will either render you more glorious or more unfortunate than any of your
predecessors, whether God dispose your heart to peace or war . . . half ways will
neither settle your government at home nor keep friends abroad . . . 1 7 7
Having failed in war and thus far in peace Charles was unable to choose
between them. Fearing the implications of war and of failure he adopted,
during 1631, an equivocal position which involved a partial return to partici-
pation in the European war. But with events on the continent ripening for a
Palatine restoration by arms, or on the basis of negotiation from strength,
Charles would not recommit himself to the war. The failure of this equivocal
policy, which involved trying to play both sides in the German conflict,
caused him to be eclipsed by French and Swedish initiatives and led to
England's complete withdrawal from the Thirty Years War.
In the process of making peace, which Charles had come to prefer to war,
he had definitely reduced his military options. Glad to be rid of the Dutch, he
detested and suspected the French and had refused financial aid to the
Swedes. Charles thus found himself distanced from all the major anti-
Habsburg powers. He did sanction, as we have seen, British levies for
Gustavus, hoping by this limited contribution to keep the goodwill of the
Swedish king. He also entertained, briefly, French overtures for an alliance
against Spain and the emperor. Such an alliance was an unlikely and dubious
proposition from the English point of view, given Charles's commitment to
Spain and Richelieu's nationalistic — and Catholic - ambitions in the inter-
national sphere, particularly in Germany. Charles, however, out of prag-
matism and insecurity, negotiated with France during the winter of 1630-1.
These dealings came to nothing. It is difficult to believe that either party was
completely serious and that there was not a strong element of cynicism on
both sides. These dealings were part of the tangled web of Anglo-French
relations during this period, a subject in itself.
The Anglo-French war had left ill will between the two nations and paved
the way for French leadership against the Habsburgs.178 With the end of the
conflict, the possibility of an Anglo-French alliance was secondary to that of
an alignment between England and Spain. The French alliance solicited by
Chateauneuf in England in 1629 was prevented by Charles's undertaking
that pending a Spanish treaty he would not ally with France against Spain.
Richelieu had essentially offered an alliance to prevent an Anglo-Spanish
agreement. With France engaged in Italy, it was most unlikely that he would
have made any commitment to English ends in Germany. The French culti-
vation of Bavaria and the cardinal's reluctance to declare openly against
Spain were also obstacles to an Anglo-French alliance. Richelieu, however,
177
SP84/143/fo. 38v, draft of Vane to Charles, c. late 1630.
178
CSPV1629-32, pp. 251-2,310,464,470.
264 Charles I and the road to personal rule
continued to court England during 1629 and 1630. His overriding intention
was to divide London and Madrid. He was also interested in exploiting any
available English resources in the battle against the Habsburgs. 179
During this period, Anglo-French relations were affected by struggles of
faction and personality. These conflicts involved the competing interests of
England, France and Spain as well as those of certain individuals. In 1629 and
1630 the major foreign interests in English politics were those of France and
Spain as those two nations competed for England's favour. In 1631 inter-
national politics were complicated by Richelieu's crucial victory over his
domestic opponents: the French queen mother and Louis XIII's brother,
Gaston of Orleans.180 Both fled abroad, exporting the division in French
politics just as French influence was increasing in Europe. In England, as we
have seen, Henrietta Maria was a natural, while politically limited, focus of
French interests. Around her and the ambassador Chateauneuf gathered
those sympathetic to France and to Richelieu and antipathetic to Spain. Their
principal political opponent was of course Weston. Chateauneuf failed to
achieve an Anglo-French commercial agreement and later in France, as
Keeper of the Seals, was jealous of Fontenay, his successor as ambassador,
who became associated with Weston. 181 The Treasurer, wanting peace at
home and abroad, did not want England to become involved in the develop-
ing Franco-Spanish conflict by lapsing into war with France. He entered into
a correspondence with Richelieu in 1629 and 1630 which the cardinal seems
to have treated with suitable suspicion. Weston found it as convenient to
humour French overtures of alliance as Richelieu to make them. It was in the
latter's interest to minimize Anglo-Spanish conspiracy.182
Yet Weston could not prevent England from being significantly drawn into
the escalating Franco-Spanish contest. Charles's Spanish treaty had linked
him to the international enemies of Richelieu, particularly Marie de' Medici
who was deeply involved in Spanish intrigues. This caused Charles to be
caught in a cross-fire of political conspiracy. Olivares wished to turn England
179
Avenel, Lettres de Richelieu, iii, p. 432-3,447,503-7,671-3; AMRE, CPA, 44, fos. 70r-v,
75r-76v, 92r; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 304,315-16,346-7; PRO 31/3/66/fos. 148r-v,
158r-v; SP78/84/fos. 124, 158v, 231, SP78/86/fo. 4; SP84/141/fos. 171-173r; SP92/18/
fos. 140r-142v; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 324-5,330-2.
180
Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 2 0 5 - 6 .
181
AMRE, CPA, 4 4 , fos. 296r-v, 303r; SP16/193/51; SP78/86/fo. 3 5 9 r - v , SP78/89/fos.
338r-340r, SP78/90/fo. 128r-130r; PRO 31/3/67/fos. 16r-18v, 20r-v, 23r-25r, 32r, 35r;
CSPV 1629-32, pp. 141-3,311,314-15,585; Magurn, Rubens letters, p. 486n; Gardiner,
History, vii, pp. 184—6; Hibbard, Popish plot, p. 3 2 ; Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer,
p. 156. On Henrietta Maria's circle see also chapter 6, above.
182
AMRE, CPA, 4 3 , fos. 47r, 338r-v, and 4 4 , fos. 44r, 70r-v, 7 5 r - 7 6 v , 292r; Avenel, Lettres
de Richelieu, iii, pp. 5 0 3 - 7 , 671—3; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 315n; Gardiner,
History, vii, pp. 184,186, 217-19.
Foreign policy 265
183
Marie de 1 Medici actually went to England in 1638. SP78/87/fos. 4 5 3 r - v , 486r, SP78/89/fos.
227r, 336r, 357r-358r, SP78/90/fos. 27r-28v, 128r-130r, 187r-189v, 206r, 236r-238r,
240r-241r; SP84/143/fo. 186r-v; SP94/35/fo. 2 6 3 ; SP77/20/fos. 55r-57r, 168r,
169r-171v, 214r-215r, 326r-328r, 401r; PRO 31/3/67/fos. 22r, 24r; CSPV 1629-32,
pp. 4 8 4 , 4 9 2 , 500, 5 2 8 - 9 , 536 , 542, 5 8 1 - 2 ; SP16/190/18, SP16/193/44; AGS, E2519,
exp. 133; Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 1 3 3 - 4 ; Birch, ii, pp. 1 0 - 1 1 , 1 2 2 - 3 ; Magurn,
Rubens letters, pp. 334, 3 4 3 - 4 ; Green, Letters of Henrietta Maria, pp. 1 2 - 1 3 ; Gardiner,
History, vii, pp. 1 8 6 - 7 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 307.
184
SP78/90/fos. 17r-18r, Dorchester to Wake, 10 Aug. 1631.
185
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 3 0 2 - 3 , 3 0 8 - 1 0 , 3 1 2 - 1 3 .
266 Charles I and the road to personal rule
186
Richelieu, in Louis's name, forbade Madame de Rohan to marry her daughter to the eldest
son of Frederick of Bohemia unless, apparently, the daughter left France; SP78/89/fo. lOOr.
On the Anglo-French negotiations in 1 6 3 0 - 1 see AMRE, CPA, 4 4 , fos. 236r-237r,
257r-258r, 290r; AGS, E2519, exp. 1 2 0 - 1 , and E2562, Coloma to Philip IV, 2 Feb. 1631
(n.s.), consulta of 15 Mar. 1631 (n.s.); Avenel, Lettres de Richelieu, iv, pp. 40—1; Magurn,
Rubens letters, p. 346; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 3 0 9 - 1 2 , 3 1 4 - 1 6 .
187
Richelieu concluded the Swedish alliance immediately upon hearing that the Mantuan war
had been ended by an agreement at Regensburg. The Treaty of Barwalde was officially an
alliance for 'the restitution of the suppressed Estates of the Empire*. It provided for respect
for Catholic worship in conquered areas where it already existed. SP78/88/fos. 1 5 5 - 6 ;
SP84/143/fos. 9 7 - 8 ; Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 2 1 8 - 1 9 ; Parker, Thirty Years War,
pp. 1 1 9 - 2 0 , 1 2 4 - 5 , 1 2 8 ; Wedgwood, Thirty Years War, pp. 2 7 8 - 9 ; Gardiner, History, vii,
p. 179. When Gustavus intervened in Germany after 1630 he had Russian as well as French
and Dutch support; Parker, Thirty Years War, p. 80.
Foreign policy 267
support for the expedition was grossly inadequate. Charles had provided a
modest sum of between £20,000 and £40,000, which could really only gather
and launch the force.188 Hamilton's men would effectively be dependent upon
Gustavus for the indefinite future. Strictly speaking, Charles was not
responsible internationally for the consequences of the expedition, since
Hamilton was arguably acting as a private individual. Yet Charles fancied
that this qualified recommitment to the war would prompt Habsburg con-
cessions while serving to restrain the Swedish king. For Charles was also
offering his services as an arbitrator and peacemaker in the German con-
flict.189 His policy during 1631 was thus thoroughly equivocal. He was,
however, insufficiently involved to affect the outcome of events, particularly
when Swedish victories greatly altered the situation and escalated the
German war. Gustavus wished to restore Frederick and looked to England,
but Charles's refusal of aid in 1630 had forced him to ally with the French
whom he distrusted. He continued to solicit and obviously would have pre-
ferred an English alliance.190 Charles was urged on by Hamilton, Dorchester
and Roe. Weston was horrified at the possible revival of a war policy and
desperately worked against it. 191 The potential Anglo-Swedish alliance
became the subject of a political battle in England during the winter of
1631-2: a contest which would confirm the orientation of the Caroline
regime.
Hamilton's contribution to the continental war was less than dis-
tinguished. Gustavus sent him, in the autumn of 1631, to guard the fortresses
at the mouth of the Oder in Silesia while the Swedes engaged the army of the
League. Hamilton's force was then involved in the blockade of Magdeburg
before it was abandoned by the enemy. By the end of 1631, however, that
force had almost ceased to exist. Ill provided for, the men fell mass-victims to
famine and disease. Estimates of their able number at that time went as low
188
SRO, Hamilton Mss, nos. 123-4, 141, 145-7, 158, 206, 9255, 9273, 9277, 9320, 9322,
9337,9360,9631,10444-53,10464-7; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 414-15,537-8,550-1; Birch,
ii, pp. 87-8, 100, 102; Searle, Barrington family letters, pp. 197, 217; SP84/143/fo. 217r;
BL, Harl. Ms 6988, fo. 89r-v; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 174-5,178 and n, 181-3; Parker,
Thirty Years War, pp. 195-6; DNB, s.v. Hamilton, James, third marquis and first duke of
Hamilton; Clarendon, Rebellion, vol. iv, p. 491.
189
SP75/12/fos. 2 0 4 r - 2 0 9 v , Charles's instructions to Vane for his mission to Denmark, Sweden
and Germany, Sept. 1 6 3 1 . See also SP80/7/fos. 2 1 7 r , 2 1 8 r - v , 234v, 2 8 0 r - v ; SP81/36/
fos. 2 1 4 r - 2 1 5 r ; Gardiner, History, vii, p p . 1 7 5 , 1 7 8 ; Reeve, 'Quiroga's paper', p. 9 2 2 ;
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 3 2 6 - 7 .
190
SP84/144/fos. 31v, 77r-v; SP88/5/fos. 186-7; SP95/3/fos. 60r-61r, 81r, 128r-v; SP75/11/
fos. 262v-263r, 272r; SP78/90/fo. 221v; SRO, Hamilton Mss, nos. 9256-7, 9298,10445.
191
Weston attempted unsuccessfully to smear Hamilton with treason. Gardiner, History, vii,
pp. 182-3; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 302,322-3; Alexander, Charles Fs Lord Tre-
asurer, pp. 180-1; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 537-8; SRO, Hamilton Mss, nos. 209,231-2,242,
267.
268 Charles I and the road to personal rule
192
SP81/37/fo. 176v; SP95/3/fos. 148r-149r, 167r-v; DNB, s.v. Hamilton, James, third
marquis and first duke of Hamilton; Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 202—3; Gardiner,
History, vii, pp. 1 9 0 - 1 ; SRO, Hamilton Mss, nos. 233, 9 2 4 5 - 6 , 9248, 9250, 9 3 5 5 - 8 ,
9361-2,9368,10454,10457-9.
193
SP95/3/fos. 148r-149r, Dorchester to Hamilton, 13 N o v . 1631. The brutal sacking of
Magdeburg and the accompanying slaughter, in May 1 6 3 1 , was without parallel in the
Thirty Years War. Wedgwood, Thirty Years War, pp. 2 8 6 - 9 1 ; Parker, Thirty Years War,
p. 125.
194
AGS, E2519, exp. 139; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 191.
Foreign policy 269
Bavaria, the Treaty of Fontainebleau, which placed the electoral title and the
Upper Palatinate under French protection in the interests of Maximilian and
his heirs.195 French ambitions in Germany had become a potent threat to the
Habsburgs.
Moreover, Ferdinand's intention to uphold the imperial Edict of Resti-
tution implied a deepening religious war in Germany. The Swedish advance
was fanning the flames of such a conflict with each new day. Gustavus had
raised the banner of Protestantism and increasingly recognized only friend
or foe.196 In Madrid this appeared a highly dangerous development and a
threat to the overall imperial interests of Spain. Olivares did not relish the
prospect of diverting precious forces from Flanders to fight the Swedes in a
conflict which was serving to advance heresy and the ends of the anti-
Habsburg powers. Gustavus was threatening the political existence of
Catholic Germany and the safety of the imperial patrimonial provinces. The
ending of the Mantuan war with the Peace of Cherasco (in April 1631)
enabled a transfer of Spanish troops and resources away from Italy. Yet Spain
was once again preoccupied with two conflicts. Olivares wanted a negotiated
settlement in Germany to consolidate the Spanish position in the north. His
principal aim in early 1631 was to recover stability in Flanders and to
strengthen the Infanta's regime against the expected Dutch assault. This
strategy, and the need to defuse the German religious war, involved a political
effort to win over or remove Lamormaini. The emperor's confessor was the
most powerful hawk in Vienna and was clearly in collusion with Bavaria.197
In this complex and potentially explosive situation, Spain could afford less
than ever to satisfy Charles without some notable advantage in return. The
restoration of the Calvinist Frederick to his title and lands in such a strategi-
cally vital region would be naked provocation of both Maximilian and
Richelieu. It might also offer a prize hostage to fortune as the destiny of the
Empire - and of German Catholicism - evolved. Yet it was the earnest hope
of Olivares that affairs in Germany and the Netherlands might be managed
together for the advancement of Habsburg interests: England and Spain
might solve the eternal problem of the Dutch. Philip wrote to the Infanta in
195
In 1623 Maximilian was invested with the electoral title for life only. SP80/7/fos. 1 8 0 r -
183v, 221r-229r, 271r-v, SP80/8/fos. 5r-6v, 38r-39v, 58v; SP94/35/fos. 292r-293r;
SP103/10/fos. 181-189; Magurn, Rubens letters, pp. 343-4; Reeve, 'Quiroga's paper',
pp. 916, 921; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 329-30; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 179;
Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 119-20; Bireley, Religion and politics, pp. 4,160.
196
Bireley, Religion and politics, pp. 2 5 , 1 6 6 - 7 , 1 7 1 ; Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 1 1 3 - 1 6 ,
1 1 8 , 1 2 7 - 8 . On the Edict see p. 236, n. 50, above.
197
AGS, E2562, voto of Olivares, Nov. 1631; Bireley, Religion andpolitics, pp. 1 6 0 - 5 , 1 6 6 - 7 ,
1 7 8 - 8 2 , 184; Israel, Dutch republic, pp. 181, 1 8 4 - 5 , 2 3 7 - 8 ; Elliott, Count-duke of
Olivares, p. 405; Elliott, Richelieu and Olivares, pp. 1 1 3 , 1 1 7 - 1 8 , 1 2 0 ; Parker, Thirty Years
War, p. 109.
270 Charles I and the road to personal rule
May that if Charles could perform such a service, Spain would deliver the
Lower Palatinate to Frederick. Olivares continued to write to Charles and
Cottington during the summer of 1631. By the autumn, England's failure to
act was becoming a sore point in Madrid.198 And while Habsburg anxiety
grew with the Swedish advance, Hamilton's role did not facilitate Charles's
negotiations. The presence of English troops with the Swedish army was
resented in both Spain and Vienna.199
In late August it was clear that dramatic developments were approaching
in Germany. The imperial Diet at Frankfurt Was nearing deadlock, with the
Saxon delegates insisting upon the suspension of the Edict of Restitution, the
exclusive exercise of Protestantism in cities where then practised and the year
1620 as the touchstone for settling all questions of Catholic ecclesiastical
property.200 As the outlook for political compromise deteriorated, the mili-
tary situation was hotting up. The army of the League under Tilly, desper-
ately short of provisions, faced the prospect of confronting Gustavus.
Trapped between the two forces were the lands of the Lutheran elector, John
George of Saxony. In August he refused to allow Tilly to enter his territory,
nor would he disband his army as the general requested. The Catholic forces
entered Saxony on 25 August and started to lay waste the land. John George
reluctantly committed treason against the emperor and immediately allied
with Sweden. In Vienna word arrived from Tilly that unless he received
money and supplies he would be forced to retreat to the gates of the capital.
John George's defection was virtually inevitable in the event of his coming
under Catholic attack.201
In this emergency, the Spanish ministers in Vienna made some startling
revelations to Anstruther.202 The English ambassador, as instructed, had been
seeking a lifting of the imperial ban and the restoration of at least the Lower
Palatinate on the basis of the peace made with Spain and the undertaking
given by Philip to Charles in favour of Frederick. This reflected Charles's
belief that the war with Spain was a struggle justified by right which would
be properly ended in fair exchange for Frederick's restitution. There was,
however, no incentive for Spain to act for England in the Empire until
198
Philip also asked Scaglia to discover Charles's views on possible intervention in France.
Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour d'Espagne, ii, pp. 576—7, 5 7 9 ; SP80/8/fos. 4 4 r - 4 9 v ;
AGS, E2519, exp. 131, and E2562, voto of Olivares, N o v . 1 6 3 1 ; Parker, Thirty Years War,
pp. 108-9.
199
SP94/35/fos. 199r-v, 252r-253v, 262r-263v, 272r-273r; AGS, E2519, exp. 136, and
E2562, voto of Olivares, Nov. 1631; CSPV1629-32, pp. 5 3 7 - 8 .
200
Bireley, Religion and politics, pp. 1 6 7 - 8 .
201
The alliance between Sweden and Saxony was signed o n 1 September. Ibid., p. 168;
Wedgwood, Thirty Years War, pp. 279ff., 2 9 3 - 4 ; Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 1 1 5 - 1 6 ,
1 1 8 , 1 2 3 , 1 2 5 - 6 ; SP80/8/fo. 25v.
202
This episode is discussed at greater length in Reeve, 'Quiroga's paper'.
Foreign policy 271
203
The apparent ambiguity of the paper given to Cottington w a s doubtless to preserve the
honour of both England and Spain in the form of the peace. For the text of Quiroga's paper
see Reeve, 'Quiroga's paper'. See also AGS, E 2 5 2 0 , Council of State, 7 Jan. 1 6 3 2 (n.s.), and
E 2 5 6 2 , Council of State, 2 0 N o v . 1 6 3 1 (n.s.), voto of Olivares, N o v . 1 6 3 1 , Hopton to
Philip IV, 1 6 3 1 - 2 ; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, pp. 3 9 4 - 5 , 3 9 8 , 4 0 3 , 4 2 4 , 4 5 8 , 4 6 7 ;
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 3 2 9 .
204
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 3 2 7 ; Reeve, 'Quiroga's paper', pp. 9 2 0 - 2 .
205
Reeve, 'Quiroga's paper', p. 9 2 1 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 3 2 7 ; Magurn, Rubens let-
ters, pp. 3 4 3 - 4 ; CSPV1629-32, p. 5 3 7 ; SP80/8/fo. 77v; AGS, E 2 5 1 9 , exp. 1 4 1 , and E 2 5 6 2 ,
Council of State, 2 0 N o v . 1631 (n.s.).
272 Charles I and the road to personal rule
remains that Charles, while aware of the arrangements made against the
Dutch and their obvious relevance to his own ambitions, chose to separate the
two against all political sense and every source of contrary advice. Now that
combination of royal naivety, rectitude, fear and ideological preference was
confronted by reality. Yet even Quiroga's unadorned statement did not cause
Charles to shed his illusions. It did, however, encourage his preparedness to
equivocate in the European war. He promptly set about exploring dealings
with Sweden.206
On 7 September, at Breitenfeld near Leipzig, Gustavus inflicted a shattering
defeat upon the army of the League under Tilly. The League treasury was
captured in the Catholic retreat. Central and South Germany lay open to the
conqueror from the north. Alsace, the key to the 'Spanish road' to Flanders,
was also endangered. By the spring Gustavus would be in Munich. Breiten-
feld halted the advance of the Counter-Reformation and redressed the
balance of power between Protestant and Catholic. The victory also escalated
the war. It thus made a Palatine restoration virtually impossible during any
foreseeable future failing a substantial English commitment to the war. 207 Yet
Breitenfeld had dramatically increased the options for Charles if he wished to
pursue them. Of this the Spaniards became all too aware in the weeks after the
Swedish victory. Scaglia went to England in September as the official envoy
of Philip IV. His brief was apparently to negotiate along the lines of
Cottington's agreement.208 He endeavoured to extract from England a
definite commitment to war with the Dutch. Charles told the abbe that whilst
his sympathies were with Spain in the Low Countries, he feared the Dutch
and was reluctant to declare openly against them. The king, Weston and
Cottington favoured the idea of English troops being allowed to serve the
emperor, and Scaglia obtained permission to levy in England. Charles also
told the abbe that he felt no commitment to Gustavus's aims in Germany. It
was obvious, however, that he wished to see the outcome of the Swedish
king's campaign, and Scaglia's negotiations were soon defunct. The abbe
206
AGS, E2519, exp. 141; SP75/12/fos. 204r-209v; SP80/8/fos. l l O r - l l l r ; CSPV1629-32,
p. 5 4 3 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 327.
207
The threat to the Habsburg lands renewed the political ascendancy of Spain in Vienna, and
the Rhine Palatinate remained occupied by Spanish troops. Parker, Thirty Years War,
pp. 1 2 6 - 7 , 129; Parker, Army of Flanders, p. 257; Parker, Europe in crisis, p. 2 2 4 ;
Wedgwood, Thirty Years War, pp. 2 9 5 - 3 0 3 , 3 1 9 ; Howard, War in European history, p. 58;
Bireley, Religion and politics, pp. 1 6 9 - 7 7 , 186; Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, p. 430;
H M C , 7th report, Appx, p. 547.
208
The Spanish agent Necolalde had been holding inconclusive talks on the Palatine question
since the summer. On Scaglia's arrival his negotiations took precedence. AGS, E2519,
exp. 1 2 4 , 1 3 2 , and E2562, Council of State, 2 0 Nov. 1631 (n.s.); CSPV1629-32, pp. 5 3 1 ,
549; Birch, ii, p. 129; Reeve, 'Quiroga's paper', p. 921n.
Foreign policy 273
observed how Charles could not bring himself to terminate the talks with
Spain.209
Hearing in Madrid that Charles rejected Quiroga's statement and that
Scaglia's talks had proved fruitless, and contemplating the news of the
Swedish victory at Breitenfeld, Olivares drafted a long and troubled opinion
for his king on the possible options for Spain in Europe. The count-duke
found this a problem, as he said, of the greatest difficulty. He was attempting
to integrate diplomatic propriety and Spanish honour with the compound
problem of Anglo-German politics, with military disaster and with the
religious dimension of the German war. Olivares' first priority was still the
Netherlands, inseparable to his mind from the German question. What he
still wanted from Charles was a satisfactory settlement with the Dutch, which
end (he realized) would probably involve England in war. (The Dutch had
already once refused Charles's diplomatic mediation, and Olivares had never
wished for a truce.) Charles's fear of the Dutch could be overcome if his
declaration of war were sufficient to frighten them into submission. Olivares
also felt the need for an English alliance with the emperor. Yet the Anglo-
Spanish league against the Dutch was his basic price for the restoration of the
entire Palatinate. English assistance against the Dutch would outweigh the
competing factor of Bavarian interests. The count-duke would have preferred
a compromise, by which England might be satisfied with the Lower
Palatinate, leaving room for Maximilian's compensation. The duke still
deserved consideration as an hereditary Catholic prince, and the danger of his
defection to save his lands was all too real. Olivares' concern for Bavaria was
encouraged by the hardening of his attitude towards Charles. He now saw the
English king as an opportunist, perceiving Charles's new equivocation in the
German war. The count-duke wished to separate the English and Saxon from
the Swedish heretics. This would avert the restoration of Frederick by arms
and the ruin of Christianity. Olivares' verdict, amidst his vexation, made one
thing fully clear. The Protestant revolution in Germany had underlined his
resolve not to compromise with Charles. Philip endorsed this position. 210
As winter came and Gustavus marched southwards, celebrating Christmas
209
Scaglia was reported to be on intimate terms with the Spanish faction. CSPV 1629—32,
p. 549; AGS, E2519, exp. 1 3 9 , 1 4 1 , E2562, Council of State, 20 Nov. 1631 (n.s.); AMRE,
CPA, 44, fo. 341r; Lonchay, Correspondance de la com d'Espagne, ii, p. 590; Gardiner,
History, vii, p. 190.
210
AGS, E2562, voto of Olivares, N o v . 1631; Lonchay, Correspondance de la cour
d'Espagne, ii, p. 604. See also AGS, E2562, voto of Olivares on despatches of Necolalde,
11 Sept. 1631 (n.s.), consulta of Olivares, 22 Dec. 1631 (n.s.), Council of State, 9 Jan. 1632
(n.s.), Hopton to Philip IV, 1631/2; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', p. 327; Parker, Thirty
Years War, pp. 5 6 - 7 , 1 1 9 ; Wedgwood, Thirty Years War, pp. 314ff.; Elliott, Count-duke of
Olivares, p. 3 9 1 ; Bireley, Religion and politics, pp. 6,245; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes,
p. 292; BL, Add. Ms 24,909, fo. 237v.
274 Charles I and the road to personal rule
1
SP81/37/fo. 77r-v.
2
Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 6-7; SP80/8/fo. 79r; SP81/37/fos. 65r-v, 71r-72r, 79r,
81r-83r, 108r; CSPV1629-32, p. 558.
3
SP80/8/fo. 79r, Dorchester to Anstruther, 16 Oct. 1631.
4
SP95/3/fo. 128r-v; Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 212; Birch, ii, pp. 129-30,138.
275
276 Charles I and the road to personal rule
5
SP75/12/fos. 204r-209v; SP16/203/108, SP16/204/107, SP16/533/61; SP80/8/fos. 77r-79r;
SP81/37/fo. 123r; SP95/3/fo. 132r; CSPV1629-32, p. 555; DNB, s.v. Vane, Sir Henry, the
elder; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 175; Alexander, Charles I's Lord Treasurer, p. 174; Birch,
ii, pp. 123, 140, 153-4,161; SRO, Hamilton Mss, no. 187; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester',
p. 332.
6
SP81/37/fos. l l O r - l l l r .
7
CSPV 1629-32, pp. 555, 588, 592; SP94/35/fos. 329r-v, 331v-333r, 335r-336r; SP8O/8/
fos. 77r-79r; SP75/12/fos. 210r, 252r-253v; SP81/37/fos. 104r-106v, 108r, 167r-168r,
SP81/38/fos. 19r-20r; SP16/203/108, SP16/204/72, SP16/204/107, SP16/211/18,
SP16/533/61; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 188,196.
8
AGS, E2519, exp. 141; SP78/89/fos. 357r-358r, SP78/90/343r-344r, 345r-v, 472r-473v,
474r-475r, 476r-478r; SP78/91/fos. 24r-27r, 39r-44v; SP81/37/fos. 157r-158r, 233r-
236r; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 575, 588; Wedgwood, Thirty Years War, p. 284; Elliott,
Richelieu and Olivares, pp. 119,124,155; Howard, War in European history, p. 62; Bireley,
Religion and politics, p. 185; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 179.
Decision 277
play two games so contrary.' With the religious dimension of the war inten-
sifying, Richelieu's investments lay on both sides.9
It was Gustavus who, predictably, formulated the dilemma for Charles.
Sweden's program in Germany included Frederick's eventual restoration
to the Palatinate.10 Gustavus saw this as part of an ultimate and satisfactory
settlement of Germany. The Swedish king, however, had a definite view of the
nature of that settlement and no intention of countenancing the elector's
unconditional restoration. Full of the pride of victory, and imbued with what
has been called an 'inexorable' political realism,11 Gustavus was aware that
for the indefinite future he needed neither Frederick nor England enough to
be forced into concessions he saw as unreasonable. With or without
Frederick, he wanted to secure the resources, strategic position and political
solidarity of the Palatinate for Sweden and her aims. He also wished to elim-
inate any independent English influence in Germany, rightly seeing Charles as
unreliable (although thinking him preferable to the French). Finally, he
wanted the Anglo-Palatine interest to bear its share of the cost of the war in
proportion to its resources and in the light of its likely rewards. He would,
therefore, treat Frederick with respect for his royal rank and political
potential. But he would also insist upon alliances, with Charles and with the
elector, which involved real military assistance and subordinated their
interests to his. Gustavus's interlocking priorities were the rights of Lutheran-
ism, the cause of German Protestantism and the enhancement of Swedish as
well as of his own personal power. 12
In November 1631 the Swedish forces were approaching the Palatinate,
and Gustavus was interested in an English alliance and a Palatine restoration.
In mid-November, Vane wrote from the Swedish camp that if Charles gave
Gustavus substantial support in money and men the Swedish king would
commit himself to fight for Frederick's restoration. Gustavus also wanted
Frederick to join him in Germany. The elector asked for military aid from
Charles and permission to leave the Hague. This appeared to be and was
indeed his best chance for salvation. Without English resources, however, he
was essentially powerless. The Swedish alliances in Germany did not mention
him, and his ultimate fate might depend upon an immediate English commit-
ment. Without it, he could not influence Gustavus, would be excluded from
9
SP78/91/fos. 40v-41r, Wake to Dorchester, 30 Jan. 1632; AGS, E2519, exp. 141, and
E2562, Council of State, 20 Nov. 1631 (n.s.); see also SP75/12/fo. 213r.
10
Frederick's restoration to the crown of Bohemia seems to have become a separate question.
Gustavus, in the end, apparently countenanced the idea of the crown's being given to
Wallenstein; Roberts, Gustavus Adolphus, ii, pp. 421-2, 575, 610-11, 616-17, 679-80,
749-51.
11
Ibid., pp. 617-18.
12
Ibid., pp. 610-18; Rushworth, Historical collections, ii, p. 169.
278 Charles I and the road to personal rule
any negotiations and exposed to French designs. Vane told Charles that, if he
were to opt for war, it was now or never. He awaited further instructions.13
Gustavus was now more than any man the arbiter of Germany. He was
advancing on Heidelberg, the Palatine capital, at the beginning of December.
It was only a tactical consideration (the opportunity to cross the Rhine and
make for Mainz) which caused him to delay his liberation of the Palatinate.
Yet he had the electorate in his grasp and he needed it. 14 The League army,
Maximilian's main political weapon, was shattered and Ferdinand in Vienna,
now terribly vulnerable, was willing to negotiate. The English aid demanded
by Gustavus involved a sum of approximately £200,000. This was the
minimum commitment which would purchase his political recognition of
Frederick and guarantee the Palatines the backing of Swedish power. Given
such help from Charles, Gustavus would restore the elector by arms, or insist
upon his restoration in dealing with the Habsburgs.15 Gustavus's demands
were not unreasonable and he was to prove flexible in negotiating the level of
English commitment.16 Charles had no choice but to consider calling a Par-
liament, the only means to the necessary financial supply. The kind of sum
required, by the same token, was well within the capacity of the nation to
provide. Parliament (as has been noted) in 1624 awarded £300,000 to launch
the Spanish war, and in 1628 granted five subsidies (£275,000) despite
suspicion of Buckingham's designs.17 Now, by contrast, the tide of Prot-
estant victory was high and the Palatinate was there for the taking. There was
tremendous popular enthusiasm in England at this point and the willingness
to give.18 The Venetian ambassador considered that a collection for
13
SP81/37/fos. 104r-106v, 108r, 118r-124v, 138r-142v, 143r-147v, 164r-165v, 175r-
176v, 179r, 183r-184v, 187r-188v, 220r-v, 222r-223r, 228r-230r; Wedgwood, Thirty
Years War, pp. 303-6; CSPV1629-32, pp. 575, 577.
14
Gustavus's grand strategy involved the destruction of Bavaria, the focus of Catholic oppo-
sition, followed by an attack on Vienna from the west. The Rhine was central to this strategy.
It would cut off Spanish access from Flanders and Lorraine, integrate the Swedish conquests,
forestall French encroachment and provide logistic support. Mainz stood at the critical
confluence of the Main and Rhine. Its occupation closed the Rhine to Spanish troops. Dutch
victories the following summer forced Spanish reinforcements from Flanders for the
Palatinate to turn back. AGS, E2562, Council of State, 9 Jan. 1632 (n.s.); CSPV 1629-32,
pp. 5 7 3 ^ ; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes, pp. 293-6; Wedgwood, Thirty Years War,
pp. 305-6; Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 222-4,229; Parker, Thirty Years War, pp, 129-30;
Roberts, Gustavus Adolphus, ii, pp. 538-58, 611, 616, 674-6; Parker, Army of Flanders,
pp. 54-5.
15
£200,000 was the sum Gustavus mentioned to Vane, which included support for at least
10,000 more men in the spring. SP81/37/fos. 120r, 175r-176v, 179r; Gardiner, History, vii,
p. 193.
16
SP81/38/fo.40v and see below, pp. 286-8.
17
Adams, 'Foreign policy and the Parliaments of 1621 and 1624', pp. 168-9; Thomas,
'Financial and administrative developments', p. 117.
18
CSPV 1629-32, p. 574; Birch, ii, pp. 157,160,166,174; Searle, Barrington family letters,
pp. 189, 195, 197, 203, 210-11, 214, 218, 230, 233^40, 244, 247; NUL, Ne.C, 15,404,
Decision 279
Elizabeth of Bohemia in the churches would easily provide for her cause.19
The debate within the government in December 1631 as to the wisdom of
calling a Parliament was conducted on the basis of the projected Swedish
alliance and in the context of this highly charged atmosphere. Vane warned
from Germany 'that every day, if not every hour, alters the face of affairs'.20
The form of decision made during the winter of 1631-2 against holding a
Parliament was a turning point in the history of Charles's reign. It signified
the establishment of an era of government without reference to Parliament
which might be ended only by physical necessity. It was not in itself a decision
neatly made. It involved the attitudes of a number of competing individuals
and their reactions to wider circumstances. Yet the role of one actor, Charles
himself, was absolutely paramount and the final outcome was his choice. He
came within a hair's breadth of holding a Parliament and recommitting
England to the war. He had everything to gain: popularity again at home,
influence abroad and a satisfactory solution to the perennial English problem
of the Palatinate. With all this at stake, why were events allowed to take
another course with the confirmation of a non-parliamentary regime?
By the end of November, the advocates of war were making further head-
way with Charles. The king was reported to be deeply undecided.21 On the
29th, Dorchester wrote to the English envoys in Madrid and Vienna with a
final ultimatum. He accused the Spaniards, in Charles's name, of duplicity
and delays.22 On the arrival of Vane's despatch with the Swedish terms the
political battle reached its height. There were lengthy debates in Council, in
Charles's presence, as to whether a Parliament should be called. There was
very strong conciliar support for Frederick and for war. 23 Weston and Laud,
afraid to speak publicly and doubtless terrified of the outcome, sought to win
over Charles in private.24 The Treasurer attempted to take out political
insurance, including likely activists such as Barrington in the bill for
shrievalty. Dorchester, Holland and Pembroke worked against him, having
Sir Thomas spared appointment as a sheriff and thus still eligible to sit in the
p. 278; SP16/203/108; Green, Diary of John Rous, pp. 66-7; Parker, Thirty Years War,
pp. 131-2; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 218,332; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 189-90,
197,207; Breslow, Mirror of England, pp. 39-40,125,128-38; Grosart, Letter book of Sir
]ohn Eliot, p. 196.
19
CSPV1629-32, p. 5 7 4 .
20
SP81/37/fo. 136r, Vane to Dorchester, 2 0 N o v . 1631.
21
CSPV 1629-32, p . 567.
22
SP80/8/fos. HOr-lllr; SP94/35/fos. 337r-338v.
23
CSPV 1629-32, pp. 5 3 8 , 5 6 7 , 5 7 3 - 4 , 5 8 8 , 5 9 2 ; SP16/204/80; Searle, Barrington family
letters, p. 247; AGS, E2519, exp. 141, and E2562, Council of State, 2 0 N o v . 1631 (n.s.).
24
CSPV 1629-32,pp. 5 7 4 - 5 , 5 8 8 , 5 9 2 ; Laud, Works,vii,pp. 4 2 - 3 ; Birch,ii,p. 137; Knowler,
Strafford letters, i, p. 5 9 ; Reeve, 'Viscount Dorchester', pp. 2 1 7 - 1 8 ; Supple, Commercial
crisis, pp. 216—18.
280 Charles I and the road to personal rule
25
Sheriffs acted as returning officers and could not be returned to Parliament. The third earl
of Pembroke had been succeeded by his brother Philip, the Lord Chamberlain. Searle,
Barrington family letters, pp. 2 1 4 , 2 1 7 - 1 8 and n; Birch, ii, p. 1 4 0 ; Russell, Crisis of
Parliaments, p. 3 0 3 .
26
PRO, C 1 1 5 , M 3 5 , 8 3 8 6 , Pory to Slego, 1 7 Dec. 1 6 3 1 ; CSPV1629-32, pp. 5 3 8 , 5 4 5 , 5 6 7 ;
SP16/203/108, SP16/204/80, 107; SP77/21/fo. 9 r - v ; Searle, Barrington family letters,
pp. 2 1 1 , 2 1 7 ; Birch, ii, p. 144; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 191.
27
Knowler, Strafford letters, i, p. 5 8 ; Birch, ii, pp. 137, 1 6 1 - 2 ; Gardiner, History, vii,
pp. 2 2 0 - 1 .
28
SP16/203/108.
29
Grosart, Letter book of Sir John Eliot, pp. 1 9 6 - 7 , 2 0 6 , 2 1 8 - 2 1 ; Birch, ii, p. 158; Hulme,
Life of Sir John Eliot, p. 3 8 1 and n.
30
PRO, C 1 1 5 , M 3 5 , 8 3 8 6 , Pory to Slego, 17 Dec. 1 6 3 1 ; Birch, ii, pp. 1 5 2 - 3 ; SP16/203/108;
Gardiner, History, vii, p. 1 9 1 .
31
P R O , C l 15, M 3 5 , 8 3 8 7 , Pory t o Slego, 2 4 Dec. 1 6 3 1 . Whether Eliot was actually visited in
the Tower is irrelevant. What mattered was Charles's belief that he was; Gardiner, History,
vii, p. 1 9 1 .
32
Grosart, Letter book of Sir John Eliot, pp. 2 1 1 - 1 2 .
Decision 281
ority, was intolerable to the king. Charles's unwillingness to free him, out of
contempt and fear of his influence (there was also the memory of Bucking-
ham's death), was apparently a critical element of the king's ill-disposition
towards calling a Parliament at this time. Eliot was a threat not only in his
personal capacity. He also represented, to Charles, the spectre of parliamen-
tary power. The king's speech to Council continued:
by the discourses of many concerning a Parliament he was now offended and his
proclamation violated, and therefore wished all men to be wary how they displeased
him in that kind, adding further, that he would never be urged by necessity or against
his will to summon one. 33
The proclamation of 27 March 1629 34 had held out the prospect of another
Parliament, given an improvement in political conditions. Now a measure of
order and stability had been regained and the case for a Parliament, in the
light of the opportunity in Germany, was virtually irrefutable. Charles, how-
ever, could not see matters in terms of reason of state, even when he obviously
stood to gain and otherwise had much to lose. The political innocence — and
the inadequacy - of his personality here appear clearly. With a limited per-
ception of his personal interests and monarchical role, and encouraged by
those about him who stood to lose by a Parliament, he acted to compound,
not lessen, his difficulties and to minimize his chances of achieving his goal.
As in the past, a pattern of fear asserted itself in his mind, weaving personal
and ideological themes into a single whole. There was his animosity towards
Eliot and sense of constitutional threat. There was also religion. The Palatine
issue was in England a religious issue, and might spill over into discussion of
Laudianism. (Charles, nonetheless, by restoring the Palatines stood to win
inestimable religious prestige which could well ease his way at home.) Finally,
there was foreign policy. Parliament, like the Palatines, would recognize the
failure of diplomacy and call for a new war with Spain and a commitment to
the Protestant cause.35 Charles had just threatened to abandon Frederick
altogether if he so much as stirred to activate the issue any further.36 Despite
his definite interest in the possibility of a Parliament, which had peaked in
early December, Charles's personality and preferences - with a policy of
intransigence - had reasserted themselves. If he had not made his final
decision when he addressed Council on 21 December, condemning Eliot and
33
PRO, C115, M 3 5 , 8387, Pory to Slego, 2 4 Dec. 1631. This speech may have been partly
intended to encourage the customs farmers to advance money to Charles, for the Swedish
campaign, by dispelling fears of parliamentary inquiry. But the scheme was an anti-
parliamentary initiative and Charles's emotional involvement in the speech is clear. Ibid, and
see below, p. 2 8 2 .
34
See chapter 4, above.
35
PRO, C115, M 3 5 , 8387, Pory to Slego, 2 4 Dec. 1631; SP81/37/fos. 104r-106v.
36
CSPV1629-32, pp. 570,572.
282 Charles I and the road to personal rule
all who spoke of a Parliament, he was rapidly doing so. By then he and
Weston were exploring a scheme to borrow money from the customs farmers,
so as to fund a Swedish treaty without recourse to Parliament. (The scheme
would fail and was partly designed, it seems, to placate the public desire for
Charles to act in support of his sister.)37 By the end of the month the king had
stated that the very suggestion of a Parliament was derogatory to his auth-
ority and (he added out of pique and a misreading of his experience) equally
remote from giving him satisfaction.38 It is conceivable, while unlikely, that
at this point he had not utterly rejected the idea. The possibility of another
Parliament was never explicitly excluded but to all intents and purposes
Charles had set his mind against it.
Despite the king's relapse into constitutional intransigence, he still
harboured the hope of reaching an agreement with Sweden. Dorchester and
the war lobby still pushed their line. Of those ideologically committed to
international Protestantism, only the Secretary remained in close proximity
to the king. Dorchester's growing suspicion of France would have enhanced
his credibility with Charles. As events in Germany unfolded he brought all his
diplomatic abilities to bear on the king. In early December the Secretary
wrote to Elizabeth of Bohemia of a meeting with Charles. Dorchester, clutch-
ing correspondence from the Palatines, went into the picture gallery at
Whitehall, finding Charles, as he wrote, 'seriously employed':
In the midst of his antique pictures . . . placing and removing his emperors' heads and
putting them in right order. Which work being ended, I besought him that now he had
done disposing his emperors, he would think of supporting of kings (the king of
Bohemia and the king of Sweden) whose interests began to be joined each with other
and both with his majesty['s] . . . 39
It was an uphill struggle for Dorchester to detach Charles from his introverted
world. Yet the Secretary informed Elizabeth of the deep distrust in England
of the Habsburg treaty, whereas 'on the other side there are strong and fair
invitations' and 'the apt and proper opportunity of action'.40 He gave
Elizabeth an expectation of good resolutions.41
Promoted by Dorchester, the dealings with Gustavus went ahead. Charles
resented the size of the initial Swedish demands but by the third week of
December it appeared that Gustavus was willing to negotiate. His impatience
37
While no money was raised (the farmers surely feared reprisals) the government announced
that it had obtained £100,000 for the Swedish war effort: a deliberate attempt to mislead.
Ibid., pp. 5 7 9 , 5 8 2 , 602; PRO, C115, M 3 5 , 8387, Pory to Slego, 2 4 Dec. 1631.
38
CSPV 1629-32, p. 574. Charles may also have spoken this way out of fear of the strength
of the war lobby's case.
39
SP81/37/fos. 167r-168r, Dorchester to Elizabeth, 2 Dec. 1631.
40
Ibid. 4i I b k L
Decision 283
42
SP81/37/fos. 120r, 124r-v, 156r-v, 175r-176v, 179r, 233r-236v.
43
Birch, ii, pp. 1 5 7 - 8 ; CSPV1629-32, p. 589.
44 45
SP81/37/fos.256v,282r. SP81/37/fos.256v-257v.
46
SP81/37/fo. 256r, SP81/38/fos. 15r, 34r-35r; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 570, 573, 577, 579.
When Frederick left the Hague for Germany, the Dutch government gave him an allowance
of £5,000 per month. CSPV 1629-32, pp. 5 7 3 , 5 8 8 ; Birch, ii, pp. 136,138.
47
Roberts, Gustavus Adolphus, ii, p. 612; and see below.
48
The cardinal attempted such intercession unsuccessfully during the winter of 1 6 3 1 - 2 .
Bireley, Religion and politics, pp. 1 7 6 - 7 . In the spring of 1632 Tilly forfeited the protective
neutrality granted the Catholic League under the Treaty of Barwalde by attacking Swedish
forces in the ecclesiastical principality of Bamberg, a member of the League. Maximilian
countenanced the act by joining Tilly's forces at Ingolstadt. Gustavus thus had his justifi-
cation for invading Bavaria. Parker, Thirty Years War, pp. 1 2 8 - 9 ; Wedgwood, Thirty Years
War, pp. 314, 317-18.
284 Charles I and the road to personal rule
dominions at the hands of the king of Sweden. In pushing this policy he could
play upon Charles's Francophobia. The Secretary wrote to Vane on 6 January
with further instructions on the Anglo-Swedish treaty:
to reinforce a point I have already expressed in my despatch . . . be careful to com-
prehend clearly both the lower and higher Palatinate together with the electoral
dignity . . . and that further you do not only dissuade and hinder that king [Gustavus]
from any accommodation with the duke of Bavaria, but also incite him all you may to
pursue and assail the duke and his dominions. 4 9
49
SP81/38/fo. 16r. See also SP81/37/fos. 157r-158r, 187r-188v, 233r-236r, 282r, SP81/38/
fos. 19r-22v; SP75/12/fo. 207v; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 591, 602; Bireley, Religion and
politics, p. 177.
50
SP81/38/fo.31r.
51
Dorchester died on 15 February 1632. SP81/37/fos. HOr, 167v, SP81/38/fos. 16r, 80r-v;
SP16/211/74; CSPV 1629-32, p. 593; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 194; Mathew, Age of
Charles I, p. 80.
52
SP81/37/fo. 256r, SP81/38/fo. 55r, 57r, 59r (these three last from Weston to Vane, c. Jan.
1632, in the hand of Weston's secretary), 70r-v, 80r-v, 85r-86v; SP16/203/108; CSPV
1629-32, pp. 575, 588, 590, 592, 598, 602, 630, 636; AGS, E2562, summary of despatch
of Necolalde, 5 Mar. 1632 (n.s.); Searle, Barrington family letters, p. 247; Gardiner,
History, vii, p. 196.
Decision 285
tion of the idea of calling a Parliament. Yet his desire for the friendship of
Spain remained sincere. Cottington wrote to Olivares of Charles's extreme
goodwill, but the problem remained his refusal to act against the Dutch.
Weston and Cottington nonetheless strove to convince Scaglia that some kind
of solution was still possible.53 Madrid had a vested interest in reciprocating
and keeping the line to London open. Necolalde and Scaglia had felt the tide
of English opinion running against them since October. Yet they worked
away, understanding that an Anglo-Swedish alliance could well force Spain
into concessions. Olivares intended that Scaglia should seek a settlement to
the last. The Capuchin sent to England from Vienna sought to discredit
Anstruther's reports and to raise hopes of an agreement with the emperor.54
And the Infanta's government in Brussels, seeing the Swedish threat to the
Rhine and the Palatinate, in January offered to hand over the vital fortress of
Frankenthal to Vane. This was an offer which apparently impressed Charles.
It was surely a ploy to stave off the likely capture of Frankenthal by Sweden
and perhaps to prevent an alliance between Charles and Gustavus.55 In
Madrid Olivares, despite his fear of such an alliance, by this time was aware
that all was not well in England. He knew that Charles was weak at home and
needed customs revenues and this reinforced his resolve to obtain a quid pro
quo. Charles's dealings with Spain were thus ineffectual without a stake in the
53
CSPV 1629-32, pp. 567, 572, 588, 592, 6 2 8 - 9 ; SP16/203/108; SP80/8/fos. l l O r - l l l r ,
149r-150v; SP81/38/fos. 55r, 57r, 59r, 85r-86v; SP94/35/fos. 337r-338v, 357r; AGS,
E2519, exp. 142, and E2562, summary of Charles to Philip IV, 16 Feb. 1632 (n.s.), of Scaglia
(to Olivares?), 5, 7 , 1 2 Mar. 1632 (n.s.), summary of despatch of Necolalde, 18 Mar. 1632
(n.s.), summary of letters of Scaglia, Necolalde, Charles and Cottington, Feb.-Mar. 1632,
summary of Cottington to Olivares, c. Feb./Mar. 1632.
54
CSPV1629-32, pp. 567,572,592; AGS, E2519, exp. 1 4 0 - 1 , and E2562, Council of State,
20 Nov. 1631 (n.s.), consulta of Olivares, 22 Dec. 1631 (n.s.), summary of letter of Scaglia
to Philip IV, 29 Feb. 1632 (n.s.).
55
Frankenthal was the most important Spanish garrison in the Lower Palatinate. It was
surrendered on deposit to the Infanta Isabella by James I in 1623, pending a peace con-
ference. England held that there was a treaty obligation to return it. By the beginning of 1632
it was threatened by the Swedish forces on the Rhine: the military context of the Infanta's
offer which reached London in January but which was revoked in Brussels the same month.
It is most unlikely that such an offer would have been made, even as a ploy, without author-
ization from Madrid, particularly given Olivares' policy of n o compromise and pan-
European concerns. The Brussels government may have responded to the emergency of its
o w n accord. The offer was disclosed t o Gerbier in Brussels by Coloma, a distinguished
veteran of the army of Flanders. The offer anticipated the Spanish instructions for Necolalde
of October 1632, which authorized the offer of Frankenthal on deposit in return for a
defensive Anglo-Spanish league. Necolalde was instructed to do everything possible to avoid
such a concession without prior agreement with the emperor and Bavaria. SP77/21/fos. 23r,
32r-34r; SP81/38/fos. 19r-22v; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 402, 580, 583-4, 594; Birch, ii,
pp. 163-5; Parker, Thirty Years War, p. 65; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes, p. 295;
Elliott, Count-duke of Olivares, p. 348; Archivo del Duque de Medinaceli, Seville, leg. 86,
instructions for Necolalde of 18 Oct. 1632 (n.s.) (I am grateful to John Elliott for this refer-
ence). See also p. 278, n. 14, above, and below, p. 287, and n. 59.
286 Charles I and the road to personal rule
56
SP94/36/fo. 14r; AGS, E2562, Council of State, 2 2 Apr. 1632 (n.s.). See also ibid., Hopton
to Philip IV, 1 6 3 1 - 2 , Council of State, 7, 9 Jan. 1632 (n.s.).
57
SP16/203/108, SP16/204/107; SP81/38/fos. 19r-22v, 39r-41r, 55r, 57r, 59r, 70r-v,
76r-77r, 85r-86v, 92r-94r, 119r-121r; SP95/3/fo. 187r-v; SP103/18/fo. 218r, SP103/69/
fos. 58r, 62r, 64r-v, lOlr-v; CSPD 1631-33, pp. 388-9; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 588, 590,
595, 605, 608, 620, 626; Rushworth, Historical collections, ii, p. 166; Roberts, Gustavus
Adolphus, ii, pp. 609—18; Parker, Europe in crisis, p. 228; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 206—7;
DNB, s.v. Vane, Sir Henry, the elder.
58
SP81/38/fos. 39r-41r, 76r-77r, 92r-94r; SP95/3/fo. 187r-v; Roberts, Gustavus Adolphus,
ii, pp. 503,526-7, 612-13, 625, 649.
Decision 287
He rightly saw Bavaria as the centre of Catholic resistance. It was also a major
segment of still unravaged territory. He needed to quarter his troops and pro-
vide for further war. Richelieu might intervene to protect Maximilian but
Gustavus was prepared to risk war with France. In January 1632 he was
exploring a contingency plan to be activated if there were a Franco-Swedish
conflict: the making of peace with the Habsburgs by English mediation, with
the Spanish surrender of Frankenthal to Vane. The English ambassador
rejected this impractical notion and called it an unreasonable requirement of
England.59
The Anglo-Swedish treaty effectively broke down in March. Gustavus
decided that he wanted an English contribution of 10,000 men for his war
effort. He also wanted English naval protection in the Baltic, where his
coastal position and communications with Sweden might be subject to
Spanish attack. Vane, however, wished to discuss a purely financial arrange-
ment. He suggested a sum of 40,000 rixdollars (approximately £10,000) per
month to help support the war, an offer which Charles subsequently con-
firmed. Gustavus accepted it. Such a level of contribution was slightly in
excess of what he had sought from Charles in 1629. He still wished to insist,
however, on naval aid. Here was the sticking point. Vane said that Charles
would take no such risk of hostilities with Spain. The ambassador, moreover,
was not fully co-operative in these talks which were more difficult than they
might otherwise have been.60 In the English Privy Council there was
59
This w a s less a lapse of judgement by Gustavus than evidence of the fluidity of Swedish policy
w h e n his power w a s at its height. The idea w a s triggered in his mind by the Infanta's offer
to hand over Frankenthal to Vane. Gustavus envisaged the possible withdrawal of Spanish
forces from the Empire by this means. Madrid and Vienna, however, could not so easily be
divided, as Vane pointed out. H e probably suspected that Spain w o u l d not make such con-
cessions without reciprocation by England. His rejection of this overture may have angered
Weston. SP77/21/fo. 23r; SP81/37/fos. 179r, 183r-184v, 187r-188v, 243r-244r,
246v-248r, SP81/38/fos. 19r-22r, 24r-25v, 27r-28r, 39r-41r; CSPD1631-33, pp. 388-9;
Bireley, Religion and politics, pp. 176-7; Roberts, Gustavus Adolphus, ii, pp. 586-7, 591,
594; Wedgwood, Thirty Years War, p. 318; and see also p. 285, n. 55, above.
60
Vane, for example, would not immediately offer English financial assistance, despite being
authorized to d o so. H e may also have delayed objecting to the idea of naval aid until after
the financial contribution w a s agreed upon. Sir James Spence wrote from Swedish head-
quarters, apparently to Roe, implying that Vane had been unhelpful. SP81/38/fos. 92r-94r,
1 1 9 r - 1 2 1 r ; SP95/3/fo. 1 8 7 r - v ; SP103/18/fo. 218r, SP103/69/fos. 5 8 r - v , 62r; Gardiner,
History, vii, p. 196; Roberts, Gustavus Adolphus, ii, p. 2 1 2 and n. Parallel talks between
Frederick and the Swedes were inconclusive. Gustavus insisted o n the subordination of
Palatine to Swedish and Protestant interests for the duration of the war. Frederick objected
to this. H e was, however, n o necessary obstacle to an Anglo-Swedish agreement. Dependent
upon Charles, he could not bargain independently with Gustavus or reject terms acceptable
to England. With Charles squandering a golden opportunity, there was n o Anglo-Swedish
agreement nor conquest of the Palatinate with which Frederick had to come to terms. His
expectations were unrealistic to the end. SP103/69/fo. lOOr; Rushworth, Historical collec-
tions, ii, pp. 1 6 6 , 1 7 1 - 2 , 1 7 4 - 5 ; Roberts, Gustavus Adolphus, ii, pp. 613ff.; SRO, Hamilton
Mss, no. 147.
288 Charles I and the road to personal rule
apparently still strong support for the Swedish alliance. Charles, however,
was unimpressed. He was not prepared to entertain a general alliance with
Sweden implying a new war with Spain and the disturbance of his domestic
political quiet. He would offer nothing more than the financial contribution
under a league of friendship and assistance, without further political commit-
ment.61 The treaty had reached a dead end. Vane continued to follow
Gustavus's camp but could reach no agreement. Talks were abandoned in the
summer and Charles recalled his envoy. 62 In fact the treaty had died by the
spring, with Dorchester gone and, above all, with Charles decided against a
Parliament and open war. Cottington praised Vane for having saved
Charles's money and honour, 'and yourself from any kind of blame, as I
understand it'.63 Weston had triumphed.
In March, Gustavus had invaded Bavaria. He routed Tilly's forces, ravaged
and plundered the duchy and entered Munich in triumph in May. France did
not fight for Bavaria. Richelieu preferred to sacrifice Maximilian rather than
destroy the anti-Habsburg cause by fighting the powerful Swede. Gustavus
allowed Frederick to enter Munich at his side. But he would not rank Palatine
dynastic interests with the military needs of German Protestantism and
Swedish power. Nevertheless in England there were paeans of praise. Sir
Thomas Roe wrote that the king of Sweden fought battles and took towns as
fast as they were read of in the book of Joshua, 'whose example indeed he
is'. 64 Sir Thomas Barrington thanked God for the progress of Gustavus:
That brave king tutors the king of Bohemia in his discipline for war
exquisitely . . . >65
At court there were those who received the news more coolly. The
Treasurer and the peace lobby spoke of Gustavus's arrogance and ambition
and the danger of Swedish domination of German affairs. In June Laud was
successful in having Windebank appointed, rather than Roe, to the vacant
Secretaryship of State.66 During the summer the king's resolve against calling
61
SP103/69/fos. 64r-v, l O l r - v ; CSPV1629-32, pp. 6 0 5 - 6 ; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 1 9 6 - 7 .
62
Charles allowed Hamilton, w h o wished to return to court, to come home at approximately
the same time. The marquis was frustrated by Gustavus's refusal to allow him to levy forces
in Germany and obtain another independent command. SP81/38/fo. 334v-335v; SRO,
Hamilton Mss, nos. 1 6 0 - 1 , 2 7 1 , 9 3 6 4 - 5 , 9367; CSPV 1629-32, p. 644; Rushworth,
Historical collections, ii, pp. 1 6 6 - 7 5 ; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 205; Roberts, Gustavus
Adolphus, ii, pp. 6 1 4 - 1 5 .
63
Cottington to Vane, 29 Sept. 1632, quoted in Gardiner, History, vii, p. 206.
64
Roe to Horwood, 28 May 1632, quoted in Gardiner, History, vii, p. 197. See also Parker,
Thirty Years War, pp. 1 2 8 - 9 ; Roberts, Gustavus Adolphus, ii, pp. 694ff.
65
Sir Thomas Barrington t o Lady Barrington, Apr. 1 6 3 2 , Searle, Barrington family letters,
pp. 235-6.
66
SP81/38/fos. 85r-86v; CSPD 1631-33, pp. 3 8 8 - 9 ; Laud, Works, iii, p. 215, and vii, p. 144;
Birch, ii, p. 169; Roberts, Gustavus Adolphus, ii, p. 614 and n; Gardiner, History, vii, p. 200;
Trevor-Roper, Archbishop Laud, pp. 1 2 7 - 8 ; R. Cant, 'The embassy of the earl of Leicester
to Denmark in 1632', EHR, liv (1939), p. 255; Federowicz, England's Baltic trade, p. 206.
Decision 289
67
CSPV1629-32, pp. 610, 623, 626, 628, 630, 636-7.
68
Cant, T h e earl of Leicester's embassy'; Roberts, Gustavus Adolphus, ii, pp. 655ff. Weston
also allowed his son Jerome to g o o n embassy to France and Italy, supposedly to promote the
German cause (leaving o n 2 August). T h e Treasurer w a s surely humouring Charles's
incurable optimism and desire t o leave n o option, however illogically, unexplored. Weston
also sought t o protect himself against hostile English Protestant opinion. H e may also have
been reaching out t o Richelieu t o ensure stable relations in the w a k e of the Swedish attack
on Bavaria. H i s statement t o his s o n that Charles's offer t o Gustavus w a s likely t o be
accepted w a s n o doubt t o give credibility t o his embassy. It w a s incompatible with the
deterioration (which W e s t o n h a d successfully promoted) of the Anglo-Swedish treaty.
Gardiner misinterpreted this document, which h e admitted w a s a copy and possibly
corrupt. CSPV 1629-32, pp. 588, 590, 595-7, 606, 613, 643-4; Birch, ii, p. 167;
Rushworth, Historical collections, ii, p. 170; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 196—9,204 and n,
205.
69
Gardiner, History, vii, p . 2 0 6 ; F. J. Levy, ' H o w information spread amongst the gentry,
1550-1640', JBS, xxi, 2 (1982), pp. 23-4.
70
Gardiner, History, vii, p. 2 0 8 ; Parker, Europe in crisis, pp. 2 2 8 - 9 .
71
The sum w a s £ 1 6 , 0 0 0 . Gardiner, History, vii, p. 2 0 7 .
72
Parker, Thirty Years War, p. 131; Wedgwood, Thirty Years War, p. 332.
290 Charles I and the road to personal rule
an era in which Charles had never been at home. In November 1632 there
died also Sir John Eliot in the Tower. His passing was less of a milestone than
a painful reminder of the political failures which created the personal rule. 73
The chance to restore the Palatines which was presented to Charles in 1631
was never to be bettered. The reality and the excellence of that opportunity
throw Charles's rejection of it into very sharp relief. Clearly he made a
decision about the basic nature of his regime. He had been turning against the
alternative over a period of time, drifting away from the need to achieve
parliamentary co-operation. But during the winter of 1631—2 he was tested
and his choice was clear. When forced to choose between achieving his aim
in the international sphere - a cherished goal - and the definitive rejection of
Parliament and war, he chose the latter. It was a positive as well as a negative
choice. Charles had a preference for unaccountable kingship under God and
for friendship with Spain. These ideas were inextricably linked in his mind.
He felt committed to both in principle; a new Parliament would call for war
with Spain;74 and any general war would require parliamentary supply.
Charles's decision was not, of course, an active one but it was a decision
nonetheless. England resounded with his refusal to the extent that public
news itself became an indictment. Most of Europe was aware that he was so
much in dispute with his people that he would not act to restore his family to
their patrimony.75 Charles's government was unmistakably premised upon
an isolationist foreign policy wedded to Spain;76 and it was marked by a
preference for non-parliamentary government, not least in the interests of an
exclusive clique about the king. Charles, at home and abroad, had come to
preside over an island kingdom.
So it might have remained, save for the irresistible force of necessity. In
73
For Charles's refusal to release Eliot's body from the Tower for burial see Hulme, Life of Sir
John Eliot, p. 3 9 2 . His death was held against Charles's government in the Grand Remon-
strance; Gardiner, Constitutional documents, p. 210.
74
Gardiner, Constitutional documents, pp. 2 0 8 - 9 , 253—4; Adams, 'Spain or the Nether-
lands?', p. 1 0 1 ; Fletcher, Outbreak of the English civil war, p. 64.
75
SP94/36/fo. 14r; PRO 31/3/66/fo. 132r; CSPV 1629-32, pp. 2 0 4 , 5 7 2 , 5 7 4 ; Magurn,
Rubens letters, pp. 342—5.
76
Charles's next major international endeavour was the first maritime treaty of 1634 for
Anglo-Spanish naval co-operation against the Dutch. This inspired the Ship Money project
in England. Charles could not extract concessions from Spain without an actual break with
the Dutch, which the Spaniards knew to be unlikely. Despite the opportunity presented by
French entry into the war in 1635, Charles stayed at peace with Spain. The Anglo-Spanish
discussions were revived in 1637 and on the eve of the English civil war. By that time Charles
was solely concerned with his survival and was seeking Spanish aid against the Scots. On the
failure of the war party in England in 1637 see Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 72ff. See also ibid.,
pp. 104ff.; Adams, 'Spain or the Netherlands?', pp. 8 4 , 8 6 , 1 0 0 - 1 ; Sharpe, 'Personal rule of
Charles F, p. 69; Gardiner, History, vii, pp. 2 1 5 , 3 4 9 , 3 5 1 - 9 , 3 6 6 - 7 2 , 3 8 0 , 3 8 2 ^ 4 ; Loomie,
'Spanish faction', pp. 39—42; Alcala-Zamora, Espana, Flandes, pp. 510—13; and see p. 2 3 9 ,
n. 63, above.
Decision 291
1631 and 1632 Charles could ignore that force for it was visited upon his
sister, not upon him. In 1640 the necessity was his and could not be ignored.
He could not, as on that earlier occasion, indulge his prejudices, conceding
nothing. 1632 in fact saw a double disaster for Charles. There was a lost
opportunity to achieve success, but also a damaging failure. Public confi-
dence in Charles was further undermined.77 The breakdown between
domestic and foreign policy under his rule was compounded. And the
Caroline political court, with a critical victory over the Council, was con-
firmed in its provocative monopoly of access to royal power. Weston's next
close call would come with an attack upon him by Laud, and Laud could only
be threatened by Charles's necessity.
77
SP16/204/107; Breslow, Mirror of England, p. 137; and see p. 218, nn. 212-13 and p. 282,
n. 37, above.
1& 0 ^J
1
H. R. Trevor-Roper, Renaissance essays (London, 1986), p. vi.
292
The anatomy of a political transition 293
reason of state.2 English events were always subject to foreign influences and
vice versa. The workings of Spanish foreign policy illustrate this well.
In the English context, the pattern of change which we can term a new poli-
tics radically transformed national political life during these years. This dislo-
cation of the habits of a traditional society rendered it politically
unstable and distinctly vulnerable to crisis. That Charles bore a direct
responsibility for this was perceived, indirectly, at the time. The years after
1625, and particularly after 1629, acquired an immediate notoriety.3 The
years of personal rule have an abiding place in English political culture, not
shared by other lengthy periods without a Parliament (such as that between
1614 and 1621), which ultimately derives from this political transformation
and the trauma it engendered. The new politics created a 'credibility gap'
between the rhetoric and ideology of consensus and the fact of conflict and
dislocation. In attempting to come to terms with this problem men were
hampered by not yet having a language to describe it. 4 This in turn worsened
the dangerous shortage of trust and reason among the political elite. Specifi-
cally, each of the principal elements of the new politics represented a
problem which only time would solve. In dealing with the dilemma of the
constitutional fiction, men did not resort to the fallacy of equating innocence
with virtue. Charles's supposed innocence was increasingly seen as malig-
nant. It took many years, however, for him to be perceived as personally
malicious and an impossible obstacle to good government while he lived. This
realization (unpopular as it was), and its effect upon traditional attitudes to
kingship, was part of the creation of a more modern and more free mental
world. The breakdown between the internal and external workings of the
state could only be repaired by the re-establishment of ideological harmony,
by fiscal reform and by the emergence of a wealthier nation. The evils of
political polarization, exclusive government, subversion and conspiracy
theory were rendered less relevant when the political court was shattered by
the attack of the Long Parliament, when new divisions arose over the
religious issue, and when a royalist party was created and circumstances were
altered by civil war. Those evils never reappeared in early modern England in
such dangerous combination.
The story of the damaging impact of Charles's rule provides a powerful
argument against the theory that England was on a high road to civil war
from the beginning of the century or even earlier in time. Moreover, the crisis
of the Long Parliament involved a number of elements novel in Caroline
politics: the distinct reality of a popish plot, 5 a crisis in the relationships
between different parts of a multiple kingdom, the failure of projected
2 3
Parker, Thirty Years War, p. 219. Gardiner, Constitutional documents, pp. 208ff.
4 5
I am grateful to David Underdown for this point. See Hibbard, Popish plot.
294 Charles I and the road to personal rule
6
Elliott, *The year of the three ambassadors'.
7
Fletcher, 'National and local awareness in the county communities', pp. 163-4,173-4.
8
Russell, 'The nature of a Parliament', pp. 135,149.
9
Morrill, 'Religious context', p. 171 and n.
10
Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 214-16, 226, 232ff.; Gardiner, Constitutional documents,
pp. 202ff.; Reeve, 'Legal status of the Petition of Right', pp. 275-7.
11
Wentworth became earl of Strafford in 1640. The Commons supposed his treason to have
involved attempting the alteration of government and to have constituted an offence against
the state; C. Russell, 'The theory of treason in the trial of Strafford', EHR, lxxx, 314 (Jan.
1965). On Eliot's Three Resolutions see chapter 3 above.
12
Zagorin, Court and the country, p. 80.
13
Hibbard, Popish plot, pp. 228,234,237.
14
Russell, Parliaments, Appendix. Understanding of the relative influence of ideological and
non-ideological factors can only be achieved to any degree, of course, by study of each
individual case.
The anatomy of a political transition 295
political sophistication are neither solely concerned with principle nor with
self-interest. They are usually concerned with getting their personal interests
and principles aligned to promote and protect them both. This can involve
rationalization or ideological inspiration or a combination of the two. Eliot
is a classic example of this last. Neither should it be forgotten that the
requisite power to put principles into practice has its own eternal attraction.
Weston and (probably less so) Laud no doubt felt the pull of power for its
own sake. Above all, ideology cannot remain of paramount importance for
an indefinite period without falling foul of human nature or the unavoidable
dictates of circumstances. The parliamentary war effort in the 1640s
depended significantly upon imports of Spanish silver.15 John Gauden, who
had been chaplain to the earl of Warwick, eventually ghost-wrote the classic
of royalist propaganda, Eikon Basilike.16
The critical estimate of Charles's kingship presented here might reflect
favourably on the government of his father. Considered in retrospect, James's
political sagacity is striking. Three men who acted contrary to his advice at
critical points came to miserable ends. He warned Frederick against accepting
the crown of Bohemia and against the German war.17 He warned Bucking-
ham against the promotion of Laud.18 And he opposed Charles's desire for
parliamentary war finance in 1624, a course which would provoke the
religious issue and raise the political temperature in England.19 It is idle to
speculate about how James would have dealt with the political difficulties
which beset his son. We do, however, know that there was no civil war in
England under James.
Is there no way in which Charles's political reputation can be redeemed? It
is possible to ponder certain positive aspects of the personal rule: commerce
and prosperity, enhancement of the navy, efforts at administrative reform,
the search for order and uniformity, a lack of sympathy with confessional
strife and a nation at peace rather than at war. Yet peace abroad was far from
being the necessary concomitant of peace and political stability at home.
Charles insulted and undermined the workings of English national life,
creating a political desert he wished to call peace but which others would not.
There was nothing inherently evil about his policies save for the natural
reservation one feels towards the autocrat, the war-profiteer and the dog-
matist in religion. His faithlessness and inhuman streak are in no way appeal-
ing. He clearly loved family life, religious piety and artistic merit. But these
15
Kepler, 'Fiscal aspects of the English carrying trade', pp. 270ff.
16
Newton, Colonising activities, p. 78; Hirst, Authority and conflict, p. 287.
17
Lockyer, Buckingham, pp. 79-80.
18
Collinson, 'Jacobean religious settlement', pp. 50—1.
19
Lockyer, Buckingham, p. 174; Fincham and Lake, 'Ecclesiastical policy of King James P,
pp. 198ff.
296 Charles I and the road to personal rule
qualities were flawed when coupled with his capacity for political destruc-
tion, particularly in a king in his time and place. He was fundamentally
imperceptive in believing, however unconsciously, that he could shape reality
absolutely to his personal ends. The Venetian diplomat Soranzo wrote with
great perspicacity that Charles's nature was such as to oblige no one in word
or in deed.20 That ruler who makes no concessions in a potentially divided
society, in a world at war, stands to inherit the wind. Charles's regime was
never really stable for it did not rest, like those of Elizabeth I and of his
father,21 upon a foundation of consent.
20
Soranzo to the Doge and Senate, 2 July 1630; CSPV1629-32, p. 373.
21
Collinson, Religion of Protestants, pp. viii-ix, 20, 2 8 2 - 3 , and passim; G. R. Elton, The
Parliament of England 1559-1581 (Cambridge, 1986), pp. 3 7 7 - 9 .
BIBLIOGRAPHY
I MANUSCRIPT SOURCES
Great Britain
Bodleian Library, Oxford:
Clarendon State Papers
Rawlinson Ms C197 (instructions for Wentworth as Lord President of the North,
18 June 1629)
Tanner Ms 71 (letters and papers 1629-33)
British Library, London:
Additional Ms 22,959 (diary of John Rous 1625-43)
Additional Ms 24,909 (collection of Padre Diego de Quiroga's papers, 1629-46,
including letters of Olivares and Philip IV)
HarleianMs 1584 (state papers 1623-8)
Harleian Ms 6988 (royal letters 1625-48)
Harleian Ms 7000 (state papers 1620-31)
Cambridge University Library:
Ms Mm, 6.63 A (draft of Littleton's argument in King's Bench in 1629)
Melbourne Hall, Derbyshire:
Coke Manuscripts (state papers of the Elizabethan, Jacobean and Caroline
periods). This collection was acquired in July 1987 by the British Library, where
it will eventually be available to researchers.
Nottingham University Library:
Newcastle Manuscripts, Ne.C, 15,404-5 (letter books of the Holies family, c.
1615-37)
Public Record Office, Chancery Lane, London:
C115, M, N, Chancery Master's exhibits, Duchess of Norfolk deeds (seventeenth-
century newsletters)
KB29/278 (King's Bench controlment roll, Hilary Term, 1629)
PC2/39,40 (Privy Council registers 1628-30,1630-1)
PRO 31/3 (Baschet's transcripts from French archives)
SP16 (state papers, domestic, Charles I)
SP39 (sign manual, Charles I)
SP45/10 (printed proclamations, Charles I)
SP63 (state papers relating to Ireland)
SP75 (state papers relating to Denmark)
SP77 (state papers relating to Flanders)
SP78 (state papers relating to France)
297
298 Bibliography
Kepler, J. S., 'Fiscal aspects of the English carrying trade during the Thirty Years War',
£cHR,ser.2,xxv(1972)
The value of ships gained and lost by the English shipping industry during the wars
with Spain and France, 1624—1630', Mariner's Mirror, lix (1973)
Kossman, E. H., The Low Countries', in NCMH, iv (Cambridge, 1971)
Lake, P. G., 'Calvinism and the English Church, 1570-1635', P&P, cxiv (1987)
Lambert, S., 'Procedure in the House of Commons in the early Stuart period', EHR,
xcv (1980)
Lee, M., The road to revolution: Scotland under Charles I, 1625—37 (Urbana,
1985)
Leonard, H. H., 'Distraint of knighthood: the last phase, 1625-1641', History, lxiii
(1978)
Levy, F. J., 'How information spread amongst the gentry, 1550-1640', JBS, xxi, 2
(1982)
Lindley, K. J., 'Riot prevention and control in early Stuart London', TRHS, 5th ser.,
xxxiii (1983)
Lockyer, R., Buckingham, the life and political career of George Villiers, first duke of
Buckingham 1592-1628 (London, 1981)
Loomie, A. J., 'Olivares, the English Catholics and the peace of 1630', Revue Beige de
Philologie et d'Histoire, xlvii, 4 (1969)
'Canon Henry Taylor, Spanish Habsburg diplomat', Recusant History, xvii, 3
(May 1985)
The Spanish faction at the court of Charles 1,1630-38', BIHR, lix, 139 (1986)
McGee, J. S., 'William Laud and the outward face of religion', in R. L. DeMolen (ed.),
Leaders of the Reformation (London, 1984)
Maclear, J. F., 'The influence of the puritan clergy on the House of Commons, 1625-
29', Church History, xiv (1945)
Maitland, F. W., The constitutional history of England (Cambridge, 1908, repr.
1968)
Maltby, W. S., The black legend: the development of anti-Spanish sentiment, 1558—
1660 (Durham, N.C., 1971)
Manning, B., 'The aristocracy and the downfall of Charles I', in B. Manning (ed.),
Politics, religion and the English civil war (London, 1973)
Mathew, D., The social structure of Caroline England (Oxford, 1948)
The age of Charles I (London, 1951)
Scotland under Charles I (London, 1955)
Mattingley, G., Renaissance diplomacy (London, 1955)
Millar, O., 'Strafford and Van Dyck', in R. Ollard and P. Tudor-Craig (eds.), For
Veronica Wedgwood these studies in seventeenth century history (London,
1986)
Mitchison, R., Lordship to patronage, Scotland 1603-1745 (London, 1983)
Moody, T. W., Martin, F. X. and Byrne, F. J. (eds.), A new history of Ireland, vol. iii
(Oxford, 1976)
Morrill, J. S., The revolt of the provinces, 2nd edn (London, 1980)
'The religious context of the English civil war', TRHS, 5th ser., xxxiv (1984)
(ed.), Reactions to the English civil war 1642-1649 (London, 1982)
Mosse, G. L., 'Changes in religious thought', in NCMH, iv (Cambridge, 1971)
Mousnier, R., 'The exponents and critics of absolutism', in NCMH, iv (Cambridge
1971)
Namier, L. B., 'Human nature in polities', in F. Stern (ed.), The varieties of history
(London, 1970)
304 Bibliography
IV THESES
Adams, S. L., 'The Protestant cause: religious alliance with the West European
Calvinist communities as a political issue in England, 1585—1630' (Oxford Uni-
versity D.Phil, thesis, 1973)
Appleby, J. C , 'English privateering during the Spanish and French wars, 1625-1630'
(University of Hull PhD thesis, 1983)
Bibliography 307
Cust, R. P., 'The forced loan and English politics 1626—1628' (London University
PhD thesis, 1984)
Haskell, P., 'Sir Francis Windebank and the personal rule of Charles P (Southampton
University PhD thesis, 1975)
Reeve, L. J., 'The Secretaryship of State of Viscount Dorchester 1628-1632'
(Cambridge University PhD thesis, 1984)
Tyacke, N., 'Arminianism in England: religion and politics 1604—1640' (Oxford
University D.Phil, thesis, 1968)
INDEX
309
310 Index
Charles I, king of England (cont.) 192, with Heath, 193n, with Holland,
118,132,134,135,164-5,171,173-4, 192, with third earl of Pembroke, 193n,
175,178,179n, 181,182,183,184,187, with the Veres, 215n; prosecuted in Star
1 8 8 , 1 9 0 , 1 9 4 , 1 9 7 , 2 0 0 , 2 0 1 - 4 and n, Chamber, 158-64 (see also Haughton,
205,218,221,222,224,225,228,229, John Holies, Lord; Holies, Denzil)
234,255,268,281,289-90,293,295 Clarendon, Edward Hyde, earl of, 3 , 5 , 3 6 ,
(see also Arminianism; Laud, William, 1 0 0 , 1 0 6 , 1 6 6 , 1 6 7 - 8 , 1 6 9 - 7 0 and n,
bishop of London (later archbishop of 172-3,204n, 205n, 225
Canterbury; Scotland) Coke, Sir Edward, 19-20,25,26,72,106n,
socio-economic policy of, see Book of 125n
Orders Coke, Sir John, Secretary of State, 17,42,
suspicion of and opposition to his govern- 109n, 129,130-1, 231n; Calvinism and
ment, 3 , 4 , 5 , 7 , 1 2 , 1 4 - 1 5 , 1 6 , 1 7 , 1 8 , anti-Hispanism of, 190—1; social and
2 2 - 3 , 2 4 - 3 2 , 3 3 - 4 , 35-7, 38, 39-40, political position of, 190-1,193 and n;
4 2 , 4 3 - 4 , 5 8 - 2 2 5 passim, 227-8,231, suspicious of war policy in 1630s, 191
233,234,238,241-2,246-8,249,252, Colchester, lOOn
254,255-6,258-9,260,261,262,267, Coloma, Don Carlos, 5 4 - 5 , 1 1 5 , 1 8 3 and n,
271,275-91 passim, 2 9 3 - 4 , 2 9 5 - 6 (see 184,185n, 186n, 201 and n, 248 and n,
also Elizabeth, electress Palatine and 251,255,256,258,266,285n
queen of Bohemia; Parliament and Parlia- colonization, 209-10 and n, 211,213 (see
ments; Petition of Right; Providence also Providence Island Company)
Island Company) common law, common lawyers, 21, 24, 72,
trial and execution of, 172,173,212,218, 87,123,125-7,138-9 and n, 148 and n,
223,293 154,203n, 256,280 (see also Five
[see also James I, king of England; Spanish Knights' case; habeas corpus, law of;
match) judges, judiciary; King's Bench, Court of;
Charles, prince of Wales (later Charles II), Petition of Right)
225; birth of, 3n, 162,181,223 Common Pleas, Court of, 126
Charles Lewis, prince Palatine, 222,223n, Commons, House of, 1 1 - 1 2 , 1 3 , 1 4 - 1 5 , 1 8 ,
224,266n 1 9 - 2 1 , 2 3 , 2 4 - 3 2 , 3 3 , 34 and n, 35, 37,
Charnace, Hercule de, 237 38,41,59,62,63n, 71-171 passim, 189,
Chateauneuf, marquis of, 132 and n, 156, 193n, 231,279-80,294n (see also
159-60,247,263,265 Parliament and Parliaments)
Cheapside, 165 Compiegne, Treaty of (1624), 262n
Cherasco, Peace of (1631), 269 Convocation of Canterbury, 63, 65, 70, 74n,
Chevreuse, Marie, duchess of, 44-5 and n, 161
4 8 - 9 , 5 6 (see also France, the French; Conway, Edward, Viscount, Lord President
Lorraine) of the Council, 61
Chichester, bishopric of, see Montagu, Cork, Richard Boyle, earl of, Lord Justice of
Richard Ireland, 8,169,189
Christian IV, king of Denmark, 11,222n, Cornwall, 33,135
234,237, 289; defeated in German war, Correggio, Antonio, 197
4 0 - 1 , 4 2 , 5 8 - 9 , 61, 79, 99,107-8,117, Coryton, William, 78-9, 85n, 87, 94,
175,234-5,237; makes peace at Liibeck, 99 and n, 119-20,122n, 123,231;
129,235-6, 241, 244n-245n; unwilling released from custody despite role in
to compromise Protestant cause, 235, events of 2 March 1629,121 and n, 125,
237 (see also Denmark) 139
civil wars in England, Scotland and Ireland, 1, Cosin, John, 69n, 70,74, 82,169 and n
6,7,15,91,172-3,175,179,190,212, Cottington, Sir Francis (later Lord),
217,224,229,257,290n, 293-4,295 201 and n, 26In; in Anglo-Spanish
Clare, John Holies, earl of, 130 and n, 167n, diplomacy, 4 3 , 4 4 , 5 2 , 5 4 - 5 , 5 6 , 1 1 5 ,
198n, 219n; alienated from Charles I's 129,185,186n, 196n, 227,244-58
regime, 1 5 , 2 0 , 2 2 , 2 3 , 3 3 , 3 7 , 60n, 78n, passim, 260,265,266,268,270,
81n, 9 5 , 1 3 2 - 3 , 1 3 4 - 5 , 1 3 6 , 1 7 0 ; 271-2,284-5; antipathy to France and
connection of his family with Dorchester, the Dutch, 185,187,249n, 252-3,
Index 313
Ferdinand II, Holy Roman Emperor, 9,56, Gardiner, Samuel Rawson, 5-6,106n, 119n,
59,108,129,208,235,236n, 238,240, 122n, 137n, 138n, 145n, 166n, 289n
244,246,249,250,252-4,261,263, Garter, Order of the, 203n
2 6 6 , 2 6 8 - 9 , 2 7 0 , 2 7 2 , 2 7 3 , 276,278, Gaston, duke of Orleans, 15,264
285 and n (see also Habsburgs, Austrian; Gauden, John, 295
Holy Roman Empire) Gawsell, Gregory, 212; in Providence Island
Finch, Sir John, 85-6 Company, 212
Five Knights' case (1627), 14-15,19,23,24n, Geneva, 66
92,95,123,125,137,144,148n, 161, Gerbier, Balthazar, 30n, 201,242-3, 285n ;
170 (see also Petition of Right) connected with Rubens, 242, with
Flanders, see Spanish Netherlands Weston, 227n
Fleetwood, Sir Miles, 97n Germany, 27n, 4 0 - 1 , 4 2 , 4 3 , 46, 50, 51, 54,
Florence, 162 56,59,169,178,185,188,194 and n,
Fontainebleau, Treaty of (1631), 268-9, 283 205,208,224,227 and n, 229,
Fontenay-Mareuil, marquis of, 264, 265 233 and n, 236,237-9,240,246,250,
forced loan, 13—15 and n, 17-25 passim, 33, 253-4 and n, 258-89 passim, 295 (see
34,37,67,95,97,109n, 112n, 117,135, also Holy Roman Empire; Palatinate;
137,157n, 160,166 trade)
forest fines, 220 and n Gondomar, count of, 248n
Fowlis, Sir David, 162 Goring, Sir George, 61
France, the French, 45-6, 50-1,55, 61,196, grain shortages, 131-2,168-9,171, 208
201,235,236,239,240,243,248n, Grand Remonstrance (1641), 3,96,109,155,
270n, 276, 277,286,289n; Charles Fs 199n, 215, 217, 255,290n
hatred for, 183-4, 242,244, 245, 247, Grandison, Oliver St John, Viscount, 129-30
248n, 256, 258-9,263,265,282,284; Greenwich, 122,244
domestic politics and government of, Gregory XV, Pope, 68
15-16,39,41,44-52,56,159,177-8, Grenville, Sir Barnard, 102
193-4,200, 264,266 and n; as factor in Grosvenor, Sir Richard, 77-8, 93, 218n
English Protestant politics, 4 , 1 1 , 1 2 , 1 5 , Guise, house of, 44
39,43,46-52,133,192,193-4,200, Gunpowder Plot, 26
215 and n, 239,240,244,246-7,265-6, Gurdon, John, 212; in Providence Island
276,278,283; foreign policy of, 4 , 1 1 , Company, 212
12,15-16,41-56 passim, 169,177, Gustavus Adolphus, king of Sweden, 191,
186n, 193^4 and n, 207,215 and n, 235, 192,218,222n, 236-7; allies with
237,238 and n, 239,241,242,247, France, 266 and n, 267, 268, 276, 277;
261-9 passim, 276-8 and n, 283,286-7, death of, 289; German campaign and
288,290n; rising power of, 292 (see also policy of, 236-8 and n, 239 and n, 254,
Chevreuse, Marie, duchess of; Henrietta 262—89 passim; negotiations with
Maria, queen of England; Huguenots; England, 228, 236-8,263, 266-8, 272,
Louis XIII, king of France; Paris; 274—91 passim (see also Sweden)
Richelieu, Armand-Jean du Plessis,
Cardinal; trade) habeas corpus, law of, 14,23,118-71 passim
Frankenthal, 238n, 285 and n, 287 and n (see also Five Knights' case; Petition of
Frankfurt, 270 Right)
Frederick, elector Palatine and king of Habsburgs, Austrian, 4, 9 , 1 6 , 4 0 , 4 4 , 4 6 , 4 7 ,
Bohemia, 9-10,44,54,189n,215n,218, 51,55-6,16, 83,107,112,133,181,
221n, 222,223n, 224,237,238-9,240, 183,184,189,205,208,209,215,226,
242,244,246,250-3,255,257, 228,229,235-6,238-41,246-7,
2 5 8 - 9 , 2 6 2 , 2 6 5 - 6 and n, 267,269-70, 249-50,254,258,262-89 passim, 292
273—89 passim, 295 (see also Bohemia, (see also Ferdinand II, Holy Roman
kingdom of; Elizabeth, electress Palatine Emperor; Holy Roman Empire; Spain;
and queen of Bohemia; Palatinate) Vienna)
Frederick Henry, prince of Orange, 260n, 261 Hague, the, 10,44, 59, 209,215,223n, 227,
(see also United Provinces) 2 4 2 , 2 4 6 , 2 5 9 , 2 6 0 - 1 , 277,283n, 284;
Frederick Henry, prince Palatine, 10,55 and n English church at, 215n
316 Index
Hague, Treaty of the (1625), 11,50,233,235, Henry IV (of Navarre), king of France, 200
237,244 Henry, prince of Wales, 3,9,173,178n, 194,
Hamilton, James, marquis of, 7,196; artistic 218,219,221-3
interests of, 197; expedition to Germany, Heylyn, Peter, 214
228,238,263,266-8,270,286,288n; High Commission, Court of, 63,65,74n,
and Henrietta Maria, 200; pro-French, 203,219
196 Hobart, Sir Miles, 85 and n, 87, 99; govern-
Hampden family, 214 ment proceedings against, 118-71 passsim;
Hampden, John, 14,212 released from prison, 156
Hampton Court, 138-9,145 Holland, province of, 258
Hanseatic League, 208,232 {see also Liibeck) Holland, Henry Rich, Viscount Kensington
Harsnet, Samuel, archbishop of York, 63n, and earl of, 48; brother of earl of
161n Warwick, 189,192; connected with
Harwood, Sir Edward, 214n, 215 and n; in Holies family, 192, with Sir Thomas Roe,
Providence Island Company, 215 191,193n; estranged from Caroline
Haselrig, Sir Arthur, 167 regime, 189-90,192; favours Parliament
Haughton, John Holies, Lord, 130,215n; and war, 189,192,246-7,279; financial
connected with Frederick of Bohemia, greed of, 133,189,192,202; Governor
215n {see also Clare, John Holies, earl of) of Providence Island Company, 192—3,
Hayman, Sir Peter, 85n, 86,87,99 and n, 119, 210,212; liaison with duchess of
120n, 123; released from custody despite Chevreuse, 45,48; limited puritanism of,
role in events of 2 March 1629, 133,189,194,246; political opponent of
121 and n, 125-6,139 Laud, Wentworth and Weston, 90,133,
Heath, Sir Robert, 67n; anti-Arminianism of, 189-90,198,246-7,279; pro-French
191 and n; career of, 191 and n; con- and anti-Habsburg, 39,50,133,189,
nected with earl of Clare, 193 and n; and 194,241,246-7,265; protege of
Cotton case, 158—60; doubts about legal Buckingham, 194, of Henrietta Maria,
ability of, 126n; on Eliot's dissent, 39,48,189,200 andn, 212,265 (seealso
101-2; and Five Knights' case, 19,148n; Holland, Isabel Rich, countess of)
inclined towards arbitrary government, Holland, Isabel Rich, countess of, 190n
126n, 152,165,191; and Leighton case, Holies, Denzil, 85 and n, 8 6 , 9 2 , 1 3 5 , 1 5 5 - 6 ;
164-5 and n; and proceedings against one of 'five members' in 1642,156;
dissident members of Parliament, 87n, government proceedings against, 87,99,
99n, 122,125-6,128 andn, 143,145-9, 118-71 passim {see also Clare, John
151-2; proposals for political reform, Holies, earl of)
116,129 Holstein, 40
Heidelberg, 278 Holt, William, 150n
Henrietta Maria, queen of England, 11,48, Holy Roman Empire, 1 0 , 4 0 , 4 6 , 5 9 , 2 3 5 - 7 ,
212,265; autocratic view of monarchy, 243,246,250 and n, 253-4,266n,
39,177-8, 200; Catholicism of, 25, 268-71,287n {see also Ferdinand II,
3 8 - 9 , 1 6 4 - 5 , 1 8 9 , 2 0 0 , 201,222; court Holy Roman Emperor; Germany;
of, 39, 5 1 , 1 9 3 - 4 , 1 9 5 , 2 0 0 , 2 2 2 , 2 6 4 , Habsburgs, Austrian)
265; financial need of, 117; influence Hooker, Richard, 66,202
with Charles 1,38-9,47-8,174,198, Hopton, Sir Arthur, 227n, 258
200; marriage of, 5 , 1 1 , 3 8 - 9 , 5 1 , 6 9 , Huguenots, 1 5 - 1 6 , 4 1 , 4 7 , 4 9 - 5 2 , 1 6 4 , 1 7 5 ,
164-5,173,174,177,184,193,200; 193,200,240,242 and n, 266n {see also
not greatly political, 39,174,184,196, La Rochelle and Rochellois)
200,264; patience of Calvinism, 200; Hungary, kingdom of, 271
personality of, 200; produces male heir, Hyde, Sir Nicholas, Lord Chief Justice,
162,223; pro-French, 3 9 , 4 6 - 8 , 1 8 4 , 93 and n, 130-1; appointment in King's
186n, 193-4,196,200,264; and Bench, 137; connected with Buckingham,
Richelieu, 39,200,265; sense of family, 137; legal integrity of, 137; and proceed-
46,200 {see also Charles I, king of ings against dissident members of Parlia-
England) ment, 128,138-49 passim {see also
Henry VIII, king of England, 177,203 judges, judiciary)
Index 317
impositions, l l n , 3 1 - 2 , 7 9 Hyde, Sir Nicholas, Lord Chief Justice;
Ingolstadt, 283n Jones, Sir William; Whitelocke, Sir
inns of court, 145,158n (see also Serjeants' James)
Inn) Juxon, William, bishop of London (later Lord
Ireland, 34,93n, 197; in Commons' remon- Treasurer), 202 and n.
strance debate (1628), 27-9,189;
government and defence of, 7-8,169, Kent, 27
189,230,231n, 258,293 Kesselaer, Johan, heer van Marquette, 243
Isabella, the Infanta, regent of Spanish Nether- King's Bench, Court of, 19In; proceedings
lands, 4 3 , 5 3 - 4 , 1 1 5 , 2 0 1 , 2 6 9 , against dissident members of Parliament
285 and n, 287n (see also Brussels; Spain; in, 118-71 passim, 234
Spanish Netherlands) Kirton, Edward, 26, 77
Isle of Wight, 27 knighthood and knighthood fines, 22,157,
Italy, 1 0 , 1 6 , 4 1 , 4 3 , 4 6 - 7 , 5 1 , 5 3 , 5 6 9 99, 166-7
178n, 183,235-6,238,243,246,254, Knightley, Richard, 26,212; in Providence
263,269,289n (see also Mantuan Island Company, 210-12
succession, war of)
Lake, William, 101
James I, king of England (and VI of Scotland), Lambe,DrJohn,33,35
110; character and mind of, 9,173, Lambeth Palace, 190
179-80,228; Charles I's attitude Lamormaini, William, S. J., 240,269,271
towards, 173,174-5; court of, 173, Laney, Dr Benjamin, 123
179-80; death of, 11,36,174; foreign La Puebla, count of, 176n
policy of, 3,9-11,28,82,105,174 and n, La Rochelle and Rochellois, 16,28,36,41-51
177,178n-179n, 183,193,228,230, passim, 53n, S69 60,234n (see also
231n, 233,237,240,248,250,285n, Huguenots; Rhe", Isle de)
295; marriage of, 173; political experi- Laud, William, bishop of London (later
ence and skill of, 12,106,173,176 and n, archbishop of Canterbury), 96,186n;
178n, 179-80,295; his reign and govern- artistic interests of, 197; attacked by
ment in England, 2 - 3 , l l n , 12,24,26, Long Parliament, 186; attacks Weston
28,30,31,37,63n, 64-5,82,93,97, and Cottington, 190,198,291; attitude
105-6,153,158,162,174 and n, towards Parliament, 12-13,17,24n,
176 and n, 178 andn, 179-80,186,187, 29-30,73n, 75,76,82,88,90,114,117,
190,198,203,218 and n, 219,223n, 1 3 3 , 1 8 5 , 1 8 7 - 8 , 2 2 4 - 5 , 2 5 6 , 2 7 9 ; and
224,229,293,295,296, in Scotland, 7, attraction of power, 295; belief in inter-
177n; religious views of, 174n, 228,230 national Calvinist conspiracy, 67,202;
(see also Dort, Synod of) Chancellor of Oxford University, 203;
James, Richard, prosecuted in Star Chamber, connected with Wentworth, 198; and
158-64 Cotton, 159; counsels dissolution of
Jesuits, 25,27, 68,74 and n, 7 7 , 9 3 , 9 5 , 1 6 4 , Parliament in 1629, 81-4, 88, 89,90,
240 (see also Lamormaini, William, S. J.) 113,198; his ecclesiastical policy in
Jones, Sir William, 149,153,154 (see also England, 13,34,59-98 passim, 164-5,
judges, judiciary) 178,179n, 185,187,189,190,202-4,
Jonson, Ben, 96 209-10,211,214,219,224-5,234,
judges, judiciary, 61,93 and n, 105,106n, 281, overseas, 669 215n, in Scotland, 7,
116,203n; association with Charles I's 66 and n; and Elizabeth of Bohemia, 223;
regime and loss of reputation, 137, experience of persecution at Oxford, 64;
149-50,155; attacked by Eliot, 149; favoured by Buckingham, 64,174,295;
Charles I seeks to coerce, 146-7; and and Henrietta Maria, 186n; ideas of
Five Knights' case, 14,137; and Petition divine right kingship, 67,187; increasing
of Right, 137; and proceedings against political influence of, 106,114-15,182,
dissident members of Parliament, 118-71 186n, 188,191,198,202,224-5,228,
passim; refusal to sanction forced loan, 288,291; personality of, 199,202;
14,137 (see also Crew, Sir Ranulphe, promised see of Canterbury, 26,34,190,
Lord Chief Justice; Croke, Sir George; 203; protege of Neile, 64; refusal of offer
318 Index
Laud, William, bishop of London {cont.) 195-6; Laud preaches in, 225; Lord
of cardinalate, 68; regret at Bucking- Mayor of, 131; Providence Island
ham's death, 36n; relief at birth of prince Company meets in, 211; puritanism in,
of Wales, 223; religious views of, 63—71, 214; Rubens' negotiations in, 242-7;
82, 98,187,198, 202; support of pacific Spanish silver coined in, 207, 256;
pro-Spanish foreign policy, 69,70—1,76 9 stranger churches in, 215; 'Three Cranes'
82,90,114,182,185-6,224-5,279, tavern in, 120; Tower of, 128-9,141,
288; on theology of salvation, 64 and n, 146-7,280 and n, 290 and n
69; translated from Bath and Wells to see London, Treaty of (1604), 9, 254
of London (1628), 34, 62-3,190; Long, Walter, 85n, 87, 99; government
unpopularity of, 88, 90,185,188; use of proceedings against, 118—71 passim; in
his name as descriptive historical term, Long Parliament, 156; prosecuted in Star
62n; view of Charles 1,172,225 (see also Chamber, 122,156
Arminianism; Charles I, king of England; Lords, House of, 12 and n, 20,22-3,28n, 30,
Scotland) 33n, 80-1 and n, 83, 8 8 , 9 0 , 1 0 4 , 1 5 1 ,
Leicester, Robert Sidney, earl of: embassy to 155,160 (see also Parliament and
Denmark, 289 Parliaments)
Leighton, Alexander, 164-5 and n Lorraine, duchy of, 44-5,48,238n, 278n (see
Leipzig, 272 also Chevreuse, Marie, duchess of;
Lennox, James Stuart, duke of, 7,201; artistic Lorraine, Charles, duke of)
interests of, 197; connected with Weston, Lorraine, Charles, duke of, 15 (see also
198; and Henrietta Maria, 200; intimacy Lorraine, duchy of)
with Charles 1,196 and n; personality of, Louis XI, king of France, 159
196; pro-French, 196 Louis XIII, king of France, 15,41,44,47,
Lenthal, William, 150n 4 9 - 5 2 , 1 7 7 - 8 , 2 2 7 , 2 6 4 , 2 6 5 , 2 6 6 n (see
lieutenants and deputy lieutenants, 33,130, also France; Richelieu, Armand-Jean du
134-5 Plessis, Cardinal)
Lincoln, bishopric of, 18 (see also Williams, Low Countries, see Netherlands
John, bishop of Lincoln) Lubeck, 59,129,235,241 (see also Hanseatic
Lincoln, Theophilus Clinton, earl of, 14n, 15, League)
22 Lubeck, Peace of (1629), see Christian IV,
Lindsey, Robert Bertie, earl of, 47,49 king of Denmark
Lipsius, Justus, 161 and n Lutheranism, 76,236n, 270,277,286,292
Littleton, Edward, 75, 86, 94n, 125n; Lutter, battle of (1626), 40-1
advocate of Petition of Right, 125n, 126; Lutzen, battle of (1632), 289
appears for John Selden in King's Bench,
125-8; career of, 126-7,145, 280; Madrid, 4 4 , 4 5 , 5 3 - 6 , 1 1 5 , 1 5 7 , 1 8 3 n , 185,
connected with Cotton, 161, with Essex, 186n, 227 and n, 239,242-55 passim,
219n; legal ability of, 125 258,266,269-71,273,279,285 and n,
localities: Arminianism in, 190,203; connec- 287n (see also Olivares, Gaspar de
tions with central government, 181; Guzman, count-duke of; Philip IV, king
discontent and disorder in, 16,102,116, of Spain; Spain)
129-32,134-5,146,167,168-9,171; Madrid, Treaty of (1630), 69n, 78,186 and n,
gentry banished to, 195-6; politicization 207,221,223,238; negotiation and
of, 294; puritan patronage in, 214 conclusion of, 242-59,261-2 and n,
London, 1 0 , 3 3 - 4 , 4 4 , 5 4 , 5 6 , 5 8 , 5 9 , 60, 83, 266,284
93,100,116,125,127n, 134,162n, 165, Magdeburg, 267—8 and n
167,168,175n, 186n, 203,242,244, Main, river, 278n
248,252, 280,285n; bishopric of, 74, Mainz, 274,278 and n
190,202 and n, 203 (see also Laud, Maldon, 131-2
William, bishop of London (later Manchester, Henry Montague, earl of, Lord
archbishop of Canterbury)); City of, 13, Privy Seal, 49,158n, 198; connected
17,33, 78,131,206,224n, 280; Danish with earl of Warwick, 135; constitutional
resident in, 245n; disorder and violence moderation of, 17,110,133-6,138n,
in, 10,130-1; gentry banished from 190; lack of power under Charles 1,190;
Index 319